diff options
| -rw-r--r-- | .gitattributes | 4 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | LICENSE.txt | 11 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | README.md | 2 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/55278-0.txt | 6621 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/55278-0.zip | bin | 94895 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/55278-h.zip | bin | 124614 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/55278-h/55278-h.htm | 8861 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/55278-h/images/cover.jpg | bin | 20957 -> 0 bytes |
8 files changed, 17 insertions, 15482 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes new file mode 100644 index 0000000..d7b82bc --- /dev/null +++ b/.gitattributes @@ -0,0 +1,4 @@ +*.txt text eol=lf +*.htm text eol=lf +*.html text eol=lf +*.md text eol=lf diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt new file mode 100644 index 0000000..6312041 --- /dev/null +++ b/LICENSE.txt @@ -0,0 +1,11 @@ +This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements, +metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be +in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES. + +Procedures for determining public domain status are described in +the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org. + +No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in +jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize +this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright +status under the laws that apply to them. diff --git a/README.md b/README.md new file mode 100644 index 0000000..82a1080 --- /dev/null +++ b/README.md @@ -0,0 +1,2 @@ +Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for +eBook #55278 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/55278) diff --git a/old/55278-0.txt b/old/55278-0.txt deleted file mode 100644 index 317ac31..0000000 --- a/old/55278-0.txt +++ /dev/null @@ -1,6621 +0,0 @@ -The Project Gutenberg EBook of Chess Generalship, Vol. I. Grand -Reconnaissance, by Franklin K. Young - -This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most -other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions -whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of -the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at -www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have -to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook. - -Title: Chess Generalship, Vol. I. Grand Reconnaissance - -Author: Franklin K. Young - -Release Date: August 6, 2017 [EBook #55278] - -Language: English - -Character set encoding: UTF-8 - -*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CHESS GENERALSHIP, VOL. I. *** - - - - -Produced by Donald Cummings, Adrian Mastronardi and the -Online Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net -(This file was produced from images generously made -available by The Internet Archive/American Libraries.) - - - - - - - - - - - CHESS - GENERALSHIP - - BY - FRANKLIN K. YOUNG - - _Vol. I._ - GRAND RECONNAISSANCE. - - “_He who first devised chessplay, made a model of the Art - Militarie, representing therein all the concurrents and - contemplations of War, without omitting any._” - - “_Examen de Ingenios._” - - _Juan Huarte, 1616._ - - “_Chess is the deepest of all games; it is constructed to carry - out the principal of a battle, and the whole theory of Chess lies - in that form of action._” - - _Emanuel Lasker._ - - BOSTON - INTERNATIONAL PUBLISHING CO. - 1910 - - _Copyright, 1910_, - BY FRANKLIN K. YOUNG. - - _Entered at Stationers’ Hall._ - - _All rights reserved._ - - “_Chess is the gymnasium for the mind--it does for the brain what - athletics does for the body._” - - _Henry Thomas Buckle._ - - GEORGE E. CROSBY CO., PRINTERS, BOSTON, MASS. - - - - -YOUNG’S CHESS WORKS - - - MINOR TACTICS OF CHESS $1.00 - An eminently attractive treatment of the game of - Chess.--_Scientific American._ - - MAJOR TACTICS OF CHESS 2.50 - In this book one finds the principles of strategy - and logistics applied to Chess in a unique and - scientific way.--_Army and Navy Register._ - - GRAND TACTICS OF CHESS 3.50 - For the student who desires to enter the broader - channels of Chess, the best books are by FRANKLIN - K. YOUNG: his “Minor Tactics” and his more elaborate - “Grand Tactics” are the most important productions - of modern Chess literature.--_American Chess Magazine._ - - CHESS STRATEGETICS ILLUSTRATED 2.50 - We know no work outside of the masterpieces of Newton, - Hamilton and Darwin, which so organizes and systematizes - human thought.--_Chicago Evening Post._ - - - * * * * * - - _“There are secrets that the children_ - _Are not taught in public school;_ - _If these secrets were broadcasted,_ - _How could we the masses rule?_ - _If they understood Religion,_ - _Jurisprudence, Trade and War,_ - _Would they groan and sweat and labor--_ - _Make our bricks and furnish straw?”_ - - _Anon._ - - * * * * * - - TO - The Memory - OF - EPAMINONDAS - THE INVENTOR - OF - SCIENTIFIC WARFARE - - * * * * * - - _“I leave no sons_ - _To perpetuate my name;_ - _But I leave two daughters--_ - _LEUCTRA and MANTINEA_ - _Who will transmit my fame_ - _To remotest posterity.”_ - - * * * * * - - _“For empire and greatness it importeth most that a people - do profess arms as their principal honor, study and - occupation.”--Sir Francis Bacon._ - - * * * * * - - _“There is nothing truly imposing but Military Glory.”--Napoleon._ - - * * * * * - - _“The conquered in war, sinking beneath the tribute exacted - by the victor and not daring to utter their impotent hatred, - bequeath to their children miseries so extreme that the aged have - not further evil to fear in death, nor the youthful any good to - hope in life.”--Xenocles._ - - * * * * * - - _“War is an element established by the Deity in the order of - the World; perpetual peace upon this Earth we inhabit is a - dream.”--Von Moltke._ - - - - -PREFACE - - _“To become a good General one well may begin by playing at - Chess.”--Prince de Condé._ - - -_Except the theatre of actual Warfare, no spot known to man furnishes -such facilities for the practice of combined strategy, tactics and -logistics as does the surface of the Chess-board._ - -To those familiar with the Science of Strategetics, it needs no proof -that ability to play a good game at Chess, indicates the possession of -faculties common to all great military commanders. - -At a certain point, the talent of Morphy for Chess-play and the talent of -Napoleon for Warfare become merged; and beyond this point, their methods -of thought and of action are identical. - -Opportunity to display, and in most spectacular fashion, their singular -and superlative genius, was not wanting to either. - -But unlike the ferocious Corsican, whose “only desire is to find myself -on the battlefield,” the greatest of all Masters at Chess, found in the -slaughter of his fellow-creatures no incentive sufficient to call forth -those unsurpassed strategetical powers, which recorded Chess-play shows -he possessed. - -From this sameness of talent, common to the great Chess-player and the -great military commander, arises the practical utility of the Royal Game. - -For by means of Chess-play, one may learn and practice in their highest -interpretation, mental and physical processes of paramount importance to -the community in time of extreme peril. - -From such considerations and for the further reason that in a true -Republic all avenues to greatness are open to merit, scientific -Chess-play should be intelligently and systematically taught in the -public schools. “A people desirous of liberty will entrust its defense to -none but themselves,” says the Roman maxim, and in crises, woe to that -land where the ruler is but a child in arms, and where the disinclination -of the people towards its exercise is equalled by their unfamiliarity -with the military habit. - -Despite the ethics of civilization, the optimism of the “unco guid” and -the unction even of our own heart’s deep desire, there seems no doubt but -that each generation will have its wars. - -“_Pax perpetua_,” writes Leibnitz, “exists only in God’s acre.” Here on -earth, if seems that men forever will continue to murder one another for -various reasons; all of which, in the future as in the past, will be good -and sufficient to the fellow who wins; and this by processes differing -only in neatness and despatch. - -Whether this condition is commendable or not, depends upon the point -of view. Being irremediable, such phase of the subject hardly is worth -discussing. However, the following by a well-qualified observer, is -interesting and undeniably an intelligent opinion, viz.: - - -From the essay on “WAR,” read by Prof. John Ruskin at Woolwich, (Eng.) -Military Academy. - -“All the pure and noble arts of Peace are founded on War; no great Art -ever rose on Earth, but among a nation of soldiers. - -“As Peace is established or extended the Arts decline. They reach an -unparalleled pitch of costliness, but lose their life, enlist themselves -at last on the side of luxury and corruption and among wholly tranquil -nations, wither utterly away. - -“So when I tell you that War is the foundation of all the Arts, I mean -also that it is the foundation of all the high virtues and faculties of -men. - -“It was very strange for me to discover this and very dreadful--but I saw -it to be quite an undeniable fact. - -“We talk of Peace and Learning, of Peace and Plenty, of Peace and -Civilization; but I found that those were not the words which the Muse of -History coupled together; but that on her lips the words were--Peace and -Selfishness, Peace and Sensuality, Peace and Corruption, Peace and Death. - -“I found in brief, that all great nations learned their truth of word and -strength of thought in War; that they were nourished in War and wasted in -Peace; taught by War and deceived by Peace; trained by War and betrayed -by Peace; that they were born in War and expired in Peace. - -“Creative, or foundational War, is that in which the natural -restlessness and love of contest among men, is disciplined into modes of -beautiful--though it may be fatal--play; in which the natural ambition -and love of Power is chastened into aggressive conquest of surrounding -evil; and in which the natural instincts of self-defence are sanctified -by the nobleness of the institutions which they are appointed to defend. - -“For such War as this all men are born; in such War as this any man may -happily die; and forth from such War as this have arisen throughout the -Ages, all the highest sanctities and virtues of Humanity.” - - * * * * * - -That our own country may escape the common lot of nations, is something -not even to be hoped. - -Defended by four almost bottomless ditches, nevertheless it is a -certainty that coming generations of Americans must stand in arms, not -only to repel foreign aggression, but to uphold even the integrity of the -Great Republic; and with the hand-writing of coming events flaming on the -wall, posterity well may heed the solemn warning of by-gone centuries: - -“_As man is superior to the brute, so is a trained and educated soldier -superior to the merely brave, numerous and enthusiastic._” - - * * * * * - -_“The evils to be apprehended from a standing army are remote and in -my judgment, not to be dreaded; but the consequence of lacking one is -inevitable ruin.”--Washington._ - - - - -CONTENTS - - - PAGE - - PREFACE VII - - INTRODUCTORY XIII - - CHESS GENERALSHIP 3 - - GRAND RECONNAISSANCE 23 - Military Examples 28 - - ORGANIZATION 45 - Military Examples 59 - - TOPOGRAPHY 73 - Military Examples 85 - - MOBILITY 97 - Military Examples 116 - - NUMBERS 123 - Military Examples 127 - - TIME 139 - Military Examples 142 - - POSITION 147 - Military Examples 158 - - PRIME STRATEGETIC MEANS 169 - - PRIME STRATEGETIC PROPOSITION 185 - - _“The progress of Science universally is retarded, because - sufficient attention is not paid to explaining essentials in - particular and exactly to define the terms employed.”--Euclid._ - - * * * * * - - _“The first care of the sage should be to discover the true - character of his pupils. By his questions he should assist them - to explain their own ideas and by his answers he should compel - them to perceive their falsities. By accurate definitions he - should gradually dispel the incongruities in their earlier - education and by his subtlety in arousing their doubts, he should - redouble their curiosity and eagerness for information; for the - art of the instructor consists in inciting his pupils to that - point at which they cannot endure their manifest ignorance._ - - _“Many, unable to undergo this trial and confounded by offended - self-conceit and lacking the fortitude to sustain correction, - forsake their master, who should not be eager to recall them. - Others who learn from humiliation to distrust themselves should - no longer have snares spread for their vanity. The master should - speak to them neither with the severity of a censor nor with - the haughtiness of a sophist, nor deal in harsh reproaches nor - importunate complaints; his discourse should be the language of - reason and friendship in the mouth of experience.”--Socrates._ - - - - -INTRODUCTORY - - _“The test is as true of cerebral power, as if a hundred thousand - men lay dead upon the field; or a score of hulks were swinging - blackened wrecks, after a game between two mighty admirals.”--Dr. - Oliver Wendell Holmes._ - - (Opening Address at Morphy Banquet, Boston, 1859.) - - -_Men whose business it is to understand war and warfare often are amused -by senseless comparisons made by writers who, as their writings show, are -ignorant even of the rudiments of military art and science. Of course a -certain license in expression of thought is not to be denied the layman; -he cannot be expected to talk with the exactness of the man who knows. At -the same time there is a limit beyond which the non-technical man passes -at his peril, and this limit is reached when he poses as a critic and -presumes to dogmatize on matters in regard to which he is uninformed._ - -The fanciful conjectures of such people, well are illustrated by the -following editorial _faux pas_, perpetrated by a leading metropolitan -daily, viz.: - - “_Everyone knows now that a future war between states having - similar and substantially equal equipments will be a different - affair from any war of the past; characterized by a different - order of generalship and a radically novel application of the - principles of strategy and tactics._” - -Many in the struggle to obtain their daily bread, are tempted to essay -the unfamiliar, and for a stipulated wage to pose as teachers to the -public. - -Such always will do well to write modestly in regard to sciences which -they have not studied and of arts which they never practiced, and -especially in future comments on Military matters, such people may profit -by the appended modicum of that ancient history, which newspaper men as a -class so affect to despise, and in regard to which, as a rule, they are -universally and lamentably, ignorant. - -What orders of Generalship can exist in the future, different from those -which always have existed since war was made, viz.: good generalship and -bad generalship? - -Ability properly to conduct an army is a concrete thing; it does not -admit of comparison. Says Frederic the Great: - -“There are only two kinds of Generals--those who know their trade and -those who do not.” - -Hence, “a different order of Generalship,” suggested by the editorial -quoted, implies either a higher or a lesser degree of ability in the -“general of the future”; and as obviously, it is impossible that he can -do worse than many already have done, it is necessary to assume that the -commander of tomorrow will be an improvement over his predecessors. - -Consequently, to the military mind it becomes of paramount interest to -inquire as to the form and manner in which such superiority will be -tangibly and visibly manifested, viz.: - -Will the general of the future be a better general than Epaminondas, -Alexander, Hannibal, Caesar, Gustavus Adolphus, Turenne, Eugene, -Frederic, Washington, Napoleon, Von Moltke? - -Will he improve upon that application of the principles of strategy and -tactics to actual warfare which comes down to us of today, stamped with -the approval of these superlative military geniuses? - -Will the general of the future know a better way for making war than -acting against the enemy’s communications? - -Will he devise a better method of warfare than that whose motive is the -concentration of a superior force upon the strategetic objective? - -Will the processes of his prime logistic operations be preferable to -those of men who won their victories before their battles were fought, by -combining with their troops the topography of the country, and causing -rivers and mountains to take the place of corps d’armee? - -Will the general of the future renounce as obsolete and worthless that -military organization founded centuries before the Christian Era, by the -great Theban, Epaminondas, the father of scientific warfare; that system -adopted by every captain of renown and which may be seen in its purity in -the greater military establishments from the days of Rome to the present -Imperial North German Confederation? - -Will the general of the future renounce as obsolete and worthless that -system of Minor Tactics utilized by every man who has made it his -business to conquer the World? Will he propose to us something more -perfect than the primary formation of forces depicted in Plate XIII of -the Secret Strategical Instructions of Frederic II? - -Will the general of the future renounce as obsolete and worthless those -intricate, but mathematically exact, evolutions of the combined arms, -which appertain to the Major Tactics of men who are remembered to this -day for the battles that they won? - -Will he invent processes more destructive than those whereby Epaminondas -crushed at Leuctra and Mantinea the power of Sparta, and the women of -Lacedaemon saw the smoke of an enemy’s camp fire for the first time in -six hundred years? - -Than those whereby Alexander, a youth of eighteen, won Greece for his -father at Chaeronea and the World for himself at Issus and Arbela? Than -those whereby Hannibal destroyed seriatim four Roman armies at Trebia, -Thrasymenus, Cannae and Herdonea? - -Will he find out processes more sudden and decisive than those whereby -Caesar conquered Gaul and Pompey and the son of Mithridates, and which -are fitly described only in his own language; “Veni, vidi, vici”? - -What will the general of the future substitute for the three contiguous -sides of the octagon whereby Tamerlane the Great with his 1,400,000 -veterans at the Plains of Angora, enveloped the Emperor Bajazet and -900,000 Turks in the most gigantic battle of record? - -Will he eclipse the pursuit of these latter by Mizra, the son of -Tamerlane, who with the Hunnish light cavalry rode two hundred and thirty -miles in five days and captured the Turkish capital, the Emperor Bajazet, -his harem and the royal treasure? - -Will he excel Gustavus Adolphus, who dominated Europe for twenty years, -and Turenne, the military Atlas who upheld that magnificent civilization -which embellishes the reign of Louis XIV? - -Will he do better than Prince Eugene, who victoriously concluded eighteen -campaigns and drove the Turks out of Christendom? - -Will he discover processes superior to those whereby Frederic the Great -with 22,000 troops destroyed at Rosbach a French army of 60,000 regulars -in an hour and a half, at the cost of three hundred men; and at Leuthern -with 33,000 troops, killed, wounded or captured 54,000 out of 93,000 -Austrians, at a cost of 3,900 men? - -Will he improve on those processes whereby Napoleon with 40,000 men, -destroyed in a single year five Austrian armies and captured 150,000 -prisoners? Will he improve on Rivoli, Austerlitz, Jena, Friedland, -Wagram, Dresden, and Ligny? - -Will the general of the future renounce as obsolete and worthless that -system of Grand Tactics, by means of which the mighty ones of Earth have -swept before them all created things? - -Will his system surpass in grandeur of conception and exactness of -execution the march of Alexander to the Indus? Will he reply to his -rival’s prayers for peace and amity as did the great Macedonian; “There -can be but one Master of the World”; and to the dissuasions of his -friend; “So would I do, were I Parmenio”? - -Will he do things more gigantic than Hannibal’s march across the Alps? - -Than the operation of Alesia by Caesar; where the Romans besieging one -Gallic army in a fortified city, and themselves surrounded by a second -Gallic army, single handed destroyed both? Than the circuit of the -Caspian Sea by the 200,000 light cavalry of Tamerlane, a feat of mountain -climbing which never has been duplicated? Than that marvelous combination -of the principles of tactics and of field fortification, whereby in the -position of Bunzelwitz, Frederic the Great, with 55,000 men, successfully -upheld the last remaining prop of the Prussian nation, against 250,000 -Russian and Austrian regular troops, commanded by the best generals of -the age? - -Will he conceive anything more scientific and artistic than the manoeuvre -of Trenton and Princeton by Washington? Than the capture of Burgoyne at -Saratoga and Cornwallis at Yorktown? Than the manoeuvres of Ulm, of Jena, -of Landshut? Than the manoeuvres of Napoleon in 1814? Than the manoeuvre -of Charleroi in 1815, declared by Jomini to be Napoleon’s masterpiece? -Will he excel the manoeuvres of Kutosof and Wittsengen in 1812-13 and -of Blucher on Paris in 1814 and on Waterloo in 1815; each of which -annihilated for the time being the military power of France? - -Will he devise military conceptions superior to those whereby Von Moltke -overthrew Denmark in six hours, Austria in six days, and France in six -weeks? - - * * * * * - -The sapient race of quill-drivers ever has hugged to its breast -many delusions; some of which border upon the outer intellectual -darkness. One of these delusions is that most persistently advertised, -least substantial, but forever darling first favorite of timid and -inexperienced minds: “_The pen is mightier than the sword._” - -Explanation of the invincible ignorance of the penny-a-liner is simple, -viz.: - -Of the myriad self-appointed educators to the public, few are familiar -even with the rudimentary principles of Military Science and almost none -are acquainted even with the simplest processes of Strategetic Art. -Hence, like all who discourse on matters which they do not understand, -such writers continually confound together things which have no -connection. - -Ignorant of war and the use of weapons; bewildered by the prodigious -improvements in mechanical details, they immoderately magnify the -importance of such improvements, oblivious to the fact that these latter -relate exclusively to elementary tactics and in no way affect the system -of Strategy, Logistics, and the higher branches of Tactics. - -Of such people, the least that can be said and that in all charity, is, -that before essaying the role of the pedagogue, they should endeavor to -grasp that most obvious of all truths: - - “_A man cannot teach what he never has learned._” - -Says Frederic the Great: “Improvements and new discoveries in implements -of warfare will be made continually; and generals then alive must modify -tactics to comply with these novelties. But the Grand Art of taking -advantage of topographical conditions and of the faulty disposition of -the opposing forces, ETERNALLY WILL REMAIN UNCHANGED in the military -system.” - - * * * * * - -Naturally, the student now is led to inquire: - -What then is this immutable military system? What are its text books, -where is it taught and from whom is it to be learned? - -In answer it may be stated: - -At the present day, private military schools make no attempt to teach -more than elementary tactics. Even the Governmental academy curriculum -aims little higher than the school of the battalion. - -Scientific Chess-play begins where these institutions leave off, and ends -at that goal which none of these institutions even attempt to reach. - -Chess teaches to conduct campaigns, to win battles, and to move troops -securely and effectively in the presence of and despite the opposition of -an equal or superior enemy. - -Military schools graduate boys as second-lieutenants commanding a -platoon. Chess graduates Generals, able to mobilize Corps d’armee, -whatever their number or location; to develop these into properly posted -integers of a grand Strategic Front and to manoeuvre and operate the army -as a Strategetic Unit, in accordance to the laws of the Strategetic art -and the principles of the Strategetic science. - -By precept and by actual practice, Chess teaches what is _NOT_ taught in -any military school--that least understood and most misunderstood; that -best guarded and most invaluable of all State Secrets-- - -The profession of - -GENERALSHIP. - - * * * * * - - _“Books will speak plain when counsellors blanch. Therefore it - is good to be conversant with them; especially the books of such - as themselves have been actors upon the stage.”--Sir Francis - Bacon._ - - * * * * * - - _“At this moment, Europe, which fears neither God nor devil, - grovels in terror before a little man hardly five feet in height; - who, clad in a cocked hat and grey great-coat and mounted upon a - white horse, plods along through mud and darkness; followed by - the most enthusiastic, most devoted and most efficient band of - cut-throats and robbers, the world has ever seen.”_ - - * * * * * - - _“Many good soldiers are but poor generals.”--Hannibal._ - - * * * * * - - _“No soldier serving under a victorious commander, ever has - enough of war.”--Caesar._ - - * * * * * - - _“Officers always should be chosen from the nobility and never - from the lower orders of society; for the former, no matter how - dissolute, always retain a sense of honor, while the latter, - though guilty of atrocious actions, return to their homes - without compunction and are received by their families without - disapprobation.”--Frederic the Great._ - - * * * * * - - At the terrible disaster of Cannae, the Patrician Consul Aemilius - Paulus and 80,000 Romans died fighting sword in hand; while - the Plebian Consul, Varro, fled early in the battle. Upon the - return of the latter to Rome, the Senate, instead of ordering his - execution, with withering sarcasm formally voted him its thanks - and the thanks of the Roman people, “that he did not despair of - the Republic.” - - * * * * * - - _“Among us we have a man of singular character--one Phocion. - He seems not to know that he lives in our modern age and at - incomparable Athens. He is poor, yet is not humiliated by his - poverty; he does good, yet never boasts of it; and gives advice, - though he is certain it will not be followed. He possesses talent - without ambition and serves the state without regard to his own - interest. At the head of the army, he contents himself with - restoring discipline and beating the enemy. When addressing the - assembly, he is equally unmoved by the disapprobation or the - applause of the multitude._ - - _“We laugh at his singularities and we have discovered an - admirable secret for revenging ourselves for his contempt. He - is the only general we have left--but we do not employ him; he - is the most upright and perhaps the most intelligent of our - counsellors--but we do not listen to him. It is true, we cannot - make him change his principles, but, by Heaven, neither shall he - induce us to change ours; and it never shall be said that by the - example of his superannuated virtues and the influence of his - antique teachings, Phocion was able to correct the most polished - and amiable people in the world.”--Callimedon._ - - - - -GENERALSHIP - - - - -CHESS GENERALSHIP - - _“In Chess the soldiers are the men and the General is the mind - of the player.”--Emanuel Lasker._ - - * * * * * - - _“It is neither riches nor armies that make a nation formidable; - but the courage and genius of the Commander-in-Chief.”--Frederic - the Great._ - - * * * * * - - _“Ho! Ye Macedonians! Because together we have conquered the - World, think ye to give law to the blood of Achilles and to - withstand the dictates of the Son of Jupiter?_ - - _“Choose ye a new commander, draw yourselves up for battle; I - will lead against you those Persians whom ye so despise, and if - you are victorious, by Mehercule, I will do everything that you - desire.”--Alexander the Great._ - - * * * * * - - _“It is I and I alone, who give you your glory and your - success.”--Napoleon._ - - * * * * * - - _“My thoughts are not your thoughts, neither are your ways, My - ways, saith the Lord.”--Holy Bible._ - - -_By authority indisputable, the ex-cathedra dictum of the greatest of the -Great Captains, we have been informed that the higher processes of the -military system, eternally will remain unchanged._ - -_As a necessary corollary, it follows that these processes always have -been and always will be comprehended and employed by every great Captain._ - -_Equally, it is self-evident, that capability to comprehend these higher -processes, united with ability properly to utilize them to win battles -and campaigns, constitutes genius for Warfare._ - -Moreover, we are further informed by the same unimpeachable authority, -that so irresistible is genius for warfare, that united to courage, it -is formidable beyond the united financial and military resources of the -State. In corroboration of this, we have the testimony of well-qualified -judges. Says the Count de Saxe: - -“Unless a man is born with talent for war and this talent is brought -to perfection, it is impossible for him to be more than an indifferent -general.” - - * * * * * - -In these days, more or less degenerate from the soldierly standpoint, the -fantastic sophistries of Helvetius have vogue, and most people believe -book-learning to be all-in-all. - -Many are so weak-minded, as really to believe, that because born in -the Twentieth Century, they necessarily are the repository of all -the virtues, and particularly of all the knowledge acquired by their -ancestors from remotest generations. Few seem to understand that the -child, even of ultra-modern conditions, is born just as ignorant and -often invincibly so, as were the sons of Ham, Shem and Japhet, and most -appear to be unaware, that: - -_Only by intelligent reflection upon their own experience and upon the -experiences of others, can one acquire knowledge._ - -The triviality of crowding the memory with things that may or may not be -true, is the merest mimicry of education. - -Real education is nothing more than the fruit of experience; and he who -acts in conformity to such knowledge, alone is wise. Thus to act, implies -ability to comprehend. But there are those in whom capability is limited; -hence, all may not be wise who wish to be so, and these necessarily -remain through life very much as they are born. - -The use of knowledge would be infinitely more certain, if our -understanding of its accurate application were as extensive as our needs -require. We have only a few ideas of the attributes of matter and of the -laws of mechanics, out of an infinite number of secrets which mankind -never can hope to discover. This renders our feeble adaptations in -practice of the knowledge we possess, oftimes inadequate for the result -we desire; and it seems obvious that if Nature had intended man to attain -to the superlative, she would have endowed him with intelligence and have -communicated to him information, infinitely superior to that we possess. - -The universal blunder of mankind arises from an hallucination that all -minds are created equal; and that by mere book-learning, _i.e._, simply -by memorizing what somebody says are facts it is possible for any man to -attain to superior and even to superlative ability. - - * * * * * - -Such profoundly, but utterly mis-educated people, not unnaturally may -inquire, by what right speaks the eminent warrior previously quoted. -These properly may be informed in the words of Frederic the Great: - - “_The Count de Saxe is the hero of the bravest action ever done - by man._” viz., - -A great battle was raging. - -Within a magnificent Pavilion in the centre of the French camp, the King, -the nobility and the high Ecclesiastics of the realm were grouped about a -plain iron cot. - -Prone upon this cot, wasted by disease, lay the Count de Saxe, in that -stupor which often precedes and usually presages dissolution. - -The last rites of the Church had been administered, and the assemblage in -silence and apprehension, awaited the approach of a victorious enemy and -the final gasp of a general who had never lost a battle. - -The din of strife drawing nearer, penetrated the coma which enshrouded -the soul of the great Field-Marshal. - -Saxe opened his eyes. His experienced ear told him that his army, routed -and disordered, was flying before an exultant enemy. - -The giant whose pastime it was to tear horseshoes in twain with his bare -hands and to twist nails into corkscrews with his fingers, staggered to -his feet, hoarsely articulating fierce and mandatory ejaculations. - -Hastily clothed, the Count de Saxe was placed in a litter and borne out -of his pavilion into that chaos of ruin and carnage which invariably -accompanies a lost battle. Around him, behind and in front, swarmed his -broken battalions and disorganized squadrons; while in pursuit advanced -majestically in solid column, the triumphant English. - -Saxe demanded his horse and armor. - -Clad in iron and supported in the saddle on either hand, this modern -Achilles galloped to the front of his army; then, at the head of the -Scotch Guards, the Irish Brigade, and French Household troops, Saxe in -person, led that series of terrific hand-to-hand onslaughts which drove -the English army from the field of battle, and gained the famous victory -of Fontenoy. - - * * * * * - -“Furthermore,” declares this illustrious Generalissimo of Louis XIV; - - “_It is possible to make war without trusting anything to - accident; this is the highest point of skill and perfection - within the province of a general._” - -“Most men,” writes Vergetius, “imagine that strength and courage are -sufficient to secure victory. Such are ignorant that when they exist, -stratagem vanquishes strength and skill overcomes courage.” - -In his celebrated work, _Institutorum Rei Militaris_, that source from -whence all writers derive their best knowledge of the military methods -of the ancients; and by means of which, he strove to revive in his -degenerate countrymen that intelligent valor which distinguishes their -great ancestors--the famous Roman reiterates this solemn warning: - - “Victory in war depends not on numbers, nor on courage; skill and - discipline only, can ensure it.” - -The emphasis thus laid by these great warriors on genius for warfare is -still further accentuated by men whose dicta few will dispute, viz., - - “The understanding of the Commander,” says Frederic the Great, - “has more influence on the outcome of the battle or campaign, - than has the prowess of his troops.” - -Says Napoleon: - - “The general is the head, the whole of an army. It was not the - Roman army that subjugated Gaul, it was Caesar; nor was it the - Carthagenian army that made the Republic tremble to the gates - of Rome, it was Hannibal; it was not the Macedonian army which - reached the Indus, it was Alexander; it was not the French army - which carried war to the Weser and the Inn, it was Turenne; it - was not the Prussian army which for seven years defended Prussia - against the three strongest powers of Europe, it was Frederic the - Great.” - -From such opinions by men whose careers evince superlative knowledge of -the subject, it is clear, that: - - I. _There exists a system of Strategetics common to all great - commanders_; - - II. _That understanding of this system is shown by the skillful - use of it_; - - III. _That such skill is derived from innate capability_; - - IV. _That those endowed by Nature with this talent, must bring - their gifts to perfection, by intelligent study_. - -So abstruse are the processes of this greatest of all professions, that -comprehension of it has been evidenced by eleven men only, viz.: - -Epaminondas, Alexander, Caesar, Hannibal, Gustavus Adolphus, Turenne, -Eugene, Frederic, Washington, Napoleon, Von Moltke. - -Comprehension of this system can be attained, only by innate capability -brought to perfection by intelligent study of the words and achievements -of these great Captains. - -For life is so short and our memories in general so defective, that we -ought to seek instruction only from the purest sources. - -None but men endowed by Nature with the military mind and trained in the -school of the great Captains, are able to write intelligently on the acts -and motives of generals of the first order. All the writings of mere -literati relative to these uncommon men, no matter how excellent such -authors may be, never can rise to anything more than elegant phraseology. - -It is of enlightened critics, such as the former, that the youthful -student always is first in need. Such will guide him along a road, in -which he who has no conductor may easily lose himself. They will correct -his blunders considerately, recollecting that should these be ridiculed -or treated with severity, talent might be stifled which might hereafter -bloom to perfection. - -It is a difficult matter to form the average student, and to impart to -him that degree of intelligent audacity and confident prudence which is -requisite for the proper practice of the Art of Strategetics. - -To secure proficiency, the student from the beginning must cheerfully -submit himself to a mental discipline, which properly may be termed -severe; in order to make his faculties obedient to his will. - -Secondly, he must regularly exercise these faculties, in order to make -them active and to acquire the habit of implicitly conforming to the laws -of the Art; to make himself familiar with its processes, and to establish -in his mind that confidence in its practice which can come only through -experience. - -The student daily should exercise his mind in the routine of deployments, -developments, evolutions, manoeuvres, and operations, both on the -offensive and on the defensive. These exercises should be imprinted on -the memory by closely reviewing the lesson of the previous day. - -Even with all this severe and constant effort, time is necessary for -practical tactics to become habitual; for the student must become so -familiar with these movements and formations that he can execute them -instantly and with precision. - -To acquire this degree of perfection, much study is necessary; it is a -mistake to think otherwise. But this study is its own sufficient reward, -for the student soon will find that it has extended his ideas, and _that -he is beginning to think in the GREAT_. - -At the same time the student should thoroughly instruct himself in -military history, topography, logic, mathematics, and the science of -fortification. With all of these the strategist must be familiar. - -But his chief aim must be to perfect his judgment and to bring it to the -highest degree of broadness and exactness. - -This is best done by contemplation of the works of the Great Masters. - -The past history of Chess-play, is the true school for those who aspire -to precedence in the Royal Game. It is their first duty to inform -themselves of the processes of the great in every age, in order to shun -their errors and to avail of their methods. - -It is essential to grasp that system of play common to the Masters; to -pursue it step by step. Particularly is it necessary to learn that he who -can best deduce consequences in situations whose outcome is in doubt, -is the competitor who will carry off the prize from others who act less -rationally than himself. - -Especially, should the student be wary in regard to what is termed chess -analysis, as applied to the so-called “openings” and to the mid-game. -Most chess analysts are compilers of falsities occasionally interspersed -with truth. Among the prodigious number of variations which they pretend -to establish or refute, none may be implicitly relied on in actual play; -few are of value except for merely elementary purposes, and many are -fallacies fatal to the user. - -The reason for this is: whenever men invited by curiosity, seek to -examine circumstantially even the less intricate situations on the -Chess-board, they at once become lost in a labyrinth abounding in -obscurities and contradictions. Those, who ignorant of the synthetic -method of calculation, are compelled to depend upon their analytic -powers, quickly find that these, on account of the number of unknown -quantities, are utterly inadequate. - -Any attempt to calculate the true move in Chess-play by analysis, other -than in situations devoid of unknown quantities, is futile. - -Yet it is of such folly that the mediocre mind is most enamoured. -Content with seeing much, it is oblivious to what it cannot see; and the -analytical system consists merely in claiming that there is nothing to -see, other than what it does see. - -This is that slender reed upon which the so-called “chess-analyst” hangs -his claims, oblivious to the basic truth that in analysis, unless all is -known, nothing is known. - -Many delude themselves to the contrary and strive to arrive at correct -conclusions without first having arranged clearly before their minds all -the facts. - -Hence, their opinions and judgments, being founded in ignorance of -all the facts, are to that extent defective; and their conclusions -necessarily wrong. - -Through action taken upon incomplete knowledge, men are beguiled into -error; and it is to such unreason that most human catastrophes are to be -attributed. - - * * * * * - -Most of those who attempt to write on Strategetics, and whether applied -to Chess-play or to Warfare, very quickly are compelled to seek refuge in -vague phrases; in order to conceal their uncertain grasp on the subject -discussed. The uninformed believe in them, because of their reputation, -and are satisfied that the thing is so, without understanding _WHY_. - -Words intended to convey instruction, should not be used except in their -proper meaning. Each word should be defined for the student and its use -regulated. The true use of words being established, there is no longer -danger from a play upon them; or, from different and confused ideas -annexed to them, either by the persons who read, or who employ them. - -By means of this warning, the student easily may detect the empty -mouthings of enthusiastic inexperience, and equally so, the casuistries -of the subtle expert; who often uses language merely to conceal from -youthful talent, knowledge which if imparted, might be fatal to his -domination. - -As the student progresses toward proficiency, he, sooner or later, will -come to realize, that of all disgusting things, to a mind which revolts -at nonsense, reasoning ill is the worst. - -It is distressing, to be afflicted with the absurdities of men, who, -victims of the fancy, confound enthusiasm with capability and mistake -mania for talent. The world is full of such people, who, in all honesty -thinking themselves philosophers, are only visionaries enamoured of their -own lunatic illusions. - -The true discipline for the student who aspires to proficiency at -Chess-play, is, in every succeeding game, to imitate more closely the -play of the Great Masters; and to endeavor to take his measures with more -attention and judgment than in any preceding. - -Every player at Chess has defects; many have very great ones. In -searching for these one should not treat himself tenderly, and when -examining his faults, he should grant himself no quarter. - -Particularly should the student cultivate confidence in and rigidly -adhere to the standard of skill, as interpreted by that immutable System -of Chess-play, of which Morphy is the unapproachable and all-sufficient -exponent. - -Observing the lack of method displayed by the incompetent -Chess-commander, the student of this system will remark with -astonishment, the want of plan and the entire absence of co-operation -between the various Chessic corps d’armee, which under such leadership -are incapable of a general effort. - -How dense is such a leader in the selection of a project, how slow and -slovenly in its execution; how many opportunities does he suffer to -escape him and how many enormous faults does he not commit? To such -things, the numerically weaker but more skillful opponent, often is -indebted for safety and ultimately for success. - -One who is opposed by such blockheads, necessarily must gain advantages -continually; for conduct so opposite to all the laws of the Art, is, in -itself, sufficient to incur ruin. It is for such negligence on his own -part that one often has cause bitterly to reproach himself. But such -errors, especially on the part of great players, are exemplary lessons -for the student, who from them may learn to be more prudent, circumspect, -and wise. - - * * * * * - -Those who make a mere pastime of Chess, who have no desire for the true -benefit of the game, do not deserve information. - -Such people are more numerous than may be supposed. They have few -coherent ideas and are usually influenced by mere chatter and by writers -whose sole excuse is enthusiasm. - -These players at the game cannot benefit by example. The follies -of others afford them no useful lesson. Each generation of such -“wood-shifters,” has blindly followed in the footsteps of those preceding -and daily is guilty of errors which times innumerable have been fully -exposed. - -It is the darling habit of such folk to treat the great things in Chess -with levity and to dignify those insignificant matters which appertain to -the game when used as a plaything. - -Such people are merely enthusiastic; usually they are equally frivolous. -They do everything from fancy, nothing from design. Their zeal is strong, -but they can neither regulate nor control it. - -Such bear about their Chessic disabilities in their character. Inflated -in good fortune, groveling in adversity, these players never attain to -that sage contemplation, which renders the scientific practice of Chess -so indescribably beautiful. - -There is another class of Chess-players who from mere levity of mind are -incapable of steadily pursuing any fixed plan; but who overturn, move by -move, even such advantages as their good fortune may have procured. There -are others, who, although possessed of great vivacity of mind and eager -for information, yet lack that patience necessary to receive instruction. - -Lastly, there are not a few whose way of thinking and the validity of -whose calculations, depend upon their good or ill digestion. - -It is in vain that such people endeavor to divine things beyond their -understanding. Hence it is, that among those incapable of thought, or -too indolent for mental effort, the game proceeds in easy fashion until -routine is over. Afterward, at each move, the most probable conjecture -passes for the best reason and victory ultimately rests with him whose -blunders are least immediately consequential. - - * * * * * - -Understanding of high art is dispensed only to the few; the great mass -neither can comprehend nor enjoy it. In spite of the good natured -Helvetius, all are not wise who wish to be so and men ever will remain -what Nature made them. It is impossible for the stream to rise higher -than its source. - -“The progress of human reason,” writes the great Frederic, “is more slow -than is imagined; the true cause of which is that most men are satisfied -with vague notions of things and but few take time for examination and -deep inquiry. - -“Some, fettered by prejudice from their infancy, wish not, or are unable -to break their chains; others, delighting in frivolity know not a word -of mathematics and enjoy life without allowing their pleasures to be -interrupted by a moment of reflection. Should one thinking man in a -thousand be discovered it will be much; and it is for him that men of -talent write. - -“The rest naturally are offended, for nothing so enrages the mediocre -mind as to be compelled to admit to itself its own inferiority. -Consequently, they consign book, author, and reader conjointly to Satan. -So much easier is it to condemn than to refute, or to learn.” - - * * * * * - -The early success of many young students does not permit them to observe -that they often have departed from the rules of the Art. As they have -escaped punishment for their errors, they remain unacquainted with the -dangers to which they were exposed. Constant good fortune finally makes -them over-confident and they do not suspect it necessary to change their -measures, even when in the presence of an able foe. - -Thus, the youthful tyro, inconsiderate, inconsistent, and turbulent, and -oblivious to the innumerable dangers by which he is surrounded, plays -his pieces hither and thither, as fancy and inclination dictate, culling -bouquets of the most gorgeous flowers of the imagination; thoughtless of -the future and perfectly happy because he cannot reflect. - -To reason exactly, the student first must rid his mind of all -preconceived notions; he must regard the matter under consideration -as a blank sheet of paper, upon which nothing is to be written save -those things which by the processes of logic and demonstration, are -established as facts. - -There is much difference between the Art of Logic and mere conjecture. - -The calculations of arithmeticians, though rigorous and exact, are never -difficult; because they relate to known quantities and to the palpable -objects of nature. But when it is required to argue from combining -circumstances, the least ignorance of uncertain and obscure facts breaks -the chain and we are deceived every moment. - -This is no defect of the understanding, but error arising from plausible -ideas, which wear the face of and are too quickly accepted for truth. -A long chapter can be written on the different ways in which men lose -themselves in their conjectures. Innumerable examples of this are not -wanting, and all because they have suffered themselves to be hurried away -and thus to be precipitate in drawing their conclusions. - -The part that the General, whether in Chess-play or in Warfare, has -to act, always is more difficult because he must not permit himself -the least mistake, but is bound to behave with prudence and sagacity -throughout a long series of intricate processes. A single false -deduction, or a movement of the enemy unintelligible to a commander, -may lead him to commit an irremediable error; and in cases wherein the -situation is beyond comprehension, his ignorance is invincible. - -For however extensive the human mind may be, it never is sufficiently so -to penetrate those minute combinations necessary to be developed in order -to foresee and regulate events, the sequence, utility and even existence -of which, depend upon future contingencies. - -Incidents which are past, can be explained clearly, because the reasons -therefor are manifest. But men easily deceive themselves concerning the -future, which, by a veil of innumerable and impenetrable secondary -causes, is concealed from the most prying inspection. - -In such situations, how puerile are the projects even of the greatest -Strategist. To him, as much as to the tyro, is the future hidden; he -knows not what shall happen, even on the next move. How then may he -foresee those situations which secondary causes later may produce? - -Circumstances most often oblige him to act contrary to his wishes; and -in the flux and reflux of fortune, it is the part of prudence to conform -to system and to act with consistency. It is impossible to foresee all -events. - - * * * * * - -“It is not possible,” writes the Count de Saxe, “to establish a -system without first being acquainted with the _principles_ that must -necessarily support it.” - -In corroboration of this is the opinion of Frederic the Great: - -“Condemned by my unfortunate stars to philosophies on contingencies and -on probabilities I employ my whole attention to examine the _principle_ -on which my argument must rest and to procure all possible information on -that point. Deprived of such precaution, the edifice I erect, wanting a -base, would fall like a house of cards.” - -Everyone who does not proceed on principle, is inconsistent in his -conduct. Equally so, whenever the principle on which one acts is false, -_i.e._, does not apply to the existing situation; all deductions based -thereon, if applied to the existing situation, necessarily are false. - -“Those principles which the Art of Warfare prescribes, never should be -departed from,” writes Frederic the Great, “and generals rigidly should -adhere to those circumspections and never swerve from implicit obedience -to laws, upon whose exact observance depends the safety of their armies -and the success of their projects.” - -Thus the student will clearly see that all other calculations, though -never so ingeniously imagined, are of small worth in comparison with -comprehension of the use of Strategetic principles. By means of these -latter, we are taught to control the raging forces which dominate in the -competitive arts and to compel obedience from friend and foe alike. - -“To the shame of humanity it must be confessed,” writes Frederic the -Great, “that what often passes for authority and consequence is mere -assumption, used as a cloak to conceal from the layman the extreme of -official indolence and stupidity. - -“To follow the routine of service, to be busied concerning food and -clothing, and to eat when others eat, to fight when others fight, are the -whole warlike deeds of the majority and constitute what is called having -seen service and grown grey in arms. - -“The reason why so many officers remain in a state of mediocrity, is -because they neither know, nor trouble themselves to inquire into the -causes either of their victories or defeats, although such causes are -exceedingly real.” - -In this connection, writes Polybius, the friend and biographer of -Hannibal: - -“Having made ourselves masters of the subject of Warfare, we shall no -longer ascribe success to Fortune and blindly applaud mere conquerors, -as the ignorant do; but we shall approve and condemn from Principle and -Reason.” - -To the Chess-student nothing can be more conclusive than the following: - -“My success at Chess-play,” writes Paul Morphy, “is due to rigid -adherence to fixed rules and Principles.” - - * * * * * - -_“Chess is best fought on Principles, free from all deception and -trickery.”--Wilhelm Steinitz._ - - - - -GRAND RECONNAISSANCE - - _“Man can sway the future, only by foreseeing through a clear - understanding of the present, to what far off end matters are - tending.”--Caesar._ - - * * * * * - - _“From the erroneous ideas they form in regard to good and evil, - the ignorant, the mis-educated and the inexperienced always act - without precisely knowing what they ought to desire, or what they - ought to fear; and it is not in the end they propose, but in the - choice of means, that most deceive themselves.”--Aristotle._ - - - - -GRAND RECONNAISSANCE - - _“In every situation the principal strategical requirements must - clearly be defined and all other things must be subordinated to - these considerations.”--Frederic the Great._ - - * * * * * - - _“One should seek to obtain a knowledge of causes, rather than - of effects; and should endeavor to reason from the known, to the - unknown.”--Euclid._ - - -_The province of Grand Reconnaissance is exactly to determine the -relative advantages and disadvantages in time, numbers, organization, -topography, mobility and position, which appertain to hostile armies -contained in the same strategetic plane; and to designate those Corps -d’armee by which such advantages are materially expressed._ - -Those processes which appertain to the making of Grand Reconnaissance, -necessarily are argumentative; inasmuch as all the facts never are -determinate. - -Consequently, talent of the highest order is required for the deducing -of conclusions which never can be based upon exact knowledge, and which -always must contemplate the presence of numerous unknown quantities. - -The responsibilities inherent to Grand Reconnaissance never are to be -delegated to, nor thrust upon subordinates. Scouts, spies, and informers -of every kind, have their manifold and proper uses, but such uses never -rise above furnishing necessary information in regard to topographical, -tactical, and logistic details. - -The Commander-in-chief alone is presumed to possess knowledge and skill -requisite to discern what strategetically is fact and what is not fact; -and to ascribe to each fact its proper place and sequence. - -Lack of military talent and of Strategetic knowledge, never is more -strikingly shown than by negligence or inability in this regard. - -Incompetents, ignorant of this truth, and oblivious to its importance, -devolve such vital responsibility upon subordinates; and later, these -legalized murderers palliate the slaughter of their troops and the -national shame by publicly reprimanding men serving at shillings per -month, for failing in a service, which were the latter able to perform, -would entitle them to the gold epaulets and general’s pay, of which their -commander is the unfit recipient. - - * * * * * - -Knowledge of the number, organization, position and movements of the -enemy’s troops is the basic element for correct calculation in campaign -and battle. - -Such things to be accurately estimated must be closely inspected. -All speculation and all conjecture in regard to these matters is but -frivolity. - -It is by being precipitate and hasty in making such conclusions, that men -are deceived, for to judge rightly of things before they become clearly -shown is most difficult. - -_To act on uncertainty is WRONG._ - -We do not know all the facts and a single iota of light later on may -oblige us to condemn that which we previously have approved. - - * * * * * - -In the making of Grand Reconnaissance, one always must be wary of placing -too much confidence in appearances and in first impressions. Especially -must care be taken not to magnify the weaknesses of the hostile army, nor -the efficacy of the kindred position. - -Also, one never should underrate: - - 1. The talents of the opposing commander; nor - - 2. The advantages possessed by the opposing army: - - (a) In numbers, - - (b) In organization, - - (c) In position, - - (d) In topography, - - (e) In time, - - (f) In mobility. - -It is a first essential, constantly to note the movements of the enemy, -in order to detect his plans and the exact location of his corps. - -These things are the only reliable guides for determining the true course -of procedure. It must be left to the enemy to show by his movements and -the posts which he occupies, the measures he projects for the future, and -until these are known, it is not proper to _ACT_. Hence: - - -PRINCIPLE - -_All movements of Corps Offensive should be governed by the POSITION of -the hostile army, and all movements of Corps Defensive should be governed -by the MOVEMENTS of the hostile army._ - -As soon as the enemy begins a movement, his intentions become clear. It -is then possible to make precise calculations. - -But be not hasty to build conclusions upon uncertain information and -do not take any resolutions until certain what are the numbers, the -position, the objectives, and the projects of the enemy. - -However interesting an undertaking may appear, one should not be seduced -by it while ill-informed of the obstacles to be met and the possibility -of not having sufficient force in the theatre of action. - -Chimerical schemes should be abandoned at their inception. Reason, -instead of extravagancies of the fancy, always must be the guide. Men, -most courageous, often undertake fearful difficulties, but impracticable -things they leave to lunatics. - -In all situations, one must beware of venturing beyond his depth. It is -wiser to keep within the limits which the knowledge we possess shall -prescribe. - -Especially in crises, one must proceed most cautiously until sure -information is acquired; for over-haste is exceedingly dangerous, -when exact knowledge is lacking of the enemy’s numbers, position, and -movements. - - -PRINCIPLE - -_Situations always should be contemplated as they EXIST, never as they -OUGHT to be, or, perhaps, MAY be._ - -In every important juncture, each step must be profoundly considered; as -little as possible should be left to chance. - -Particularly, must one never be inflated and rendered careless and -negligent by success; nor made spiritless and fearful by reverses. At all -times the General should see things only as they are and attempt what -is dictated by that Strategetic Principle which dominates the given -situation. Fortune often does the rest. - - * * * * * - -_“Napoleon bending over and sometimes lying at full length upon his -map, with a pair of dividers opened to a distance on the scale of from -17 to 20 miles, equal to 22 to 25 miles over country, and marking the -positions of his own and of the hostile armies by sticking into the map -pins surmounted by little balls made of diverse colored sealing wax; in -the twinkling of an eye calculated those wonderful concentrations of his -Corps d’armee upon decisive points and dictated those instructions to his -Marshals which in themselves are a title to glory.”--Baron de Jomini._ - - -MILITARY EXAMPLES - - _“Phillip, King of Macedonia, is the single confidant of his - own secrets, the sole dispenser of his treasure, the most able - general of all Greece, the bravest soldier in his army. He - foresees and executes everything himself; anticipates events, - derives all possible advantages from them and yields to them when - to yield is necessary._ - - _His troops are extremely well disciplined, he exercises them - incessantly. Always himself at their head, they perform with - arms and baggage marches of three hundred stadia with alarming - expedition and making no difference between summer or winter, - between fatigue and rest._ - - _He takes no step without mature reflection, nor proceeds to a - second until he is assured of the success of the first and his - operations are always dominated by considerations of time and - place.”--Apollodorus._ - -The facility with which one familiar with the Strategetic Art may make -Grand Reconnaissance, even of an invisible theatre of action, and may -evolve accurate deductions from a mass of inexact and contradictory -reports is illustrated by the following practical examples, viz.: - - -FIRST EXAMPLE. - -(From the _New York Journal_, Dec. 26, 1899 By =Franklin K. Young=.) - -“The position of the British armies is deplorable. - -“With the single exception of Gen. Buller’s force, the situation of these -bodies of British troops, thus unfortunately circumstanced, is cause for -the greatest anxiety. - -“Strong indications point to a grand offensive movement on the part of -the Boers, with the object of terminating the war in one campaign and by -a single blow. - -“True, this movement may be but a feint, but if it be a true movement, it -is difficult to over-estimate the gravity of the situation of the British -in South Africa. - -“For if this movement is a true military movement, it shows as clearly -as the sun in the sky to those who know the Strategetic Art, that the -Boer armies are in transition from the defensive to an offensive plan of -campaign, with the purpose of capturing DeArr and from thence advancing -in force against the chief British depot, Capetown.” - - * * * * * - -The United States War Department, _Report on the British-Boer War_, -published June 14, 1901, contains the following: - -(By =Capt. S. L’H. Slocum=, December 25, 1899. U. S. Military Attache -with the British Army.) - -“I consider the present situation to be the most critical for the English -forces, since hostilities began. Should the Boers assume offensive -operations, the English armies with their long and thinly guarded lines -of communication, would be placed in great jeopardy.” - - * * * * * - -(By =Chas. S. Goldmann=, war correspondent with Gen. Buller and Lord -Roberts in the South African Campaign. MacMillan & Co., 1902.) - -“Had the defence (of Cape Colony) been entrusted to less capable hands -than those of Gen. French, who, with a mere handful of troops succeeded -not only in checking the Boer advance, but in driving them back on -Colesberg, it is not unreasonable to suppose that the enemy would have -been able to push on south and west to Craddock and Hex River range and -thus bring about a state of affairs which might have shaken British rule -in South Africa to its foundation.” - - -SECOND EXAMPLE. - -(_Boston Globe_, Jan. 12, 1900. By =Franklin K. Young=.) - -“Lord Roberts’ first object will be the rescue of Lord Methuen’s army now -blockaded near Magersfontein by Gen. Conje. - -“As the first step to effect this, the British commander-in-chief at once -and with all his force, will occupy the line from Naauwpoort to De Arr. -There, he will await the arrival of twenty-two transports now en route -from England. - -“With these reinforcements, he will advance directly to the Modder River -by the route previously taken by Lord Methuen.” - - * * * * * - -(By =Chas. S. Goldmann=, Sp. Cor. British Army.) - -“Slow to recognize their opportunities, the enemy were still in the midst -of preparation, when Gen. French reached De Arr. Meanwhile a detachment -under Major McCracken occupied Naauwpoort, to which place thirty days’ -supplies for 3000 men and 1100 animals had been ordered. - -“In the ten weeks of fighting which ensued, prior to the arrival of the -British main army, Gen. French by his skillful tactics held a powerful -force of Boers at bay, checked their descent into the southern part of -the colony, defeated their attempt to display the Vierkleur across the -cape peninsular, and materially influenced, if not absolutely determined, -the entire future of the campaign.” - - * * * * * - -(By =Chas. S. Goldmann=, Sp. Cor. with British Army.) - -“Arriving at Capetown on Jan. 10, Lord Roberts decided that the line of -march should lead by way of Bloemfontein to Pretoria, initiating the -operation by the concentration of large forces on the Modder River, -forming there an advanced base.” - - -THIRD EXAMPLE. - -(_Boston Globe_, Jan. 21, 1900. By =Franklin K. Young=.) - -“It is plain that when the Boers took position at Colenso they prepared -their plan for the protection of their flanks; to deny this would be to -assume that men who had displayed superb military sagacity were ignorant -of the simplest processes of warfare. - -“What that plan is will be unfolded very rapidly should Gen. Buller -attempt to pierce the line of Boer vedettes posted upon the Spion Kop and -concealing as near as can be determined from the present meagre facts, -either the Second, or the Fourth Ambuscade. - -“In either case it signifies that the Boers are confident of annihilating -Gen. Buller’s army if it should cross the Tugela. - -“About this time the Boers are watching Gen. Warren and his command and -watching him intently. Something may happen to him.” - - * * * * * - -(_London Times_, Jan. 22, 1900.) - -“On Friday, Jan. 19, Gen. Warren began a long, circuitous march to the -westward for the purpose of turning the right of the Boer position. - -“This attempt was abandoned on account of the long ridge running from -Spion Kop being occupied by the Boers in such strength as to command the -entire route. - -“Saturday, Jan. 20, Gen. Warren, having crossed the Tugela River with the -bulk of his troops, ordered a frontal attack. Our men behaved splendidly -under a heavy cross-fire for seven hours. Our casualties were slight. -Three lines of rifle fire[1] were visible along the Boer main position.” - -[1] The Second Ambuscade. Vide “Secret Instructions” of Frederic the -Great. - - * * * * * - -(_British War Office Bulletin_, Jan. 22, 1900.) - -“Gen. Warren has been engaged all day chiefly on his left, which he has -swung forward a couple of miles.” - - (Signed) _Buller._ - - * * * * * - -(_British War Office Bulletin_, Jan. 24, 1900.) - -“Gen. Warren holds the position he gained two days ago. The Boer position -is on higher ground than ours and can be approached only over bare and -open slopes. An attempt will be made tonight to seize Spion Kop.” - - (Signed) _Buller._ - - * * * * * - -(_British War Office Bulletin_, Jan. 25, 1900.) - -“Gen. Warren’s troops last night occupied Spion Kop, surprising the -small[2] garrison which fled.” - - (Signed) _Buller._ - -[2] Merely the outposts and vedettes of the Second Ambuscade. - - * * * * * - -(_British War Office Bulletin_, Jan. 26, 1900.) - -“Gen. Warren’s garrison, I am sorry to say, I find this morning had in -the night abandoned Spion Kop.” - - (Signed) _Buller._ - - * * * * * - -(_British War Office Bulletin_, Jan. 28, 1900.) - -“I decided that a second attack on Spion Kop was useless[3] and that the -enemy’s right was too strong to allow me to force it. Accordingly I -decided to withdraw the troops to the south side of the Tugela River.” - - (Signed) _Buller._ - -[3] The proffer of an untenable post always is the bait of the Second -Ambuscade. - - * * * * * - -(_London Daily Mail_, Jan. 29, 1900.) - -“The richest and what was hitherto considered the most powerful nation -in the world is today in the humiliating position of seeing its armies -beaten back with heavy losses by two small states.” - - -FOURTH EXAMPLE. - -(_Boston Globe_, Feb. 16, 1900, by =Franklin K. Young=.) - -“Lord Roberts’ communications for nearly two hundred miles are exposed -to the attack of an enemy, who at any moment is liable to capture and -destroy his supply and ammunition trains and to reduce the British army -to a condition wherein it will be obliged to fight a battle under most -disadvantageous circumstances.” - - * * * * * - -(From United States War Department _Report on the British Boer War_. By -=Capt. S. L’H. Slocum=, U. S. Attache with British Army.) - -“Feb. 15, 1900. The main supply park of the army was attacked by the -enemy near Watervale Drift. - -“This park consisted of one hundred ox-wagons containing rations and one -hundred more wagons filled with ammunition. One hundred and fifty of -these wagons and three thousand oxen were captured by the Boers. - -“The loss of these rations and munitions was a most serious blow. Lord -Roberts was here confronted by a crisis which would have staggered and -been the undoing of many commanders-in-chief placed as he was. - -“He was in the enemy’s country, cut off from his base of supplies on the -railroad and with an unknown number of the enemy in his rear and upon his -line of communication. His transport was nearly all captured and his army -was suddenly reduced to three days full rations on the eve of a great -movement and the country afforded no food whatever. The crisis still -further developed when a courier brought the report that the Boers were -in position at Watervale Drift and commanding the ford with artillery.” - - -FIFTH EXAMPLE. - -(_Boston Globe_, Feb. 25, 1900. By =Franklin K. Young=.) - -“There is reason to believe that should worse come to worse, the Boer -Army, should it be compelled to abandon its position, will be able to -save its personnel by a rapid flight across the Modder. Of course, in -this case, the Boers would lose their supplies and cannon.” - - * * * * * - -(From United States War Department, _Report on the British Boer War_. By -=Capt. S. L’H. Slocum=, U. S. Attache, with British Army.) - -“The enemy, under Cronje, with all his transport was in all practical -effect surrounded, although by abandoning his wagons and supplies, a -large number of the Boers undoubtedly could have escaped.” - - * * * * * - -(_Boston Sunday Times_, March, 1900. By =Franklin K. Young=.) - -“Cronje’s conduct was heroic and imbecile in the extreme. As the -commander on the ground he is entitled to all the glory and must assume -all the blame. One of the ablest of the Boer generals, he is the only one -in the whole war to make a mistake. - -“Cronje’s first duty was to decide whether he should stand or run; he -decided to run, which was proper, but having so decided he should have -run at once and not have stopped running until safe on the north bank of -the Vaal River. - -“Properly he sent his siege guns and trains off to the north across the -Vaal and improperly held his position in force on the British front, -instead of withdrawing his personnel after his material. - -“This blunder, like all blunders of a commander-in-chief, quickly -produced blunders by his subordinates. Commander Ferrera permitted French -to get around Cronje’s left flank without a battle. The presence of this -force on his rear cut Cronje off from his natural line of retreat across -the Vaal and compelled him to flee toward Bloemfontein. - -“Even now Cronje was all right; he easily and brilliantly out-manoeuvred -the British and gained the protection of the Modder River. But a second -time he blundered. Instead of first executing Ferrera and then abandoning -everything and devoting all his efforts to saving his men, he neglected -an obvious and imperative military duty and clung to his slow-moving -cannon and wagons. - -“Finally he took position on the Modder and resolved to fight the whole -British army. This was fatal. - -“Then for the fourth time he blundered. Having made his decision to -fight he should not have surrendered to the British on the anniversary -of Majuba Hill. On the contrary, surrounded by the mightiest army the -British empire ever put in the field and enveloped in the smoke of a -hundred cannon, Cronje, upon a rampart formed by his dead army and with -his last cartridge withstanding the destroyers of his country, would have -presented to posterity a more spectacular and seemingly a more fitting -termination of the career of the Lion of South Africa.” - - * * * * * - -_“Mere hope of attaining their desires, coupled with ignorance of the -processes necessary to their accomplishment, is the common delusion and -the certain destruction of the inexperienced.”--Plato._ - - - - -ORGANIZATION - - _“To employ in warfare an uninstructed people is to destroy the - nation.”--Chinese Saying._ - - * * * * * - - Antiochus, King of Syria, reviewing his immense but untrained and - undisciplined army at Ephesus, asked of Hannibal, “if they were - not enough for the Romans.” - - “Yes,” replied the great Carthagenian, “enough to glut the - bloodthirstiness, even of the Romans.” - - * * * * * - - _“A man in the vigor of life and capable of sustaining the - heaviest fatigues, but untrained in warfare, is fitted not to - bear arms, but to bear baggage.”--Timoleon._ - - - - -ORGANIZATION - - _“The chief distinction between an army and a mob is the good - order and discipline of the former and the disorderly behavior of - the latter.”--Washington._ - - * * * * * - - “It is the duty of the commander-in-chief frequently to assemble - the most prudent and experienced of his generals and to consult - with them as to the state of his own and of the enemies’ troops. - - “He must examine which army has the better weapons, which is the - better trained and disciplined; superior in condition and most - resolute in emergencies. - - “He must note whether himself or the adversary has the superior - infantry, cavalry or artillery, and particularly must he discern - any marked lack in quantity and quality of men or horses, and any - difference in equipment of those corps which necessarily will be - or because of such reason, advantageously may be opposed to each - other. - - “Advantages in Organization determine the field of battle to - be preferred, which latter should be selected with the view of - profiting to the uttermost by the use of specially equipped - corps, to whom the enemy is not able to oppose similar troops. - - “If a general finds himself superior to his enemy he must use all - means to bring on an engagement, but if he sees himself inferior, - he must avoid battle and endeavor to succeed by surprises, - stratagems and ambuscades; which last skillfully managed often - have gained the victory over foemen superior in numbers and in - strength.”--_Vergetius._ - - -_Advantage in Organization consists in having one or more Corps d’armee -which in equipment or in composition are so superior to the hostile -corps to which they may become opposed, as entails to them exceptional -facilities for the execution of those major tactical evolutions that -appertain to any tactical area made up of corresponding geometric or -sub-geometric symbols._ - - -PRINCIPLE - -_Advantage in Organization determines the choice of a prospective -battlefield; and the latter always should be composed of those tactical -areas which permit of the fullest exercise of the powers peculiar to -kindred corps d’armee._ - -Every corps d’armee thus especially equipped should be constantly and -energetically employed in the prospective battle; and usually it will -eventuate as the Prime Tactical Factor in the decisive Major Tactical -evolution. - - * * * * * - -Notions most mistaken prevail in regard to the Pawns and Pieces of the -Chessboard. - -To suppose that the Chessmen _per se_ may be utilized to typify the -different arms of the military service is a fallacy. - -Many unfamiliar with the technicalities of Strategetic Science delude -themselves that the Pawns, on account of their slow and limited -movements properly are to be regarded as Infantry; that the Knights -because topped by horses’ heads thereby qualify as light Cavalry; the -Bishops, for reasons unknown, often are held to represent Artillery; the -Rooks, because of their swift, direct and far-reaching movements are -thought to duplicate heavy Cavalry; while the Queen, in most of these -unsophisticated philosophies, is supposed to constitute a Reserve. - -Nothing can be further from the truth than such assumptions. - -As a fundamental of military organization applied to Chessplay, each -Chesspiece typifies in itself a complete Corps d’armee. Each of these -Chessic corps d’armee is equal to every other in strength, but all -differ, more or less, in construction and in facilities, essential to the -performance of diverse and particular duties. - -Thus it is that while every Chesspiece represents a perfectly appointed -and equally powerful body of troops, these corps d’armee in Chessplay as -in scientific warfare are not duplicates, except to others of their own -class. Each of these corps d’armee is made up of Infantry, Cavalry and -Artillery in correct proportion to the service they are to perform and -such proportions are determined not by simple arithmetic, but by those -deployments, developments, evolutions, and manoeuvres, which such corps -d’armee is constructed promptly and efficiently to execute. - -The Chessmen, therefore, do not as individuals represent either infantry, -cavalry or artillery. - -But in the same manner as the movements of troops over the surface of -the earth, exemplify the attributes of the three kindred grand columns -in the greater logistics of a campaign; so do those peculiarities which -appertain to the moves of the different Chesspieces exemplify the action -of the three chief arms of the military service; either singly or in -combination against given points in given times, in the evolutions of the -battlefield, viz.: - - -CORPS D’ARMEE EN MARCH. - -The march of: - - (_a_) Infantry, alone, or of - - (_b_) Cavalry, alone, or of - - (_c_) Artillery, alone, or of - - (_d_) Infantry and Cavalry, or of - - (_e_) Infantry and Artillery, or of - - (_f_) Cavalry and Artillery, or of - - (_g_) Infantry, Cavalry and Artillery, - -is indicated by the movement of any Chesspiece from a given point to an -unoccupied adjacent point. - -The march of: - - (_a_) Cavalry, alone, or of - - (_b_) Artillery, alone, or of - - (_c_) Cavalry and Artillery, - -is indicated by the movement of any Chesspiece from a given point to an -unoccupied point, _not_ an adjacent point. - - -CORPS D’ARMEE EN ASSAULT. - -The _Charge of Infantry_ is indicated by the movement of any Chesspiece -from a given point to an occupied adjacent point; posting itself thereon -and capturing the adverse piece there located. - -The _Charge of Cavalry_ is indicated by the movement of any Chesspiece -from a given point to an occupied point _not_ an adjacent point; posting -itself thereon and capturing the adverse piece there located. - - -CORPS D’ARMEE FIRE EFFECT. - -_Infantry:_ - -_Offensive Fire Effect._ Compelling an adverse piece to withdraw from its -post upon an adjacent occupied point. - -_Defensive Fire Effect._ Preventing an adverse piece from occupying an -adjacent unoccupied point. - -_Artillery:_ - -_Offensive Fire Effect._ Compelling an adverse piece to withdraw from its -post upon an occupied point not an adjacent point. - -_Defensive Fire Effect._ Preventing an adverse piece from occupying an -unoccupied point not an adjacent point. - - -CHESSIC CORPS D’ARMEE. - -The _Corps d’armee of the Chessboard_ are divided into two classes: viz.: - - I. Corps of Position. - - II. Corps of Evolution. - - -CORPS D’ARMEE OF POSITION. - - _“The Pawns are the soul of Chess; upon their good or bad - arrangement depends the gain or loss of the game.”--Philidor._ - -_The eight Pawns_, by reason of their limited movements, their inability -to move backward and the peculiarity of their offensive and defensive -powers, are best adapted of the Chesspieces to perform those functions -which in the Military Art appertain to Corps of Position. - -Each Corps of Position has its particular and designated Point of -Mobilization and of Development, which differ with the various Strategic -Fronts. - -Upon each Corps of Position devolves the duties of maintaining itself -as a consistent integer of the established, or projected kindred Pawn -Integral; as a possible kindred Promotable Factor and as a Point of -Impenetrability upon the altitude of an opposing Pawn. - -Corps of Position take their individual appelation from their posts in a -given formation, viz.: - - 1. Base Corps. - - 2. Pivotal Corps. - - 3. Minor Vertex Corps. - - 4. Minor Corps Aligned. - - 5. Major Vertex Corps. - - 6. Major Corps Aligned. - - 7. Corps Enpotence. - - 8. Minor Corps Enceinte. - - 9. Major Corps Enceinte. - - 10. Corps Echeloned. - - 11. Corps En Appui. - - 12. Base Corps Refused. - - 13. Pivotal Corps Refused. - - 14. Minor Vertex Corps Refused. - - 15. Minor Corps Aligned Refused. - - 16. Major Vertex Corps Refused. - - 17. Major Corps Aligned Refused. - - 18. Major Corps Refused Enpotence. - - 19. Corps en Major Crochet. - - 20. Corps en Minor Crochet. - - 21. Corps en Crochet Aligned. - - 22. Corps Doubly Aligned. - - 23. Grand Vertex Corps. - -The above formations by Corps of Position are described and illustrated -in detail in preceding text-books by the author, entitled: - - The Minor Tactics of Chess. - - The Grand Tactics of Chess. - -The normal use of Corps of Position is limited to Lines of Mobilization, -of Development and to the Simple Line of Manoeuvre. - - -CORPS D’ARMEE OF EVOLUTION. - - _“Every man in Alexander’s army is so well trained and obedient - that at a single word of command, officers and soldiers make any - movement and execute any evolution in the art of warfare._ - - _“Only such troops as themselves can check their career and - oppose their bravery and expertness.”--Caridemus._ - -_The eight Pieces_, by reason of their ability to move in all directions, -the scope of their movements and the peculiar exercises of their -offensive and defensive powers, are best adapted of the Chesspieces to -perform those functions which in the Military Art appertain to Corps of -Evolution. - -_Corps of Evolution_ acting offensively, take their individual -appelations from the points which constitute their objective in the true -Strategetic Horizon, viz.: - - 1. Corps of the Right. - - 2. Corps of the Centre. - - 3. Corps of the Left. - -_Corps of Evolution_ acting defensively, take their individual -appelations from the particular duties they are required to perform, viz.: - - 1. Supporting Corps. - - 2. Covering Corps. - - 3. Sustaining Corps. - - 4. Corps of Impenetrability. - - 5. Corps of Resistance. - -The normal use of Corps of Evolution is limited to Lines of Manoeuvre. -When acting on a Simple Line of Manoeuvre, a Corps of Evolution may -deploy on the corresponding Line of Mobilization; but it has nothing in -common with the Line of Development, which latter appertains exclusively -to Corps of Position. - -Any corps d’armee, whether of Position or of Evolution may be utilized -upon a Line of Operations. - - -THE KING. - -Regarded as a Chessic Corps d’armee, the King marches as infantry, -cavalry and artillery; but it attacks as infantry exclusively and never -as cavalry or artillery. - -Although every situation upon the Chessboard contemplates the presence of -both Kings, either, or neither, or both, may, or may not be present in -any given Strategetic Horizon. - -Whenever the King is present in a given Strategetic Horizon the effect of -his co-operation is mathematically outlined, thus: - -I. At his maximum of efficiency, the King occupies the centre of a circle -of one point radius. His offensive power is equally valid against all -eight points contained in his circumference, but his defensive power is -valid for the support from a minimum of one point to a maximum of five -points. - -II. At his medium of efficiency the King occupies the centre of a -semi-circle of one point radius. - -His offensive power is valid against all five points contained in his -semi-circumference, and his defensive power is valid for the support from -a minimum of one, to a maximum of five points. - -III. At his minimum of efficiency, the King occupies the centre of a -quadrant of one point radius. Both his offensive and his defensive powers -are valid against all three points contained in his segment. - - -THE QUEEN. - -Regarded as a Chessic Corps d’armee the Queen marches and attacks as -infantry, cavalry and artillery. - -Either, neither, or both Queens may be present in any given Strategetic -Horizon; and whenever present the effect of her co-operation -mathematically is outlined, viz.: - -At her maximum of efficiency the Queen occupies the common vertex of one -or more unequal triangles, whose aggregate area is from a minimum of 21 -to a maximum of 27 points. Her offensive power is equally valid against -all of these points; but her defensive power is valid for the support -from a minimum of one point to a maximum of five points. - - -THE ROOK. - -Regarded as a Chessic Corps d’armee the Rook marches and attacks as -infantry, cavalry and artillery. - -From one to four Rooks may be present in any given Strategetic Horizon; -and whenever present the effect of its co-operation mathematically is -outlined, viz.: - -At her maximum of efficiency, the Rook occupies the common angle of four -quadrilaterals, whose aggregate area always is 14 points. The Offensive -Power of the Rook is equally valid against all these points, but his -defensive power is valid for the support of only two points. - - -THE BISHOP. - -Regarded as a Chessic Corps d’armee, the Bishop marches and attacks as -infantry, cavalry and artillery. - -From one to four Bishops may be present in any Strategetic Horizon; -and whenever present the effect of its co-operation mathematically is -outlined, viz.: - -At its maximum of efficiency, the Bishop occupies the common vertex -of four unequal triangles, having a maximum of 13 and a minimum of 9 -points. His offensive power is valid against all of these points but his -defensive power is valid only for the support of two points. - - -KNIGHT. - -Regarded as a Chessic Corps d’armee the Knight marches and attacks as -cavalry and artillery. - -From one to four Knights may be present in any given Strategetic Horizon; -and whenever present the effect of its co-operation mathematically is -outlined, viz.: - -At its maximum of efficiency, the Knight occupies the centre of an -octagon of two points radius, having a minimum of two points and a -maximum of eight points area. His offensive power is equally valid -against all of these eight points, but his defensive power is valid for -the support of only one point. - - -THE PAWN. - -Regarded as a Chessic Corps d’armee, the Pawn at its normal post marches -as infantry and cavalry. Should an adverse corps, however, take post -within the kindred side of the Chessboard; that Pawn upon whose altitude -the adverse Piece appears, at once loses its equestrian attributes and -marches and attacks exclusively as infantry. - -Located at any other point than at its normal post, the Pawn is composed -exclusively of infantry and never acts either as cavalry or artillery. - -From one to eight Pawns may be present in any Strategetic Horizon; -and whenever present the effect of its co-operation mathematically is -outlined as follows: - -At its maximum of efficiency the Pawn occupies the vertex of a triangle -of two points. Its offensive power is equally valid against both of these -points; but its defensive power is valid for the support of only one -point. - - -POTENTIAL COMPLEMENTS. - -Subjoined is a table of the potential complements of the Chesspieces. - - The King 6⁹⁄₁₆ units. - The Queen 22¼ ” - The Rook 14 ” - The Bishop 8¾ ” - The Knight 5¼ ” - The Pawn 1½ ” - -The student clearly should understand that this table does not indicate -prowess, but relates exclusively to normal facilities for bringing force -into action. - - * * * * * - -The relative advantage in Organization possessed by one army over an -opposing army always can be determined by the following, viz.: - - -_RULE._ - -1. Above a line, set down in order those abbreviations which properly -designate the White corps d’armee present in a given Strategetic -Situation; and below the line, set down those abbreviations which in like -manner designate the Black corps d’armee, viz.: - - K+Q+R+R+P+P+P+P - ---------------- - K+Q+R+B+P+P+P+P+P - -2. Cancel all like symbols and resolve the unlike symbols remaining, into -their respective Potential complements, viz.: - - R 14 - --- = ------- = --- - B+P 8¾ + 1½ 10¼ - -3. Subtract the lesser Potential total from the greater and the -difference will be the relative advantage in Organization. - -4. To utilize the relative advantage in Organization select a battlefield -in which the Strategic Key, the Tactical Keys and the Points of Command -of the True Strategetic Horizon are situated upon the perimeters of those -geometric and sub-geometric symbols which appertain to the corps d’armee -whose superior potentiality is established by Section 2. - -5. To neutralize the relative disadvantage in Organization, occupy the -necessary posts upon the battlefield selected in such a manner that the -kindred decisive points are situated _not_ upon the perimeters of the -geometric and sub-geometric symbols appertaining to the adverse corps -d’armee of superior potentiality; while the adverse decisive points _are_ -situated upon the perimeters of the geometric and sub-geometric symbols -which appertain to the kindred corps d’armee of inferior potentiality. - - -MILITARY EXAMPLES - - _“Men habituated to luxury cannot contend with an army accustomed - to fatigue and inured to want.”--Caesar._ - - * * * * * - - _“That wing with which you propose to engage the enemy should be - composed of your best troops.”--Epaminondas._ - -The _Sacred Band_ of the Thebans was composed of men selected for valor -and character. Epaminondas called them _Comrades_ and by honorable -rewards and distinctions induced them to bear without murmur the hardest -fatigues and to confront with intrepidity the greatest dangers. - -At Leuctra (371 B.C.) and again at Mantinea (362 B.C.) the right wing -of the Lacedaemonian Army, composed exclusively of Spartans and for six -hundred years invincible, was overthrown and destroyed by the Sacred Band -led by Epaminondas. - -This formidable body of Theban warriors was massacred by Alexander the -Great at the Battle of Chaeronea (338 B.C.) - - * * * * * - -The _Macedonian Phalanx_ was devised by Philip, King of Macedon. It was -made up of heavy infantry accoutred with cuirass, helmet, greaves, and -shield. The principal weapon was a pike twenty-four feet long. - -The Phalanx had a front of two hundred and fifty-six files and a depth of -sixteen ranks. A file of sixteen men was termed Lochos; two files were -called Dilochie; four files made a Tetrarchie; eight files a Taxiarchie -and thirty-two of the last constituted a simple Phalanx of 4096 men. -A grand Phalanx had a front of one thousand and twenty-four files and -a depth of sixteen ranks. It was made up of four simple Phalanxes and -contained 16,384 men. - -With this formation of his infantry, Alexander the Great, when eighteen -years of age, destroyed the Allied Athenian--Theban--Boeotian army at -Chaeronea, the hosts of Persia at the river Grancius (334 B.C.) at Issus -(333 B.C.) and Arbela (331 B.C.) and conquered Porus, King of India at -the Hydaspes (326 B.C.). - - * * * * * - -The _Spanish Heavy Cavalry_ and _Nubian Infantry_ of Hannibal was a -reproduction of that Macedonian organization whereby Alexander the Great -had conquered the world. - -With this formation Hannibal maintained himself for fifteen years in -the richest provinces of Italy and destroyed seven Roman armies, at the -Trebia (218 B.C.) at Lake Trasymenus (217 B.C.) at Cannae (216 B.C.) and -at Herdonea (212 B.C.) at Herdonea (210 B.C.) at Locri (208 B.C.) and at -Apulia (208 B.C.). - -At Zama (202 B.C.) Hannibal’s effacement as a military factor was -directly due to his lack of that organization which had been the -instrument of his previous successes; a circumstance thus commented on by -the victorious Roman commander, Scipio Africanus; - - “Hitherto I have been opposed by an army without a general; now - they send against me a General without an army.” - - * * * * * - -The _Tenth Legion_ of Caesar was the quintessence of that perfection -in elementary tactics devised by the Romans to accord with the use of -artillery. - -The fundamentals of minor tactics as elucidated by Epaminondas and -exploited by Alexander the Great and Hannibal are unchanged in the -Legion, but by subdivision of the simple Phalanx into ten Cohorts, a -necessary and maximum gain in mobility was effected. - -The Roman Legion consisted of 6100 infantry and 726 cavalry, divided -into the Militarain Cohort of 1105 heavy foot, 132 Cuirassiers and nine -ordinary Cohorts, each containing 555 heavy foot and 66 Cuirassiers. -The Legion was drawn up in three lines; the first of which was termed -Principes, the second Hastati, and the third Triarii. The infantry were -protected by helmet, cuirass, greaves and shield; their arms were a long -sword, a short sword, five javelins and two large spears. - -With this formation Caesar over-run Spain, Gaul, Germany, Britain, -Africa, Greece, and Italy. The Scots alone withstood him and the ruins -of a triple line of Roman entrenchments extending from the North to -the Irish Seas to this day mark the southern boundary of the Scottish -Highlands and the northern limit of Roman dominion. - -At Pharseleus, Pompey made the inexplicable blunder of placing his best -troops in his right wing, which was covered by the river Enipeus and -inferior troops on his left wing which was in the air. By its first -charge, the Tenth Legion destroyed the latter, outflanked the entire -Pompeian army, drove it backward into the river and single handed won for -Caesar undisputed dominion of the Earth. - - * * * * * - -The _Scots Volunteers_ of Gustavus Adolphus consisted of two brigades -aggregating about 12,000 foot, made up of Scottish gentlemen who for -various reasons were attracted to the Continental Wars. - -At Leipsic, (Sept. 7, 1631) 20,000 Saxons, constituting one-half of the -allied Protestant army, were routed at the first charge, put to flight -and never seen again. Tilly’s victorious right wing then turned upon the -flank of the King’s army. Three regiments of the Scots Volunteers on foot -held in check in open field 12,000 of the best infantry and cavalry in -Europe, until Gustavus had destroyed the Austrian main body and hastened -to their aid with the Swedish heavy cavalry. - -The Castle of Oppenheim was garrisoned by 800 Spanish infantry. Gustavus -drew up 2,000 Swedes to escalade the place. Thirty Scots Volunteers, -looking on observed that the Spaniards, intently watching the King had -neglected to guard the opposite side of the fortress. Beckoning to their -aid about a hundred of their comrades, they scaled the wall, captured the -garrison and opened the gates to the king. Gustavus entered on foot, hat -in hand. “My brave Scots,” said he, “you carry in your scabbards, the key -to every castle in Europe.” - - * * * * * - -The _Van-Guard_ of Frederic the Great is the perfect adaptation of the -minor tactics of Epaminondas to gunpowder. This choice body was made -up of the best troops in the army divided into infantry, cuirassiers, -dragoons and light artillery. - -The Van-Guard, a miniature army in itself, always marched between the -main body and the enemy; it always led in the attack, followed by that -wing containing the best soldiers, in two lines; and supported by the -heavy cavalry on that flank. - -At Rosbach (Nov. 5, 1757) the Prussian Van-Guard, composed of 4,800 -infantry, 2,500 cavalry and 30 guns, annihilated 70,000 French regular -troops, by evolutions so rapidly executed that the Prussian main army -was unable to overtake either pursuers or pursued and had no part in the -battle, other than as highly interested spectators. - -The _Continentals_ of the Revolutionary army under Washington were made -up of troops enlisted for the war and trained by Baron von Steuben, a -Major-General in the Prussian service, who had served throughout the -Seven Years War under Frederic the Great. - -The Continentals, without firing a shot, carried by assault, Stony -Point (July 16, 1779), Paulus Hook (July 20, 1779) and the British -intrenchments at Yorktown (Oct. 19, 1781). Of these troops, the Baron von -Steuben writes: - - “I am satisfied with having shown to those who understand the - Art of Warfare, an American army worthy of their approbation; - officers who know their profession and who would do honor to any - army in Europe; an infantry such as England has never brought - into the field, soldiers temperate, well-drilled and obedient and - the equal of any in the world.” - - * * * * * - -The _Consular Guard_ was the reproduction of the Van Guard of Frederic -the Great, but its sphere of action was strangely restricted by -Bonaparte, who, instead of placing his best troops in the front of his -army, as is the practice of all other of the Great Captains; subordinated -their functions to that of a reserve and to personal attendance upon -himself. - -This Corps d’elite was but once notably in action; at Marengo (June 14, -1800) it undoubtedly saved the day for France, by maintaining the battle -until the arrival of Gen. Desaix and his division. - - * * * * * - -The _Imperial Guard_ of Napoleon was the development of the Consular -Guard of Bonaparte. Under the Empire the Guard became an independent -army, consisting of light and heavy infantry, horse and field artillery, -cuirassiers, dragoons, hussars and chasseurs, and composed of the best -troops in the French service. - -The functions of this fine body, like that of its prototype, was limited -to the duties of a reserve and to attendance upon the person of the -Emperor; and perhaps next to announcement of victory, Napoleon’s favorite -bulletin always read, “The Imperial Guard was not engaged.” - -Many were the unavailing remonstrances made by his advisors against this -policy, which judged by the practice of the great masters of warfare, is -putting the cart before the horse; and seemingly is that speck of cloud -in Napoleon’s political sky, which properly may be deemed a precursor of -St. Helena. - -At Austerlitz (Dec. 2, 1805), the cuirassiers of the French Imperial -Guard routed a like body of Russian cavalry. At Eylau (Nov. 7, 1807) the -Guard, as at Marengo again saved the day, after the corps d’armee of -Soult and Angereau had been destroyed, by maintaining the battle until -the arrival of Ney and Davoust. In the retreat from Russia (1812) the -Guard then numbering 64,000 men was nearly destroyed. What was left of -it won at Ligny (June 16, 1815), Napoleon’s last victory and at Waterloo -(June 18, 1815), one of its two surviving divisions covered the flight of -the French army, while the other escorted Napoleon in safety to Paris. - - * * * * * - -The _Royal Prussian Guard_, under Von Moltke, was organized and utilized -in accord with the teachings of Frederic the Great. - -Its most notable achievement occurred in the campaign of 1870. The right -flank of the French having been turned by the battle of Woerth (Aug. -4, 1870) and Marshal MacMahon’s army being driven to the westward, it -became the paramount object of Von Moltke to seize the country in rear of -Metz and thus prevent the retreat of Marshall Bazine across the Moselle -River. - -The Royal Prussian Guard out-marching both friends and enemies first -reached the Nancy road (Aug. 18, 1870) and until the German corps reached -the battlefield this body of picked troops successfully withstood the -assault of nearly the entire French army. In the first half-hour the -Guard lost 8,000 men. - -As the result of all this, Marshal Bazine with 150,000 men was forced -back into and taken in the intrenched camp at Metz; and the Emperor -Napoleon III, Marshal MacMahon and a second French army of 140,000 men -was captured at Sedan (Sept. 1, 1870), in an attempt to rescue Marshal -Bazine. - -_“I must tell you beforehand this will be a bloody touch. Tilly has a -great army of old lads with iron faces that dare look an enemy in the -eye; they are confident of victory, have never been beaten and do not -know what it means to fly. Tilly tells his men he will beat me and the -old man is as likely to do it as to say it.”--Gustavus Adolphus._ - -“Tilly’s men were rugged, surly fellows; their faces mangled by wounds -and scars had an air of hardy courage. I observed of them that their -clothes were always dirty, their armor rusty from winter storms and -bruised by musket-balls, their weapons sharp and bright. They were -used to camp in the open fields and to sleep in the frosts and rain. -The horses like the men were strong and hardy and knew by rote their -exercises. Both men and animals so well understood the trade of arms that -a general command was sufficient; every man was fit to command the whole, -and all evolutions were performed in order and with readiness, at a note -of the trumpet or a motion of their banners. - -“The 7th of Sept. (1631) before sunrise, the Swedish army marched from -Dieben to a large field about a mile from Leipsic, where we found old -Tilly’s army in full battalia in admirable order, which made a show both -glorious and terrible. - -“Tilly, like a fair gamester, had taken up but one side of the plain, -and left the other side clear and all the avenues open to the King’s -approach, nor did he stir to the charge until the Swedish army was -fully drawn up and was advancing toward him. He had with him 44,000 old -soldiers and a better army I believe never was so soundly beaten.… - -“Then was made a most dreadful slaughter, and yet there was no flying. -Tilly’s men might be killed or knocked down, but no man turned his back, -nor would give an inch of ground, save as they were marched, wheeled, or -retreated by their officers.… About six o’clock the field was cleared of -the enemy except at one place on the King’s front, where some of them -rallied; and though they knew that all was lost, they would take no -quarter, but fought it out to the last man, being found dead the next day -in rank and file as they were drawn up.” - - * * * * * - -Perfection in Organization is attained when troops instantly and -intelligently act according to order and execute with exactness and -precision any and every prescribed evolution. - - - - -TOPOGRAPHY - - _“Let us not consider where we shall give battle, but where we - may gain the victory.”--Phocion._ - - * * * * * - - _“There can be no discretion in a movement which forsakes the - advantage in ground.”--Gustavus Adolphus._ - - * * * * * - - _“That battlefield is best which is adapted to the full use of - the chief constituents of your army and unfavorable to the mass - of the enemy.”--Napoleon._ - - - - -TOPOGRAPHY - - _“The ground is the CHESSBOARD of we cannibals; and it is the - selection and use made of it, that decides the knowledge or the - ignorance of those by whom it is occupied.”--Frederic the Great._ - - -_The highest use of Topography consists in reducing a superior adverse -force to the inferior force, by minimizing the radius of action of the -hostile Corps d’armee._ - -_This is effected by so posting the kindred corps that in the resulting -Strategetic Horizons, impassable natural barriers are presented to the -march of hostile corps toward their respective objectives._ - -On the surface of the earth such natural barriers are formed by -mountains, rivers, lakes, swamps, forests, deserts, the ocean, and the -boundaries of neutral States. - -On the Chess-board these topographical conditions are typified by -peculiarities and limitations in the movements of the Chess-pieces, viz.: - -I. The sides of the Chess-board which terminate all movements of the -chess pieces. - -II. That limitation of the movements of the Chesspieces which makes it -impossible for them to move other than in straight lines. - -III. The inability of the Queen to move on obliques. - -IV. The inability of the Rook to move either on obliques or on diagonals. - -V. The inability of the Bishop to move either on obliques, verticals, or -horizontals. - -VI. The inability of the Knight to move either on diagonals, verticals, -or horizontals, and the limitation of its move to two squares distance. - -VII. The inability of the Pawn to move either on obliques or horizontals, -and the limitation of its first move to two squares and of its subsequent -moves to one square. - -VIII. The limitation of the King’s move to one square. - -These limitations and impediments to the movements of the Chess-pieces, -are equivalent in Chess-play to obstacles interposed by Nature to the -march of troops over the surface of the earth. - -Prefect Generalship, in its calculations, so combines these -insurmountable barriers with the relative positions of the contending -armies, that the kindred army becomes at every vital point the superior -force. - -This effect is produced by merely causing rivers and mountains to take -the place of kindred Corps d’armee. - -It is only by the study of Chessic topography that the tremendous -problems solved by the chess player become manifest: - -_Instead of calculations limited to one visible and unchangeable -Chess-board of sixty-four squares, the divinations of the Chess-master -comprehend and harmonize as many invisible Chess-boards as there are -Chess-pieces contained in the Topographical Zone._ - -Furthermore, all these surfaces differ to the extent and in conformity to -that particular sensible horizon, appertaining to the Chess-piece from -which it emanates. - -The enormous difficulties of Chess-play, like those of warfare, arise -from the necessity of combining in a single composite topographical -horizon, all those differing, sensible horizons which appertain, not -merely to the kindred, but also to the hostile corps; and to do this in -such a manner, as to minimize the hostile powers for offence and defence, -by debarring one or more of the hostile pieces from the true Strategetic -Horizon. - -_To divide up the enemy’s force, by making natural barriers take the -place of troops, is the basis of those processes which dominate Grand -Manoeuvres._ - -Of all the deductions of Chess-play and of warfare, such combinations of -Strategy and Topography are the most subtle and intangible. The highest -talent is required in its interpretation, and mastery of it, more than of -any other branch of Strategetics, proclaims the great Captain at war, or -at chess. - - -TOPOGRAPHY OF THE KING - -From the view-point of the _King_, the surface of the Chess-board takes -on the topographical aspect of a vast expanse of open, level country. - -This vista is void of insurmountable natural obstacles, other than the -sides and extremities. The latter collectively may be regarded, for -strategical purposes, either as the Ocean, or the boundaries of neutral -States. - -To the King, this vast territory is accessible in all directions. At his -pleasure he may move to and occupy either of the sixty-four squares of -the Chess-board, in a minimum of one and in a maximum of seven moves. The -only obstacles to his march are distance and the opposition of an enemy. - -The Strategical weakness of the Topographical Horizon peculiar to the -King arises from its always taking on and maintaining the physical form -of a plain. Consequently it is vulnerable to attack from all sides -and what is far worse, it readily is commanded and from a superior -topographical post, by every adverse piece, except the King and Pawn. - -Thus, the hostile Queen, without being attacked in return, may enfilade -the King along all verticals, horizontals and diagonals; the Rooks, along -all verticals and horizontals; the Bishops, along all diagonals of like -color; and the Knights along all obliques. - - -TOPOGRAPHY OF THE QUEEN - -From the view-point of the _Queen_, the surface of the Chess-board -takes on the topographical aspect of a series of wide, straight valleys -separated by high, impassable mountain ranges, unfordable rivers, and -impenetrable forests and morasses. These valleys, which number never less -than three, nor more than eight, in the same group, are of varying length -and always converge upon and unite with each other at the point occupied -by the Queen. - -These valleys contained in the Queen’s topographical horizon may be -classified, viz.: - -Class I, consists of those groups made up of three valleys. - -Class II, of those groups made up of five valleys. - -Class III, of those groups made up of eight valleys of lesser area; and - -Class IV, of those groups made up of eight valleys of greater area. - -Groups of the first class always have an area of twenty points; those of -the second have an area of twenty-three points; those of the third have -an area of twenty-five points, and those of the fourth have an area of -twenty-seven points. Such areas always are exclusive of that point upon -which the Queen is posted. - -Although impassable natural barriers restrict the movement of the Queen -to less than one-half of the Topographical Zone, these obstacles always -are intersected by long stretches of open country formed by intervening -valleys. - -Hence, the march of this most mobile of the Chesspieces always is open -either in three, five, or eight directions, and it always is possible for -her, unless impeded by the interference of kindred or hostile corps, to -reach any desired point on the Chess-board in two moves. - -The weakness peculiar to the Topographical Horizon which appertains to -the Queen, originates in the fact that it never commands the origins of -obliques. Consequently, every post of the Queen, is open to unopposed -attack by the hostile Knights. - - -TOPOGRAPHY OF THE ROOK - -From the view-point of the _Rook_, the surface of the Chess-board takes -on a topographical aspect which varies with the post occupied. - -Placed at either R1 or R8 the Rook occupies the central point of a great -valley, 15 points in length, which winds around the slope of an immense -and inaccessible mountain range. This latter, in extent, includes the -remainder of the Topographical Zone. - -With the Rook placed at R2 or R7, this great mountain wall becomes -pierced by a long valley running at right angles to the first, but the -area open to the movement of the Rook is not increased. - -Placed at Kt2, B3, K4, or Q4, the Rook becomes enclosed amid impassable -natural barriers. But although in such cases it always occupies the -point of union of four easily traversed although unequal valleys, its -area of movement is neither increased nor diminished, remaining always at -fourteen points open to occupation. - -Unless impeded by the presence of kindred or adverse corps on its -logistic radii, the Rook always may move either in two, three, or four -directions, and it may reach any desired point on the Chess-board in two -moves. - -The weakness peculiar to the Topographical Horizon of the Rook lies in -the fact that it never commands the origins of diagonals or obliques. -Hence it is open to unopposed attack along the first from adverse Queen, -King, Bishops and Pawns, and along the second from adverse Knights. - - -TOPOGRAPHY OF THE BISHOP - -From the view-point of the _Bishop_, the surface of the Chess-board takes -on a topographical aspect most forbidding. - -To this Chess-piece at least one-half of the Topographical Zone is -inaccessible, and under any circumstances his movements are limited to -the thirty-two squares of his own color. - -Thus, the Topographical Horizon of the Bishop takes the form of a broken -country, dotted with high hills, deep lakes, impenetrable swamps, and -thick woodlands. But between these obstacles thus set about by Nature, -run level valleys, varied in extent and easy of access. This fact so -modifies this harshest of all sensible horizons as to make the Bishop -next in activity to the Rook. - -Within its limited sphere of action, the Bishop may move in either one or -four directions with a minimum of nine and a maximum of fourteen points -open to his occupation. Unimpeded by other corps blocking his route of -march, the Bishop may reach any desired point of his own color on the -chess board in two moves. - -The weakness peculiar to the topographical horizon of the Bishop is its -liability to unopposed attack along verticals and horizontals by the -hostile King, Queen and Rooks; and along obliques by the hostile Knights. - - -TOPOGRAPHY OF THE KNIGHT - -From the view-point of the _Knight_, the surface of the Chess-board takes -on the aspect of a densely wooded and entirely undeveloped country; made -up of a profusion of ponds, rivulets, swamps, etc., none of which are -impassable although sufficient to impede progress. - -Unless interfered with by kindred or hostile corps, or the limitations -of the Chess-board, the Knight always may move either in two, four, six, -or eight directions. It may reach any desired point in a minimum of one -and a maximum of six moves, and may occupy the sixty-four squares of the -Chess-board in the same number of marches. - -The weakness of the topographical horizon of the Knight lies in the fact -that it never commands adjacent points, nor any of those distant, other -than the termini of its own obliques. Hence it is open to unopposed -attack along verticals and horizontals from the adverse King, Queen and -Rooks, and along diagonals from the adverse King, Queen, Bishop and Pawns. - - -TOPOGRAPHY OF THE PAWN - -From the point of view of the _Pawn_, the surface of the Chess-board -takes on the topographical aspect of a country which as it is entered, -constantly becomes wilder and more rugged. - -The march of the Pawn always is along a valley situated between -impracticable natural barriers, and the possible movements of the Pawn -always decrease as the distance traveled increases. - -Unhindered by either kindred or hostile corps, the Pawn may reach any -point of junction in the kindred Logistic Horizon, which is contained -within its altitude, in a minimum of five and in a maximum of six moves. -It may march only in one direction, except in capturing, when it may -acquire the option of acting in three directions. - -The weakness of the topographical horizon of the Pawn originates in its -inability to command the adjacent country. Therefore, it is exposed to -unopposed attack along verticals and horizontals by the hostile King, -Queen and Rooks; along diagonals by the adverse King, Queen and Bishops, -and along obliques by the adverse Knights. - - -TOPOGRAPHY OF THE TOPOGRAPHICAL ZONE - -That normal and visible surface of the _Chess-board_ termed the -Topographical Zone is bounded by four great natural barriers, impassable -to any Chess-piece. - -The two sides of the zone may be held to typify either the Ocean or the -boundaries of neutral States. The two extremities of the Chess-board -while holding the previously announced relation to Chess-pieces contained -in the Topographical Zone, also holds another and radically different -relation to those Chess-pieces _not_ contained in the Topographical Zone, -viz.: - -In the latter case, the two extremities of the chessboard are to be -regarded as two great mountain ranges, each of which is pierced by eight -defiles, the latter being the sixteen points of junction contained in the -kindred and adverse logistic horizons. - -In the arena thus formed by these four great natural barriers, two -hostile armies composed of the thirty-two Chess-pieces, are contending -for the mastery. - -Meanwhile, beyond these great mountain ranges, are advancing to the -aid of the combatants, two other armies, represented by the power of -promotion possessed by the Pawns. Each of these two hypothetical armies -is assailing the outer slope of that range of mountains which lies in the -rear of the hostile force. Its effort is to pass one of the eight defiles -and by occupying a Point of Junction in the kindred Logistic Horizon, -to gain entrance into the Topographical Zone. Then in the array of a -Queen, or some other kindred piece, it purposes to attack decisively, the -adverse Strategetic Rear. - -To oppose the attack of this hypothetical hostile army, whose movements -always are typified by the advance of the adverse Pawns, is the duty of -the kindred column of manoeuvre. - -Primarily this labor falls upon the kindred Pawns. Upon each Pawn -devolves the duty of guarding that defile situated directly on its -front, by maintaining itself as a Point of Impenetrability between the -corresponding hostile pawn and the kindred Strategic Rear. - -Conversely, a second duty devolves upon each Pawn; and as an integer -of the Column of Support, it continually must threaten and whenever -opportunity is presented it decisively must assault the defile on its -front, for the purpose of penetrating to the kindred logistic horizon -and becoming promoted to such kindred piece, as by attacking the adverse -Determinate Force in flank, in rear, or in both, may decide the victory -in favor of the kindred army. - -Every variety of topography has peculiar requirements for its attack and -its defence; and situations even though but little different from each -other, nevertheless must be treated according to their particular nature. - -In order to acquire the habit of selecting at a glance the correct posts -for an army and of making proper dispositions of the kindred corps -with rapidity and precision, topography should be studied with great -attention, for most frequently it happens that circumstances do not allow -time to do these things with deliberation. - - -PRINCIPLE - -_Acting either offensively or defensively, one never should proceed in -such a way as to allow the enemy the advantage of ground;_ - -That is to say: Kindred corps never should be exposed to unopposed -adverse radii of offence, when the effect of such exposure is the loss of -kindred material, or of time much better to be employed, than in making a -necessary and servile retreat from an untenable post. - -On the contrary, every kindred topographical advantage should -unhesitatingly be availed of; and particular attention continually should -be paid to advancing the kindred corps to points offensive where they -cannot be successfully attacked. - -Pains always must be taken to select advantageous ground. Indifferent -posts must never be occupied from sheer indolence or from over-confidence -in the strength of the kindred, or the weakness of the adverse army. - -Particularly must one beware of permitting the enemy to retain advantages -in topography; always and at once he should be dislodged from posts whose -continued occupation may facilitate his giving an unforeseen and often a -fatal blow. - -The full importance of topography perhaps is best expressed in the -following dictum by the great Frederic: - - -PRINCIPLE - -“_Whenever a general and decisive topographical advantage is presented, -one has merely to avail of this, without troubling about anything -further._” - -The relative advantage in Topography possessed by one army over an -opposing army, always can be determined by the following, viz.: - - -RULE - -1. If the principal adverse Corps of Position are situated upon points -of a given color, and if the principal Kindred Corps of Position are -situated upon points _not_ of the given color, then: - -That army which has the _more_ Corps of Evolution able to act against -points of the given color, and the _equality_ in Corps of Evolution able -to act against points of the opposite color, has the relative advantage -in Topography. - -2. To utilize the relative advantage in Topography, construct a position -in which the kindred Corps of Position necessary to be defended shall -occupy a point upon the sub-geometric symbol of a kindred Corps of -Evolution; which point shall be a Tactical Key of a True Strategetic -Horizon of which the kindred Corps of Evolution is the Corps of the -Centre and of which either the adverse King or an undefendable adverse -piece is the second Tactical Key. - -3. To neutralize the relative disadvantage in Topography, eliminate -that adverse Corps d’armee which is able to act simultaneously by its -geometric symbol against the principal Kindred Corps of Position upon a -given color; and by its sub-geometric symbol against points of opposite -color. - - * * * * * - -Perfection in Defensive Topography is attained whenever the ground -occupied nullifies hostile advantages in Time, Organization, Mobility, -Numbers and Position. - -Perfection in Offensive Topography is attained whenever the ground -occupied accentuates the kindred advantages in Time, Organization, -Mobility, Numbers and Position. - - -MILITARY EXAMPLES - - _“When you intend to engage in battle endeavor that your - CHIEF advantage shall arise from the ground occupied by your - army.”--Vegetius._ - -To cross the Granicus, Alexander the Great selected a fordable spot -where the river made a long, narrow bend, and attacked the salient and -both sides simultaneously. The Persians thus outflanked were easily and -quickly routed; whereupon the Grecian army in line of Phalanxes, both -flanks covered by the river and its retreat assured by the fords in rear, -advanced to battle in harmony with all requirements of Strategetic Art. - - * * * * * - -At Issus, Alexander the Great so manoeuvred that the Persian army of more -than a million men was confined in a long valley not over three miles in -width, having the sea on the left hand and the Amanus Mountains on the -right, thus the Grecians had a battlefield fitted to the size of their -army, and fought in Phalanxes in line, both wings covered by impassable -natural barriers and retreat assured, by open ground in rear. - - * * * * * - -At the Trebia, Hannibal by stratagems now undiscernible, induced the -consul Sempronius to pass the river and following along the easterly bank -to take position with his army upon the lowlands between an unfordable -part of the stream and the Carthagenians. - -Upon this, Hannibal detached his youngest brother Margo to cut off the -retreat of the Romans from the ford by which they had crossed the Trebia; -advanced his infantry by Phalanxes in line and overthrowing the few -Roman horse, assailed the hostile left wing with 10,000 heavy cavalry. -The destruction of the Roman army was completed by the simultaneous -attack of their right wing by Margo and the impossibility of repassing -the river in their rear. - - * * * * * - -By one of the most notable marches in surprise recorded in military -annals, Hannibal crossed the seemingly impassible marshes of the river -Po, and turned the left flank of the Roman army, commanded by the Consul -C. Flaminius. Then the great Carthagenian advanced swiftly toward the -city of Rome, devasting the country on either hand. - -In headlong pursuit the Consul entered a long narrow valley, having Lake -Trasymenus on the one hand and the mountains on the other. - -Suddenly while entombed in this vast ravine, the Roman army was attacked -by infantry from the high ground along its right flank; and in front and -rear by the Carthagenian heavy cavalry, while the lake extending along -its left flank made futile all attempts to escape. - - * * * * * - -At Cannae, Hannibal reproduced the evolutions of Alexander the Great -at the passage of the Granicus. Selecting a long bend in the Aufidus, -Hannibal forded the river and took position by Phalanxes in line, his -flanks covered by unfordable parts of the stream and his retreat assured -by the fords by which he had crossed, while as at Issus, the ground on -his front though fitting his own army, was so confined as to prevent the -Romans engaging a force greater than his own. Beyond Hannibal’s front, -the hostile army was posted in a wide level plain, suited to the best -use of the vastly superior Carthagenian heavy cavalry, both for the -evolutions of the battle and the subsequent pursuit and massacre of the -Romans. - - * * * * * - -At the River Arar (58 B.C.) Caesar achieved his first victory. Following -leisurely but closely the marauding Helvetii, he permitted three-fourths -of their army to cross to the westerly side of the river; then he fell -upon the remainder with his whole army. - - * * * * * - -An eye-witness thus describes the famous passage of the Lech by Gustavus -Adolphus: - - “Resolved to view the situation of the enemy, his majesty went - out the 2nd of April (1632) with a strong body of horse, which - I had the honor to command. We marched as near as we could to - the bank of the river, not to be too much exposed to the enemy’s - cannon; and having gained a height where the whole course of - the river might be seen, we drew up and the king alighted and - examined every reach and turning of the river with his glass. - Toward the north, he found the river fetching a long reach and - doubling short upon itself. ‘There is the point will do our - business,’ says the king, ‘and if the ground be good, we will - pass there, though Tilly do his worst’.” - -He immediately ordered a small party of horse to bring him word how high -the bank was on each side and at the point, “and he shall have fifty -dollars” says the king, “who will tell me how deep the water is.” - -… The depth and breadths of the stream having been ascertained, and the -bank on our side being ten to twelve feet higher than the other and -of a hard gravel, the king resolved to cross there; and himself gave -directions for such a bridge as I believe never army passed before nor -since. - -The bridge was loose plank placed upon large tressels as bricklayers -raise a scaffold to build a wall. The tressels were made some higher and -some lower to answer to the river as it grew deeper or shallower; and all -was framed and fitted before any attempt was made to cross. - -At night, April 4th the king posted about 2,000 men near the point and -ordered them to throw up trenches on either side and quite around it; -within which at each end the king placed a battery of six pieces and six -cannon at the point, two guns in front and two at each side. By daylight, -all the batteries were finished, the trenches filled with musketeers and -all the bridge equipment at hand in readiness for use. To conceal this -work the king had fired all night at other places along the river. - -At daylight, the Imperialists discovered the king’s design, when it -was too late to prevent it. The musketeers and the batteries made such -continual fire that the other bank twelve feet below was too hot for the -Imperialists; whereupon old Tilly to be ready for the king on his coming -over on his bridge, fell to work and raised a twenty-gun battery right -against the point and a breast-work as near the river as he could to -cover his men; thinking that when the King should build his bridge, he -might easily beat it down with his cannon. - -But the King had doubly prevented him; first by laying his bridge so low -that none of Tilly’s shot could hurt it, for the bridge lay not above -half a foot above the water’s edge; and the angle of the river secured it -against the batteries on the other side, while the continual fire beat -the Imperialists from those places where they had no works to cover them. - -Now, in the second place, the King sent over four hundred men who cast -up a large ravelin on the other bank just where he planned to land; and -while this was doing the King laid over his bridge. - -Both sides wrought hard all the day and all the night as if the spade, -not the sword, was to decide the controversy; meanwhile the musketry -and cannon-balls flew like hail and both sides had enough to do to make -the men stand to their work. The carnage was great; many officers were -killed. Both the King and Tilly animated the troops by their presence. - -About one o’clock about the time when the King had his bridge finished -and in heading a charge of 3000 foot against our ravelin was brave old -Tilly slain by a musket bullet in the thigh. - -We knew nothing of this disaster befallen them, and the King, who looked -for blows, the bridge and ravelin being finished, ordered to run a line -of palisades to take in more ground and to cover the first troops he -should send over. This work being finished the same night, the King sent -over his Guards and six hundred Scots to man the new line. - -Early in the morning a party of Scots under Capt. Forbes of Lord Rae’s -regiment was sent abroad to learn something of the enemy and Sir John -Hepburn with the Scots Brigade was ordered to pass the bridge, draw up -outside the ravelin, and to advance in search of the enemy as soon as the -horse were come over. - -The King was by this time at the head of his army in full battle array, -ready to follow his van-guard and expecting a hot day’s work of it. Sir -John sent messenger after messenger entreating for permission to advance, -but the King would not suffer it; for he was ever on his guard and would -not risk a surprise. So the army continued on this side of the Lech all -day and the next night. - -In the morning the King ordered 300 horse, 600 horse and 800 dragoons -to enter the wood by three ways, but sustaining each other; the Scots -Brigade to follow to the edge of the wood in support of all, and a -brigade of Swedish infantry to cover Sir John’s troops. So warily did -this famous warrior proceed. - -The next day the cavalry came up with us led by Gustavus Horn; and the -King and the whole army followed, and we marched on through the heart of -Bavaria. His Majesty when he saw the judgment with which old Tilly had -prepared his works and the dangers we had run, would often say, “That -day’s work is every way equal to the victory of Leipsic.” - - * * * * * - -With but 55,000 troops in hand and surrounded by the united Austrian -and Russian armies aggregating a quarter of a million men; Frederic the -Great availing of a swamp, a few hills, a rivulet and a fortified town, -constructed a battlefield upon which his opponents dared not engage him. - -This famous camp of Bunzlewitz is one of the wonders of the military -art. It also is an illustration of the inability of the Anglo-Saxon to -reason; for to this day many who wear epaulets, accepting the dictum of -a skillfully hoodwinked French diplomat at the siege of Neisse, (Dec., -1740) commonly assert that “the great Frederic was a bad engineer.” - - * * * * * - -Washington compelled the British to evacuate Boston, merely by occupying -with artillery Dorchester Heights, the tactical key of the theatre of -action and thus preventing either ingress or egress from the harbor. - - * * * * * - -At Trenton the Hessian column was unable to escape from Washington’s -accurate evolutions, on account of being imprisoned in an angle formed by -the unfordable Delaware river. - - * * * * * - -At Yorktown, the British army under Lord Cornwallis was captured entire, -being cut off from all retreat by the ocean on the right flank and the -James river in rear. - - * * * * * - -Bonaparte made his reputation at Toulon (1793) merely by following the -method employed by Washington in the siege of Boston. - - * * * * * - -Bonaparte gained his first success in Italy because the allied -Piedmontese and Austrian armies, although thrice his numbers, were -separated by the Apennine mountains. - - * * * * * - -Bonaparte’s success at Castiglione was due to the separation of the -Austrian army into two great isolated columns by the Lake of Garda. - - * * * * * - -At Arcola, Bonaparte occupied a great swamp upon the hostile strategic -center and the Austrian army was destroyed by its efforts to dislodge him. - - * * * * * - -At Rivoli, the Austrian army purposed to unite its five detached wings -upon a plateau of which Bonaparte was already in possession. All were -ruined in the effort to dislodge the French from this Tactical Center. - - * * * * * - -The Austrian army was unable to escape after Marengo on account of the Po -river in its rear. - - * * * * * - -At Austerlitz the left wing of the Austro-Russian army was caught between -the French army and a chain of lakes and rivulets and totally destroyed. - - * * * * * - -At Friedland the Russian army was caught between the French in front and -the Vistula river in rear and totally destroyed. - - * * * * * - -At Krasnoe, the Russians under Kutosof, occupied the strategic center -and were covered by the Dnieper. To force the passage of the river cost -Napoleon 30,000 men. - - * * * * * - -At the Beresina, the Russians under Benningsen, occupied the Strategic -Center and were covered by the unfordable river. To force the passage -cost Napoleon 20,000 men. - - * * * * * - -At Leipsic, Napoleon was caught between the allied army and the Elbe. The -retreat across the river cost the French 50,000 men. - - * * * * * - -At Waterloo, the high plateau sloping gradually to a plain, various -hamlets on front and flank and the forest in rear, made a perfect -topography for a defensive battle. - - * * * * * - -At Sedan, the Emperor, Napoleon III, and his army were enclosed between -the Prussian army and the frontier of Belgium and captured. - - * * * * * - -_“Where the real general incessantly sees prepared by Nature means -admirably adapted for his needs, the commander lacking such talents sees -nothing.”--Hannibal._ - - - - -MOBILITY - - _“Success in an operation depends upon the secrecy and celerity - with which the movements are made.”--Napoleon._ - - * * * * * - - _“An eye unskilled and a mind untutored can see but little where - a trained observer detects important movements.”--Von Moltke._ - - * * * * * - - _“Caesar is a marvel of vigilance and rapidity, he finishes a war - in a march.”--Cicero._ - - - - -MOBILITY - - _“Victory lies in the legs of the soldier.”--Frederic the Great._ - - * * * * * - - _“The principal part of the soldier’s efficiency depends upon his - legs._ - - _“The personal abilities required in all manoeuvres and in - battles are totally confined to them._ - - _“Whoever is of a different opinion is a dupe to ignorance and a - novice in the profession of arms.”--Count de Saxe._ - - -_“It is easier to beat an enemy than commonly is supposed,” says -Napoleon, “the great Art lies in making nothing but decisive movements.”_ - -To the proficient in Strategetics the truth of the foregoing dictum is -self-evident. Nevertheless, it remains to instruct the student how to -select from a multitude of possible movements, that particular movement -or series of movements, which in a given situation are best calculated to -achieve victory. - -Whatever may be such series of movements, obviously, it must have an -object, _i.e._, a specific and clearly defined purpose. Equally so, all -movements made on such line of movement must each have an objective, -_i.e._, a terminus. These objectives, like cogs in a gear, intimately are -connected with other objectives or termini, so that the project thus -formed constitutes always an exact and often a vast scheme. - -Frequently it happens that the occupation of an objective, valid in a -given situation, is not valid in an ensuing situation for the reasons: - - 1. That the object of the given line of movement is become - unattainable, or, - - 2. Because it has become no longer worth attaining, or, - - 3. Because such belated attainment may be direct cause of - disaster. - - -PRINCIPLE - -_In order to select the decisive movement in a given situation it is -necessary first to determine both the object and the objective, not -merely of the required movement, but also of that series of movements, -which collectively constitute the projected line of movement; together -with the object and the objective of every movement contained therein._ - -The mathematician readily will perceive, and the student doubtless will -permit himself to be informed, that: - -Before the true object and the true objective of any movement can be -determined it first is necessary to deduce the common object of all -movement. - - * * * * * - -As is well known, the combined movements of the Chess-pieces over the -surface of the Chess-board during a game at Chess are infinite. - -These calculations are so complex that human perception accurately can -forecast ultimate and even immediate results only in comparatively few -and simple situations. Such calculable outcomes are limited to the -earlier stages of the opening, to the concluding phases of a game; and -to situations in the mid-game wherein the presence of but few adverse -pieces minimizes the volume of effort possible to the opponent. - -Consequently, it is self-evident, that: - - -PRINCIPLE - -_Situations on the Chess-board require for their demonstration a degree -of skill which decreases as the hostile power of resistance decreases._ - -All power for resistance possessed by an army emanates from its ability -to move. This faculty of Mobility is that inestimable quality without -which nothing and by means of which everything, can be done. - -From this truth it is easy to deduce the common object of all movement, -which obviously is: - - _To minimize the mobility of the opposing force._ - -The hostile army having the ability to move and consequently a power for -resistance equal to that possessed by the kindred army; it becomes of the -first importance to discover in what way the kindred army is superior to -that adverse force, which in the Normal Situation on the Chess-board is -its exact counterpart in material, position and formation. - -Such normal superiority of the White army over the Black army is found in -the fact that: - - 1. _The former has the privilege of making the initial move of - the game._ - - 2. _This privilege of first move is the absolute advantage in - Time._ - -While no mathematical demonstration of the outcome of a game at Chess is -possible, nevertheless there are rational grounds for assuming that with -exact play, White should win. - -This decided and probably decisive advantage possessed by White can be -minimized only by correcting a mathematical blemish in the game of Chess -as at present constructed; which blemish, there is reason to believe, did -not originally exist. - -This imperfection seemingly is the result of unscientific modifications -of the Italian method of Castling; which latter, from the standpoint -of mathematics and of Strategetics, embodies the true spirit of that -delicate and vital evolution. - -To the mathematician and to the Strategist, it is clear that Chess as -first devised was geometrically perfect. The abortions played during -successive ages and in various parts of the Earth, merely are crude and -unscientific deviations from the perfect original. - -Thus, strategetically, the correct post of deployment for the Chess-King -is at the extremity of a straight line drawn from the center of that -Grand Strategic Front which appertains to the existing formation. - -Hence, in the grand front by the right, the King in Castling K R, -properly goes in one move to KKt1, his proper post. Conversely, in -Castling Q R, he also should go in one move to QKt1, his proper post -corresponding to the grand front by the left. - -Again, whenever the formation logically points to the grand front by the -right refused, the King should go in one move from K1 to KR1. When the -formations indicate the grand front by the left refused, the King should -go in one move from K1 to QR1. - -In each and every case the co-operating Rook should be posted at the -corresponding Bishop’s square, in order to support the alignment by P-B4, -of the front adopted. - -The faulty mode of castling today in vogue clearly is not the product -either of the mathematic nor of the strategetic mind. - -The infantile definition of “the books,” viz., “The King in Castling -moves two squares either to the right or to the left,” displays all that -mania for the commonplace, which characterizes the dilettante. - -All that can be done is to call attention to this baleful excrescence on -the great Game. Of course, it is useless to combat it. In the words of -the Count de Saxe: - - “The power of custom is absolute. To depart from it is a - crime, and the most inexcusable of all crimes is to introduce - innovations. For most people, it is sufficient that a thing is - so, to forever allow it to remain so.” - -Says the great Frederic; - - “Man hardly may eradicate in his short lifetime all the - prejudices that are imbibed with his mother’s milk; and it is - well nigh impossible to successfully wrestle with custom, that - chief argument of fools.” - -Also bearing in mind the irony of Cicero, who regarded himself fortunate -in that he had not fallen victim to services rendered his countrymen, it -suffices to say: - -The true Chessic dictum in regard to the double evolution of the King and -Rook should read: - - “_The King of Castling should deploy in one move to that - point where, as the Base of Operations, it mathematically - harmonizes with that Strategic Front, which is, or must become, - established._” - -The change in the present form of Castling, herein suggested, should be -made in the true interests of the Royal Game. - -The instant effect of such change will be: - - 1. Largely to increase the defensive resources both of White and - Black; - - 2. To minimize the handicap on the second player, due to White’s - advantage of first move; - - 3. To permit open play on the Queen’s side of the board and thus - provide a broader and more resplendent field for Strategetic - genius. - - * * * * * - -In all our modern-day mis-interpretations of the ethics of Chess and -our characteristic Twentieth Century looseness of practice as applied -to Chess-play, perhaps there exists no greater absurdity, than that -subversion of ordinary intelligence, daily evinced by permitting a piece -which cannot move, to give check. - -It is a well known and in many ways a deserved reproach, cast by the -German erudite, that the mind of the Anglo-Saxon is not properly -developed, that it is able to act correctly only when dealing with known -quantities, and is inadequate for the elucidation of indeterminate things. - -In consequence, they say, the argumentative attempts of the Anglo-Saxon -are puerile; the natural result of a mental limitation which differs from -that of monkeys and parrots, merely in ability to count beyond two. - -Surely it would seem that a very young child readily would sense that: - -A Chess-piece, which by law is debarred from movement, is, by the same -law, necessarily debarred from capturing adverse material; inasmuch as in -order to capture, a piece must move. - -Nevertheless consensus of opinion today among children of every growth -and whether Anglo-Saxon or German, universally countenance the paradox -that: - -A piece which is pinned on its own King, can give check _i.e._, threaten -to move and capture the adverse King. - -To argue this question correctly and to deduce the logical solution, it -is necessary to revert to first principles and to note that: - -It is a fundamental of Chess mathematics that the King cannot be exposed -to capture. - -Furthermore, it is to be noted as equally fundamental, that: - - 1. A piece exerts no force against that point upon which it is - posted; - - 2. That whatever power a piece exerts, always is exerted against - some other point than the point upon which it stands; and that; - - 3. In order to exert such power, it is an all-essential that the - piece move from the point which it occupies to the point at which - its power is to be exerted. - -Hence, it is obvious and may be mathematically demonstrated, that, - - 1. A piece which cannot move, cannot capture. - - 2. A piece which cannot capture, does not exercise any threat of - capture; and - - 3. Consequently, a piece deprived of its right to move; which - cannot capture nor exercise any threat to capture, obviously and - by mathematical demonstration, cannot give check, inasmuch, as - “check” merely is the threat by a piece to move and capture the - adverse King. - -Therefore, whatever may be the normal area of movement belonging to a -piece, whenever from any cause such piece loses its power of movement, -then, - -It no longer can capture, nor exercise any threat of capture, upon the -points contained within said area; and consequently such points so far -as said immovable piece is concerned, may be occupied in safety by any -adverse piece including the adverse King, for the reason that: - -An immovable piece cannot move; and not being able to move it cannot -capture, and not being able to capture, it does not exercise any threat -of capture, and consequently it cannot give check. - -This incongruity of permitting an immovable piece to give check -constitutes the second mathematical blemish in the game of Chess, as at -present constructed. - -This fallacy, the correction of which any schoolboy may mathematically -demonstrate, is defended, even by many who would know better, if they -merely would take time for reflection; by the inane assumption, that: - -A piece which admittedly is disqualified and rendered dormant by all -the fundamentals of the science of Chess, and which therefore cannot -legally move and consequently cannot legally capture anything; by some -hocus-pocus may be made to move and to capture that _most_ valuable -of _all_ prizes, the adverse King; and this at a time and under -circumstances when, as is universally allowed, it cannot legally move -against, nor legally capture _any other_ adverse piece. - -The basis of this illogical, illegal, and untenable assumption is: - -The pinned piece, belonging to that force which has the privilege of -moving, can abandon its post, and capture the adverse King; this stroke -ends the game and the game being ended, the pinning piece never can avail -of the abandonment of the covering post by the pinned piece to capture -the King thus exposed. - -The insufficiency of this subterfuge is clear to the mathematical -mind. Its subtlety lies in confounding together things which have no -connection, viz.: - -Admittedly the given body of Chess-pieces has the right to move, but it -is of the utmost importance to note that this privilege of moving extends -only to a single piece and from this privilege of moving the pinned piece -is debarred by a specific and fundamental law of the game, which declares -that: - - “A piece shall not by removing itself uncover the kindred King to - the attack of a hostile piece.” - -Thus, it is clear, that a pinned piece is a disqualified piece; its -powers are dormant and by the laws of the game it is temporarily reduced -to an inert mass, and deprived of every faculty normally appertaining -to it as a Chess-piece. On the other hand, as is equally obvious, the -pinning piece is in full possession of its normal powers and is qualified -to perform every function. - -To hold that a piece disqualified by the laws of the game can nullify the -activities of a piece in full possession of its powers, is to assert that -black is white, that the moon is made of green cheese, that the tail can -wag the dog, or any other of those things which have led the German to -promulgate his caustic formula on the Anglo-Saxon. - -Hence, artificially to nullify the normal powers of an active and -potential piece which is operating in conformity to the laws of the game, -and artificially to revivify the dormant powers of a piece disqualified -by the same laws; to debar the former from exercising its legitimate -functions and to permit the latter to exercise functions from which by -law, it specifically is debarred, is a self-evident incongruity and any -argument whereby such procedure is upheld, necessarily and obviously, is -sophistry. - - * * * * * - -No less interesting than instructive and conclusive, is reference of this -question to those intellectual principles which give birth to the game of -Chess, _per se_, viz.: - -As a primary fundamental, with the power to give check, is associated -concurrently the obligation upon the King thus checked, not to remain in -check. - -Secondly: The totality of powers assigned to the Chess-pieces is the -ability to move, provided the King be free from check. This totality of -powers may be denoted by the indefinite symbol, X. - -The play thus has for its object: - -The reduction to zero of the adverse X, by the operation of the kindred X. - -This result is checkmate in its generalized form. In effect, it is the -destruction of the power of the adverse pieces to move, by means of check -made permanent. - -By the law of continuity it is self-evident that: - -The power to move appertaining either to White or to Black, runs from -full power to move any piece (a power due to freedom from check), down -to total inability to move any piece, due to his King being permanently -checked, _i.e._, checkmated. - -This series cannot be interrupted without obvious violation of the ethics -of the game; because, so long as any part of X remains, the principle -from which the series emanated still operates, and this without regard to -quantity of X remaining unexpended. - -Thus, a game of Chess is a procedure from total ability to total -disability; _i.e._, from one logical whole to another; otherwise, from X -to zero. - -Checkmate, furnishes the limit to the series; the game and X vanish -together. - -This is in perfect keeping with the law of continuity, which acts and -dominates from beginning to end of the series, and so long as any part of -X remains. - -Hence to permit either White or Black to move any piece, leaving his King -in check, is an anomaly. - - * * * * * - -Denial to the Pawn of ability to move to the rear is an accurate -interpretation of military ethics. - -Of those puerile hypotheses common to the man who does not know, one of -the most entrancing to the popular mind, is the notion that Corps d’armee -properly are of equal numbers and of the same composition. - -This supposition is due to ignorance of the fact that the multifarious -duties of applied Strategetics, require for their execution like variety -of instruments, which diversity of means is strikingly illustrated by the -differing movements of the Chess-pieces. - -The inability of the Pawn to move backward strategically harmonizes with -its functions as a Corps of Position, in contradiction to the movements -of the pieces, which latter are Corps of Evolution. - -This restriction in the move of the Pawn is in exact harmony with the -inability of the Queen to move on obliques, of the Rook to move on -obliques or on diagonals, of the Bishop to move on obliques, verticals -and horizontals, of the Knight to move on diagonals, verticals, and -horizontals, and of the King to move like any other piece. - - * * * * * - -Possessed of the invaluable privilege of making the first move in -the game, knowing that no move should be made without an object, -understanding that the true object of every move is to minimize the -adverse power for resistance and comprehending that all power for -resistance is derived from facility of movement, the student easily -deduces the true object of White’s initial move in every game of Chess, -viz.: - - -PRINCIPLE - -_To make the first of a series of movements, each of which shall increase -the mobility of the kindred pieces and correspondingly decrease the -mobility of the adverse pieces._ - -As the effect of such policy, the power for resistance appertaining to -Black, ultimately must become so insufficient that he no longer will be -able adequately to defend: - - 1. His base of operations. - - 2. The communications of his army with its base. - - 3. The communications of his corps d’armee with each other, or, - - 4. To prevent the White hypothetical force penetrating to its - Logistic Horizon. - -To produce this fatal weakness in the Black position by the advantage of -the first move is much easier for White than commonly is supposed. - -The process consists in making only those movements by means of which the -kindred corps d’armee, progressively occupying specified objectives, are -advanced, viz.: - - I. _To the Strategetic Objective, when acting against the - communications of the adverse Determinate Force and its Base of - Operations._ - - II. _To the Logistic Horizon, when acting against the - communications between the adverse Determinate and the adverse - Hypothetical Forces._ - - III. _To the Strategic Vertices, when acting against the - communications of the hostile corps d’armee with each other._ - -To bring about either of these results against an opponent equally -equipped and capable, of course is a much more difficult task than to -checkmate an enemy incapable of movement. - -Yet such achievement is possible to White and with exact play it -seemingly is a certainty that he succeeds in one or the other, owing to -his inestimable privilege of first move. - -For the normal advantage that attaches to the first move in a game of -Chess is vastly enhanced by a peculiarity in the mathematical make-up of -the surface of the Chess-board, whereby, he who makes the first move may -secure to himself the advantage in mobility, and conversely may inflict -upon the second player a corresponding disadvantage in mobility. - -This peculiar property emanates from this fact: - - _The sixty-four points, i.e., the sixty-four centres of the - squares into which the surface of the Chess-board is divided, - constitute, when taken collectively, the quadrant of a circle, - whose radius is eight points in length._ - -Hence, in Chessic mathematics, the sides of the Chessboard do not form a -square, but the segment of a circumference. - -To prove the truth of this, one has but to count the points contained -in the verticals and horizontals and in the hypothenuse of each -corresponding angle, and in every instance it will be found that the -number of points contained in the base, perpendicular, and hypothenuse, -is the same. - -For example: - -Let the eight points of the King’s Rook’s file form the perpendicular of -a right angle triangle, of which the kindred first horizontal forms the -base; then, the hypothenuse of the given angle, will be that diagonal -which extends from QR1 to KR8. Now, merely by the processes of simple -arithmetic, it may be shown that there are, - - 1. Eight points in the base. - - 2. Eight points in the perpendicular. - - 3. Eight points in the hypothenuse. - -Consequently the _three_ sides of this given right angled triangle are -_equal_ to each other, which is a geometric _impossibility_. - -Therefore, it is self-evident that there exists a mathematical -incongruity in the surface of the Chess-board. - -That is, what to the eye _seems_ a right angled triangle, is in its -relations to the _movements_ of the Chess-pieces, an equilateral -triangle. Hence, the Chess-board, in its relations to the pieces when -the latter are at _rest_, properly may be regarded as a great _square_ -sub-divided into sixty-four smaller squares; but on the contrary, -in those calculations relating to the Chess-pieces in _motion_, the -Chess-board must be regarded as the _quadrant_ of a circle of eight -points radius. The demonstration follows, viz.: - -Connect by a straight line the points KR8 and QR8. Connect by another -straight line the points QR8 and QR1. Connect each of the fifteen points -through which these lines pass with the point KR1, by means of lines -passing through the least number of points intervening. - -Then the line KR8 and QR8 will represent the segment of a circle of -which latter the point KR1 is the center. The lines KR1-KR8 and KR1-QR1 -will represent the sides of a quadrant contained in the given circle and -bounded by the given segment, and the lines drawn from KR1 to the fifteen -points contained in the given segment of the given circumference, will be -found to be fifteen equal radii each eight points in length. - - * * * * * - -Having noted the form of the Static or positional surface of the -Chess-board and its relations to the pieces at rest, and having -established the configuration of the Dynamic surface upon which the -pieces move, it is next in sequence to deduce that fundamental fact and -to give it that geometric expression which shall mathematically harmonize -these conflicting geometric figures in their relations to Chess-play. - -As the basic fact of applied Chessic forces, it is to be noted, that: - - -PRINCIPLE - -_The King is the SOURCE from whence the Chess-pieces derive all power of -movement; and from his ability to move, emanates ALL power for attack and -for defence possessed by a Chessic army._ - -This faculty of mobility, derived from the existence of the kindred King, -is the all essential element in Chess-play, and to increase the mobility -of the kindred pieces and to reduce that of the adverse pieces is the -simple, sure and only scientific road to victory; and by comparison of -the Static with the Dynamic surface of the Chess-board, the desired -principle readily is discovered, viz., - - The Static surface of the Chess-board being a square, its least - division is into two great right angled triangles having a common - hypothenuse. - - The Dynamic surface being the quadrant of a circle, its least - division also is into two great sections, one of which is a right - angled triangle and the other a semi-circle. - -Comparing the two surfaces of the Chess-board thus divided, it will -be seen that these three great right angled triangles are equal, each -containing thirty-six points; and having for their common vertices, the -points KR1, QR1 and R8. - -Furthermore, it will be seen that the hypothenuse common to these -triangles, also is the chord of that semi-circle which appertains to the -Dynamic surface. - -Again, it will be perceived that this semi-circle, like the three right -angled triangles, is composed of thirty-six points, and consequently that -all of the four sub-divisions of the Static and Dynamic surfaces of the -Chess-board are equal. - -Thus it obviously follows, that: - - 1. The great central diagonal, always is one side of each of - the four chief geometric figures into which the Chess board is - divided; that: - - 2. It mathematically perfects each of these figures and - harmonizes each to all, and that: - - 3. By means of it each figure becomes possessed of eight more - points than it otherwise would contain. - -Hence, the following is self-evident: - - -PRINCIPLE - -_That Chessic army which can possess itself of the great central -diagonal, thereby acquires the larger number of points upon which to act -and consequently greater facilities for movement; and conversely:_ - -_By the loss of the great central diagonal, the mobility of the opposing -army is correspondingly decreased._ - -It therefore is clear that the object of any series of movements by a -Chessic army acting otherwise than on Line of Operations, should be: - - -PRINCIPLE - -_Form the kindred army upon the hypothenuse of the right angled triangle -which is contained within the Dynamic surface of the Chess-board; and -conversely,_ - -_Compel the adverse army to act exclusively within that semi-circle which -appertains to the same surface._ - -Under these circumstances, the kindred corps will be possessed of -facilities for movement represented by thirty-six squares; while the -logistic area of the opposing army will be restricted to twenty-eight -squares. - -There are, of course, two great central diagonals of the Chess-board; but -as the student is fully informed that great central diagonal always is to -be selected, which extends towards the Objective Plane. - - * * * * * - -Mobility, _per se_, increases or decreases with the number of squares -open to occupation. - -But in all situations there will be points of no value, while other -points are of value inestimable; for the reason that the occupation of -the former will not favorably affect the play, or may even lose the game; -while by the occupation of the latter, victory is at once secured. - -But it is not the province of Mobility to pass on the values of points; -this latter is the duty of Strategy. It is sufficient for Mobility that -it provide superior facilities for movement; it is for Strategy to define -the Line of Movement; for Logistics, by means of this Line of Movement, -to bring into action in proper times and sequence, the required force, -and for Tactics, with this force, to execute the proper evolutions. - -Mobility derives its importance from three things which may occur -severally or in combination, viz.: - - 1. All power for offense or for defense is eliminated from a - Chess-piece the instant it loses its ability to move. - - 2. The superiority possessed by corps acting offensively over - adverse corps acting defensively, resides in that the attack of - a piece is valid at every point which it menaces; while the - defensive effort of a piece, as a rule, is valid only at a single - point. Consequently: - - -PRINCIPLE - -_Increased facilities for movement enhance the power of attacking pieces -in a much greater degree than like facilities enhance the power of -defending pieces._ - -Such increasing facilities for movement ultimately render an attacking -force irresistible, for the reason that it finally becomes a physical -impossibility for the opposing equal force to provide valid defences for -the numerous tactical keys, which at a given time become simultaneously -assailed. Hence: - - -PRINCIPLE - -_Superior facilities for occupying any point at any time and with any -force, always ensure the superior force at a given point, at a given -time._ - -The relative advantage in mobility possessed by one army over an opposing -army always can be determined by the following, viz.: - - -RULE - -1. That army whose strategic front of operations is established upon the -Strategetic Center has the relative advantage in Mobility. - -2. To utilize the advantage in Mobility extend the Strategic Front in the -direction of the objective plane. - -3. To neutralize the relative disadvantage in Mobility eliminate that -adverse Corps d’armee which tactically expresses such adverse advantage; -or so post the Prime Strategetic Point as to vitiate the adverse -Strategic front. - -Advantage in Mobility is divided into two classes, viz.: - - I. General Advantage in Mobility. - - II. Special Advantage in Mobility. - -A General Advantage in Mobility consists in the ability to act -simultaneously against two or more vital points by means of interior -logistic radii due to position between:-- - - 1. The adverse army and its Base of Operations. - - 2. Two or more adverse Grand Columns. - - 3. The wings of a hostile Grand Column. - - 4. Two or more isolated adverse Corps d’armee. - -Such position upon interior lines of movement is secured by occupying -either of the Prime Offensive Origins, _i.e._: - - 1. Strategic Center _vs._ Adverse Formation in Mass. - - 2. Logistic Center _vs._ Adverse Formation by Grand Columns. - - 3. Tactical Center _vs._ Adverse Formation by Wings. - - 4. Logistic Triune _vs._ Adverse Formation by Corps. - -Special Advantage in Mobility consists in the ability of a corps d’armee -to traverse greater or equal distances in lesser times than opposing -corps. - - -MILITARY EXAMPLES - - _“Never interrupt your enemy when he is making a false - movement.”--Napoleon._ - -In the year (366 B.C.) the King of Sparta, with an army of 30,000 men -marched to the aid of the Mantineans against Thebes. Epaminondas took -up a post with his army from whence he equally threatened Mantinea and -Sparta. Agesilaus incautiously moved too far towards the coast, whereupon -Epaminondas, with 70,000 men precipitated himself upon Lacedaemonia, -laying waste the country with fire and sword, all but taking by storm the -city of Sparta and showing the women of Lacedaemonia the campfire of an -enemy for the first time in six hundred years. - - * * * * * - -Flaminius advancing incautiously to oppose Hannibal, the latter took up a -post with his army from whence he equally threatened the city of Rome and -the army of the Consul. In the endeavor to rectify his error, the Roman -general committed a worse and was destroyed with his entire army. - - * * * * * - -At Thapsus, April 6, 46 B.C., Caesar took up a post with his army from -whence he equally threatened the Roman army under Scipio and the African -army under Juba. Scipio having marched off with his troops to a better -camp some miles distant, Caesar attacked and annihilated Juba’s army. - - * * * * * - -At Pirna, Frederic the Great, captured the Saxon army entire, and at -Rossbach, Leuthern and Zorndorf destroyed successively a French, an -Austrian and a Russian army merely by occupying a post from whence he -equally threatened two or more vital points, awaiting the time when one -would become inadequately defended. - - * * * * * - -Washington won the Revolutionary War merely by occupying a post from -whence he equally threatened the British armies at New York and -Philadelphia; refusing battle and building up an army of Continental -regular troops enlisted for the war and trained by the Baron von Steuben -in the system of Frederic the Great. - - * * * * * - -Bonaparte won at Montenotte, Castiglione, Arcola, Rivoli and Austerlitz -his most perfect exhibitions of generalship, merely by passively -threatening two vital points and in his own words: “By never interrupting -an enemy when he is making a false movement.” - - * * * * * - -Perfection in Mobility is attained whenever the kindred army is able to -act unrestrainedly in any and all directions, while the movements of the -hostile army are restricted. - - - - -NUMBERS - - _“In warfare the advantage in numbers never is to be - despised.”--Von Moltke._ - - * * * * * - - _“Arguments avail but little against him whose opinion is voiced - by thirty legions.”--Roman Proverb._ - - * * * * * - - _“That king who has the most iron is master of those who merely - have the more gold.”--Solon._ - - * * * * * - - _“It never troubles the wolf how many sheep there - are.”--Agesilaus._ - - - - -NUMBERS - - _“A handful of troops inured to Warfare proceed to certain - victory; while on the contrary, numerous hordes of raw and - undisciplined men are but a multitude of victims dragged to - slaughter.”--Vegetius._ - - * * * * * - - _“Turenne always was victorious with armies infinitely inferior - in numbers to those of his enemies; because he moved with - expedition, knew how to secure himself from being attacked in - every situation and always kept near his enemy.”--Count de Saxe._ - - * * * * * - - _“Numbers are of no significance when troops are once thrown into - confusion.”--Prince Eugene._ - - -Humanity is divisible into two groups, one of which relatively is small -and the other, by comparison, very large. - -The first of these groups is made up comparatively of but a few persons, -who, by virtue of circumstances are possessed of everything except -adequate physical strength; and the second group consists of those vast -multitudes of mankind, which are destitute of everything except of -incalculable prowess, due to their overwhelming numbers. - -Hence, at every moment of its existence, organized Society is face to -face with the possibility of collision into the Under World; and because -of the knowledge that such encounter is inevitable, unforeseeable and -perhaps immediately impending, Civilization, so-called, ever is beset by -an unspeakable and all-corroding fear. - - _To deter a multitude, destitute of everything except the power - to take, from despoiling by means of its irresistible physique, - those few who are possessed of everything except ability to - defend themselves, in all Ages has been the chiefest problem of - mankind; and to the solution of this problem has been devoted - every resource known to Education, Legislation, Ecclesiasticism - and Jurisprudence._ - -This condition further is complicated by a peculiar outgrowth of -necessary expedients, always more or less unstable, due to that falsity -of premise in which words do not agree with acts. - -Of these expedients the most incongruous is the arming and training of -the children of the mob for the protection of the upper stratum; and that -peculiar mental insufficiency of hoi polloi, whereby it ever is induced -to accept as its leaders the sons of the Patrician class. - -That a social structure founded upon such anomalies should endure, -constitutes in itself the real Nine Wonders of the World; and is proof -of that marvellous ingenuity with which the House of Have profits by -the chronic predeliction of the House of Want to fritter away time and -opportunity, feeding on vain hope. - - * * * * * - -_The advantage in Numbers consists in having in the aggregate more Corps -d’armee than has the adversary._ - -All benefit to be derived from the advantage in Numbers is limited to -the active and scientific use of every corp d’armee; otherwise excess of -Numbers, not only is of no avail, but easily may degenerate into fatal -disadvantage by impeding the decisive action of other kindred corps. Says -Napoleon: “It is only the troops brought into action, that avails in -battles and campaigns--the rest does not count.” - -A loss in Numbers at chess-play occurs only when two pieces are lost -for one, or three for two, or one for none, and the like. No diminution -in aggregate of force can take place on the Chess-board, so long as the -number of the opposing pieces are equal. - -This is true although all the pieces on one side are Queens and those of -the other side all Pawns. - -The reason for this is: - -All the Chess-pieces are equal in strength, one to the other. The Pawn -can overthrow and capture any piece--the Queen can do no more. - -That is to say, at its turn to move, any piece can capture any adverse -piece; and this is all that any piece can do. - -It is true that the Queen, on its turn to move, has a maximum option -of twenty-seven squares, while the Pawn’s maximum never is more than -three. But as the power of the Queen can be exerted only upon one point, -obviously, her observation of the remaining twenty-six points is merely -a manifestation of mobility, and her display of force is limited to a -single square. Hence, the result in each case is identical, and the -display of force equal. - -The relative advantage in Numbers possessed by one army over an opposing -army always can be determined by the following, viz.: - - -RULE - -_That army which contains more Corps d’armee than an opposing army has -the relative advantage in Numbers._ - - _“With the inferiority in Numbers, one must depend more upon - conduct and contrivance than upon strength.”--Caesar._ - - -MILITARY EXAMPLES - - _“He who has the advantage in Numbers, if he be not a blockhead, - incessantly will distract his enemy by detachments, against all - of which it is impossible to provide a remedy.”--Frederic the - Great._ - - * * * * * - - _“He that hath the advantage in Numbers usually should exchange - pieces freely, because the fewer that remain the more readily are - they oppressed by a superior force.”--Dal Rio._ - -At Thymbra, Cyrus the Great, king of the Medes and Persians, with 10,000 -horse cuirassiers, 20,000 heavy infantry, 300 chariots and 166,000 light -troops, conquered Croesus, King of Assyria whose army consisted of -360,000 infantry and 60,000 cavalry. This victory made Persia dominant in -Asia. - - * * * * * - -At Marathon, 10,000 Athenian and 1,000 Plataean heavy infantry, routed -110,000 Medes and Persians. This victory averted the overthrow of Grecian -civilization by Asiatic barbarism. - - * * * * * - -At Leuctra, Epaminondas, general of the Thebans, with 6000 heavy -infantry and 400 heavy horse, routed the Lacedaemonean army, composed -of 22,000 of the bravest and most skillful soldiers of the known world, -and extinguished the military ascendency which for centuries Sparta had -exercised over the Grecian commonwealths. - -At Issus, Alexander the Great with 40,000 heavy infantry and 7,000 heavy -cavalry destroyed the army of Darius Codomannus, King of Persia, which -consisted of 1,000,000 infantry, 40,000 cavalry, 200 chariots and 15 -elephants. This battle, in which white men encountered elephants for the -first time, established the military supremacy of Europe over Asia. - - * * * * * - -Alexander the Great invaded Asia (May, 334 B.C.) whose armies aggregated -3,000,000 men trained to war; with 30,000 heavy infantry, 4000 heavy -cavalry, $225,000 dollars in money and thirty days’ provisions. - -At Arbela, Alexander the Great with 45,000 heavy infantry and 8,000 heavy -horse, annihilated the last resources of Darius and reduced Persia to a -Greek province. The Persian army consisted of about 600,000 infantry and -cavalry, of whom 300,000 were killed. - - * * * * * - -Hannibal began his march from Spain (218 B.C.) to invade the Roman -commonwealth, with 90,000 heavy infantry and 12,000 heavy cavalry. He -arrived at Aosta in October (218 B.C.) with only 20,000 infantry and -6,000 cavalry to encounter a State that could put into the field 700,000 -of the bravest and most skillful soldiers then alive. - - * * * * * - -At Cannae, Hannibal destroyed the finest army Rome ever put in the field. -Out of 90,000 of the flower of the commonwealth only about 3,000 escaped. -The Carthagenian army consisted of 40,000 heavy infantry and 10,000 heavy -cavalry. - - * * * * * - -At Alesia, (51 B.C.) Caesar completed the subjugation of Gaul, by -destroying in detail two hostile armies aggregating 470,000 men. The -Roman army consisted of 43,000 heavy infantry, 10,000 heavy cavalry and -10,000 light cavalry. - - * * * * * - -At Pharsaleus, (48 B.C.) Caesar with 22,000 Roman veterans routed 45,000 -soldiers under Pompey and acquired the chief place in the Roman state. - - * * * * * - -At Angora, (1402) Tamerlane, with 1,400,000 Asiatics, destroyed the -Turkish army of 900,000 men, commanded by the Ottoman Sultan Bajazet, in -the most stupendous battle of authentic record. - -After giving his final instructions to his officers, Tamerlane, it is -recorded, betook himself to his tent and played at Chess until the crisis -of the battle arrived, whereupon he proceeded to the decisive point and -in person directed those evolutions which resulted in the destruction of -the Ottoman army. - -The assumption that the great Asiatic warrior was playing at Chess during -the earlier part of the battle of Angora, undoubtedly is erroneous. Most -probably he followed the progress of the conflict by posting chess-pieces -upon the Chessboard and moving these according to reports sent him -momentarily by his lieutenants. - -Obviously, in the days when the field telegraphy and telephone were -unknown, such method was entirely feasible and satisfactory to the Master -of Strategetics and far superior to any attempt to overlook such a -confused and complicated concourse. - - * * * * * - -At Bannockburne (June 24, 1314), Robert Bruce, King of Scotland, with -30,000 Scots annihilated the largest army that England ever put upon a -battlefield. - -This army was led by Edward II and consisted of over 100,000 of -the flower of England’s nobility, gentry and yeomanry. The victory -established the independence of Scotland and cost England 30,000 troops, -which could not be replaced in that generation. - - * * * * * - -Gustavus Adolphus invaded Germany with an army of 27,000 men, over -one-half of whom were Scots and English. At that time the Catholic armies -in the field aggregated several hundred thousand trained and hardened -soldiers, led by brave and able generals. - -At Leipsic, after 20,000 Saxon allies had fled from the battlefield, -Gustavus Adolphus with 22,000 Swedes, Scots and English routed 44,000 -of the best troops of the day, commanded by Gen. Tilly. This victory -delivered the Protestant princes of Continental Europe from Catholic -domination. - - * * * * * - -At Zentha (Sept. 11, 1697), Prince Eugene with 60,000 Austrians routed -150,000 Turks, commanded by the Sultan Kara-Mustapha, with the loss of -38,000 killed, 4,000 prisoners and 160 cannon. This victory established -the military reputation of this celebrated French General. - - * * * * * - -At Turin (Sept. 7, 1706) Prince Eugene with 30,000 Austrians routed -80,000 French under the Duke of Orleans. Gen. Daun, whose brilliant -evolutions decided the battle, afterward, as Field-Marshal of the -Austrian armies, was routed by Frederic the Great at Leuthern. - - * * * * * - -At Peterwaradin (Aug. 5, 1716) Prince Eugene with 60,000 Austrians -destroyed 150,000 Turks. This victory delivered Europe for all time from -the menace of Mahometan dominion. - - * * * * * - -At Belgrade (Aug. 26, 1717) Prince Eugene with 55,000 Austrians destroyed -a Turkish army of 200,000 men. - - * * * * * - -At Rosbach (Nov. 5, 1757) Frederic the Great with 22,000 Prussians, in -open field, destroyed a French army of 70,000 regulars commanded by the -Prince de Soubisse. - - * * * * * - -At Leuthern (Dec. 5, 1757) Frederic the Great with 33,000 Prussians -destroyed in open field, an Austrian army of 93,000 regulars, commanded -by Field-Marshal Daun. The Austrians lost 54,000 men and 200 cannon. - - * * * * * - -At Zorndorf (Aug. 25, 1758) Frederic the Great with 45,000 Prussians -destroyed a Russian army of 60,000 men commanded by Field-Marshal Fermor. -The Russians left 18,000 men dead on the field. - - * * * * * - -At Leignitz (Aug. 15, 1760) Frederic the Great with 30,000 men -out-manoeuvred, defeated with the loss of 10,000 men and escaped from the -combined Austrian and Russian armies aggregating 130,000 men. - - * * * * * - -At Torgau (Nov. 5, 1760) Frederic the Great with 45,000 Prussians -destroyed an Austrian army of 90,000 men, commanded by Field-Marshal Daun. - - * * * * * - -Washington, with 7,000 Americans, while pursued by 20,000 British and -Hessians under Lord Cornwallis, captured a Hessian advance column at -Trenton (Dec. 25, 1776) and destroyed a British detachment at Princeton, -(Jan. 3, 1777). - - * * * * * - -Bonaparte, with 30,000 infantry, 3,000 cavalry and 40 cannon, invaded -Italy, (March 26, 1796) which was defended by 100,000 Piedmontese and -Austrian regulars under Generals Colli and Beaulieu. In fifteen days -he had captured the former, driven the latter to his own country and -compelled Piedmont to sign a treaty of peace and alliance with France. - -At Castiglione, Arcole, Bassano and Rivoli, with an army not exceeding -40,000 men Bonaparte destroyed four Austrian armies, each aggregating -about 100,000 men. - - * * * * * - -At Wagram, Napoleon, with less than 100,000 men, overthrew the main -Austrian army of 150,000 men, foiled the attempts at succor of the -secondary Austrian army of 40,000 men, and compelled Austria to accept -peace with France. - -In the campaign of 1814, Napoleon, with never more than 70,000 men, twice -repulsed from the walls of Paris and drove backward nearly to the Rhine -River an allied army of nearly 300,000 Austrians, Prussians and Russians. - - * * * * * - -In the year 480 B.C., Xerxes, King of Persia, invaded Greece with an -army, which by Herodotus, Plutarch and Isocrates, is estimated at -2,641,610 men at arms and exclusive of servants, butlers, women and camp -followers. - -Arriving at the Pass of Thermopolae, the march of the invaders was -arrested by Leonidas, King of Sparta, with an army made up of 300 -Spartans, 400 Thebans, 700 Thespians, 1,000 Phocians and 3,000 from -various Grecian States, posted behind a barricade built across the -entrance. - -This celebrated defile is about a mile in length. It runs between Mount -Oeta and an impassible morass, which forms the edge of the Gulf of Malia -and at each end is so narrow that a wagon can barely pass. - -Xerxes at once sent a herald who demanded of the Grecians the surrender -of their arms, to which Leonidas replied: - - “_Come and take them._” - -On the fifth day the Persian army attacked, but was unable to force an -entrance into the pass. On the sixth day the Persian Immortals likewise -were repulsed, and on the seventh day these troops again failed. - -That night Ephialtes, a Malian, informed Xerxes of a foot path around -the mountains to the westward, and a Persian detachment was sent by a -night march en surprise against the Grecian rear. On the approach of this -hostile body, the Phocians, who had been detailed by Leonidas to guard -this path, abandoned their post without fighting and fled to the summit -of the mountains, leaving the way open to the enemy, who, wasting no time -in pursuit, at once marched against the rear of the Grecian position. - -At the command of Leonidas, all his allies, with the exception of the 700 -Thespians, who refused to leave him, abandoned Thermopolae in haste and -returned safely to their own countries. - -Xerxes waited until day was well advanced and his detachment had -taken post upon the Grecian rear. Then both Persian columns attacked -simultaneously. The first part of this final conflict was fought outside -and to the north of the barricade. Leonidas being slain and their -numbers reduced over half, the remaining Greeks retired behind the -barricade and took post upon a slight elevation, where one after another -they were killed by arrows and javelins. The four days of fighting cost -the Persians over 20,000 of their best troops. - -Upon the summit of the hill where the Spartans perished a marble lion was -erected, bearing the inscription: - - “Go tell the Lacedymonians, O, Stranger, - That we died here in obedience to the law.” - -A second inscription engraved upon a stone column erected upon the scene -of conflict read: - - “Upon this spot four thousand Pelleponesians contended against - three hundred myriads.” - - * * * * * - -The largest army commanded by Epaminondas was about 70,000 men. Alexander -the Great, after Arbela, had 135,000 trained troops. Hannibal never led -more than 60,000 men in action, nor Caesar more than 80,000. Gustavus -Adolphus, just before Lutzen, marshalled 75,000 of the best soldiers in -the world under the banners of Protestantism. Turenne never fought with -more than 40,000 troops; Prince Eugene often had 150,000 in hand, and -Frederic the Great several times commanded 200,000 men. At Yorktown, -Washington had 16,000 Continentals, 6,000 French regulars and 18,000 -Provincial volunteers: Napoleon’s largest army, that of the Austerlitz -campaign, consisted of 180,000 men, while von Moltke personally directed -at Sadowa, 250,000 men; at Gravelotte, 211,000 men and at Sedan, 200,000 -men. - - * * * * * - -_Perfection in Numbers is attained whenever the kindred army has the most -troops in the theatre of decisive action._ - - - - -TIME - - _“You lose the time for action in frivolous deliberations. Your - generals instead of appearing at the head of your armies, parade - in processions and add splendor to public ceremonies. Your armies - are composed of mercenaries, the dregs of foreign nations, vile - robbers, a terror only to yourselves and your allies. Indecision - and confusion prevail in your counsels; your projects have - neither plan nor foresight. You are the slaves of circumstance - and opportunities continually escape you. You hurry aimlessly - hither and thither and arrive only in time to witness the success - of your enemy.”--Demosthenes._ - - - - -TIME - - _“That greatest of all advantages--TIME!”--Frederic the Great._ - - * * * * * - - _“Ask me for anything except--TIME.”--Napoleon._ - - * * * * * - - _“Time is the cradle of hope, the grave of ambition, the solitary - counsel of the wise and the stern corrector of fools. Wisdom - walks before it, opportunities with it and repentance behind it. - He that hath made it his friend hath nothing to fear from his - enemies, but he that hath made it his enemy hath little to hope - even from his friends.”--Anon._ - - -_The absolute advantage of Time consists in being able to move while the -adversary must remain stationary._ - -_The conditioned advantage in Time i.e., the Initiative, consists in -artificially restricting the adverse ability to move._ - -Advantage in Time is divided into two classes: - - I. The Initiative. - - II. Absolute. - -The Initiative treats of restrictions to the movements of an army, due -to the necessity of supporting, covering or sustaining Points or corps -d’armee, menaced with capture by adverse corps offensive. - -The absolute advantage in Time is the ability to move, while the adverse -army must remain immovable. - -Whenever the right to move is unrestricted, any desired Piece may be -moved to any desired Point. - -But whenever the right to move is restricted it follows that the Piece -desired cannot be moved; or, that if moved it cannot be moved to the -desired Point; or, that a piece not desired, must be moved and usually to -a Point not desired. - -Such restrictions of the right to move, quickly produce fatal defects -in the kindred Formation; and from the fact that such fatal defects in -Formation can be produced by restricting the right to move, arises the -inestimable value of the advantage in Time. - -Perfection in Time is attained whenever the kindred army is able to move -while the hostile army must remain stationary. - -The object of the active or absolute advantage in Time always is to -remain with the Initiative, or Passive Advantage in Time; which consists -in operating by the movement made, such menaces, as compel the enemy: - -1. To move corps d’armee which he otherwise would not move and - -2. Prevents him from moving corps d’armee which he otherwise would move. - - -PRINCIPLE - -_Given superior brute strength and no matter how blunderingly and -clumsily it be directed, it always will end by accomplishing its purpose, -unless it is opposed by Skill._ - -Skill is best manifested by the proper use of Time. Such ability is -acquired only through study and experience, guided by reflection, and it -can be retained only by systematic and unremitting practice. - -Most people imagine that Skill is to be attained merely from study; many -believe it but the natural and necessary offshoot of long experience; and -there are some of the opinion that dilettante dabbling in book lore is -an all-sufficient substitute for that sustained and laborious mental and -physical effort, which alone can make perfect in the competitive arts. - -Only by employing his leisure in reflection upon the events of the Past -can one get to understand those things which make for success in Warfare -and in Chessplay, and develop that all-essential ability to detect -equivalents in any situation. - -For in action there is no time for such reflection, much less for -development. - -Then, moments of value inestimable for the achieving of results are not -to be wasted in the weighing and comparison of things, whose relative -importance should be discerned in the twinkling of an eye, by reason of -prior familiarity with similar conditions. - -The relative advantage in time possessed by one army over an opposing -army always can be determined by the following, viz.: - - -RULE - -1. _That army which is in motion while the opposing army must remain -stationary has the absolute advantage in Time._ - -2. _That army which although at rest can dictate the movement of an -opposing army in motion has the conditioned advantage in Time, i.e., the -Initiative._ - - * * * * * - -_“One may lose more by letting slip a decisive opportunity than -afterwards can be gained by ten battles.”--Gustavus Adolphus._ - -_“It is the exact moment that must be seized; one minute too soon or too -late and the movement is utterly futile.”--Napoleon._ - - -MILITARY EXAMPLES - - _“The movements of an army should be characterized by decision - and rapidity.”--Hannibal._ - - * * * * * - - _“In order to escape from a dilemma it first of all is necessary - to gain Time.”--Napoleon._ - -Thebes having revolted, Alexander the Great marched 400 miles in fourteen -days; attacked and captured the city and razed it to the ground (335 -B.C.) sparing only the house and family of Pindar, the poet; massacred -all males capable of bearing arms and sold 30,000 women and children into -slavery. - - * * * * * - -To gain time to occupy the Strategic center and to cut the communications -with Rome of the army of the Consul Flaminius, Hannibal marched his army -for three days and nights through the marshes of the Po. - - * * * * * - -Caesar marched from Rome to Sierra-Modena in Spain, a distance of 1350 -miles in twenty-three days. - - * * * * * - -Frederic the Great in order to gain time usually marched at midnight. - - * * * * * - -Bonaparte finished his first Italian campaign by winning the battles of -St. Michaels, Rivoli and Mantua, marching 200 miles and taking 20,000 -prisoners, all in less than four days. In 1805, the French infantry in -the manoeuvres which captured 60,000 Austrians, marched from 25 to 30 -miles a day. In 1806 the French infantry pursued the Prussians at the -same speed. In 1814, Napoleon’s army marched at the rate of 30 miles -per day, besides fighting a battle every 24 hours. Retrograding for the -succor of Paris, Napoleon marched 75 miles in thirty-six hours. On the -return from Elba, 1815, the Imperial Guard marched 50 miles the first -day, 200 miles in six days and reached Paris, a distance of 600 miles, in -twenty days. - - * * * * * - -_“The fate of a battle always is decided by the lack of the -few minutes required to bring separated bodies of troops into -co-operation.”--Napoleon._ - - - - -POSITION - - - - -POSITION - - _“War is a business of position.”--Napoleon._ - - -By the term Position is signified those relative advantages and -disadvantages in location, which appertain to the aggregate posts -occupied by the kindred army, as compared with the aggregate posts -occupied by the adverse army. - -Advantages and disadvantages in Position are of three classes, viz.: - - (a) Those which appertain to the Column of Attack - - (b) Those which appertain to the Column of Support. - - (c) Those which appertain to the Column of Manoeuvre. - - -STRATEGETIC SITUATIONS - -A Strategic Situation, and whether in warfare or in Chess-play, is -produced by the presence, in any Strategetic Plane, _i.e._, theatre -of conflict, of two or more opposing Strategetic Entireties, _i.e._, -contending armies. - -These latter are of four classifications and are denominated as follows: - - (a) The Kindred Determinate Force. - - (b) The Adverse Determinate Force. - - (c) The Kindred Hypothetical Force. - - (d) The Adverse Hypothetical Force. - - -RULE I - -_Given the Strategetic Entireties present in a given Strategetic -Situation, designate the opposing Prime Strategetic Factors and express -the relative values of each in the terms of the Strategic Syllogism._ - - -THE STRATEGIC SYLLOGISM - -Having classified the existing Strategetic Situation, it is necessary -next to designate the opposing Columns of Attack, of Support, and of -Manoeuvre. - -Then, by comparing these Prime Strategetic Factors, to determine the -net advantage, disadvantage, or equality that exist between them and to -express this condition in the terms of the resulting Strategic Syllogism. - -In the construction of a Strategic Syllogism, the Strategic, _i.e._, -the positional value of each of the opposing Prime Strategetic Factors -contained in a given Strategetic Situation, is expressed in terms made up -of letters and symbols, viz., - - A Signifies Column of Attack. - S ” Column of Support. - M ” Column of Manoeuvre. - + ” Advantage in Position. - - ” Disadvantage in Position. - = ” Equality in Position. - -The positional values of the several Prime Strategetic Factors are -obtained as follows: - - -COLUMN OF ATTACK - -That Column of Attack which is posted upon the superior Strategic front -as compared to the front occupied by the immediately opposing formation -(cf, Grand Tactics, pp. 117 to 275), has the advantage in position. - -This relative advantage and disadvantage in position of the Column of -Attack is expressed by the first term of the Strategic Syllogism, viz.: - - (I.) - +A - ---- - -A - -or - - (II.) - -A - ----- - +A - -In the first instance (I), the White Column of Attack has the advantage -and the Black formation has the disadvantage; in the second case (II), -this condition is reversed. - - -COLUMN OF SUPPORT - -A Column of Support has the superiority in position, as compared with the -adverse Column of Support, whenever it contains more than the latter of -the following advantages, viz.: - - I. One, or more, Passed Pawns. - - II. Two united Pawns, overlapping an adverse Pawn. - - III. Two isolated Pawns adjacent to a single adverse Pawn. - - IV. Three, or more, united Pawns at their fifth squares, opposed - by a like number of adverse Pawns posted on their Normal Base - Line. - - V. A majority of kindred Pawns on that side of the Board farthest - from the adverse King. - -The relative advantage and disadvantage of one Column of Support, over -the opposing Column of Support, is expressed by the second term of the -Strategic Syllogism, thus: - - (I.) - +S - ---- - -S - -or - - (II.) - -S - ----- - +S - -In the first case (I), White has the advantage and Black has the -disadvantage. In the second case (II), this condition is reversed. - - -COLUMN OF MANOEUVRE - -Columns of Manoeuvre are not compared with each other. The advantage of -one over another is determined by comparing their respective powers of -resistance to the attack of the corresponding adverse Columns of Support. - -That Column of Manoeuvre which longest can debar the adverse promotable -Factors from occupying a point of junction on the kindred Strategetic -Rear, has the advantage. - -The relative advantage and disadvantage of the column of Manoeuvre is -expressed by the third term of the Strategic Syllogism, viz.: - - (I.) - +M - ---- - -M - -or - - (II.) - -M - ----- - +M - -In the first case (I), White, has the advantage and Black the -disadvantage. In the second case (II), this condition is reversed. - -In recording the values of the opposing Prime Strategetic Factors, the -terms relating to White are written above and those relating to Black, -below the line. - -The terms expressing the relative values of the Columns of Attack always -are placed at the left; those for the Columns of Support in the center, -and those for the Columns of Manoeuvre at the right. - -The Strategic Syllogisms are twenty-seven in number and are formulated, -viz.: - - -TABLE OF STRATEGIC SYLLOGISMS - - No. 1. +A+S+M - ------ - -A-S-M - - No. 2. +A+S=M - ------ - -A-S=M - - No. 3. +A+S-M - ------ - -A-S+M - - No. 4. +A=S+M - ------ - -A=S-M - - No. 5. +A=S=M - ------ - -A=S=M - - No. 6. +A=S-M - ------ - -A=S+M - - No. 7. +A-S+M - ------ - -A+S-M - - No. 8. +A-S=M - ------ - -A+S=M - - No. 9. +A-S-M - ------ - -A+S+M - - No. 10. =A+S+M - ------ - =A-S-M - - No. 11. =A+S=M - ------ - =A-S=M - - No. 12. =A+S-M - ------ - =A-S+M - - No. 13. =A=S+M - ------ - =A=S-M - - No. 14. =A=S=M - ------ - =A=S=M - - No. 15. =A=S-M - ------ - =A=S+M - - No. 16. =A-S+M - ------ - =A+S-M - - No. 17. =A-S=M - ------ - =A+S=M - - No. 18. =A-S-M - ------ - =A+S+M - - No. 19. -A+S+M - ------ - +A-S-M - - No. 20. -A+S=M - ------ - +A-S=M - - No. 21. -A+S-M - ------ - +A-S+M - - No. 22. -A=S+M - ------ - +A=S-M - - No. 23. -A=S=M - ------ - +A=S=M - - No. 24. -A=S-M - ------ - +A=S+M - - No. 25. -A-S+M - ------ - +A+S-M - - No. 26. -A-S=M - ------ - +A+S=M - - No. 27. -A-S-M - ------ - +A+S+M - - -_STRATEGIC ELEMENTALS._ - -_Each of the terms contained in the Strategic Syllogism should have its -counterpart in a tangible and competent mass of troops._ - -This principle of Strategetics, when applied to warfare, is absolute, -and admits of no exception. The catastrophies sustained by the French -armies in the campaigns of 1812, 1813, 1814 and 1815 are each and every -one directly due to the persistent violation by Napoleon of this basic -truth, in devolving the duties of a column of support and a column of -manoeuvre upon a single Strategic Elemental. - -In solemn contrast to that fatal and indefensible rashness which cost -Napoleon five great armies and ultimately his crown, is the dictum by one -whose transcendent success in warfare, is the antithesis of the utter -ruination which terminated the career of the famous Corsican. - -Says Frederic the Great: - - “_I adhere to those universal laws which all the elements obey; - these, for me are sufficient._” - -Singularly enough, it seemingly has escaped the notice of the great -in warfare, owing to the subtle mathematical construction of the -Chess-board, its peculiar relations to the moves of the Chess-pieces, and -of the latter to each other, that: - - -PRINCIPLE - -I. _The functions of all three terms contained in a Strategic Syllogism -may be combined in a single chess Pawn, and, that:_ - -II. _All three functions are contemplated in and should be expressed by -every movement of every Chess-piece; and every move upon the Chess-board -is weak and unscientific, to the extent that it disregards either of -these obligations._ - - * * * * * - -Those advantages in position, which are denoted by the plus signs of the -Strategic Syllogism, have their material manifestation upon the surface -of the earth by Corps d’armee, and by Pieces which are equivalents of -these latter, upon the Chess-board. - -The _sign +A in the Strategic Syllogism_ denotes the superior Strategic -Front. That point whose occupation by a kindred piece demonstrates such -superiority in position is termed the _Key of Position_. The kindred -Corps occupying such point constitutes a _Corps en Line_, and is termed -the _First Strategic Elemental_. - -The _sign +S in the Strategic Syllogism_ denotes the _larger number_ -of pawn altitudes open to the kindred promotable factors. Those points -occupied by such kindred promotable factors are termed _Logistic -Origins_. The kindred Corps which occupy such points constitute _Corps en -Route_ and collectively are termed the _Second Strategic Elemental_. The -objective of Corps en Route always is the Kindred Logistic Horizon. - -The _sign +M in the Strategic Syllogism_ denotes that the _shortest_ open -pawn altitude is occupied by a kindred promotable factor. Such kindred -promotable factor is termed the _Corps en Touch_, and the point occupied -by such Corps is termed the _Point of Proximity_. The Objective of such -Corps always is a designated Point of Junction in the Kindred Logistic -Horizon, and such Corps constitutes the _Third Strategic Elemental_. - -In Warfare it is imperative that each of these Strategic Elementals be -represented by one or more Corps d’armee. But it is a second peculiarity -of the Chessic mechanism that a single Chessic Corps d’armee may -represent in itself, one, two or three Strategic Elementals and thus -constitute even the entire _Strategic Ensemble_. - -Hence, in Chess play, the Strategic Ensemble may be either single, -double, or triple, viz.: - -A Single Strategic Ensemble consists either of: - - (a) 1. Major Vertex. - - 2. Grand Vertex. - - (b) Logistic Origin. - - (c) Point of Proximity. - -A _Double Strategic Ensemble_ consists of either: - - (a) 1. Major Vertex, plus a Kindred Logistic Origin. - - 2. Grand Vertex, plus a Kindred Logistic Origin. - - (b) 1. Major Vertex, plus a Kindred Point of Proximity. - - 2. Grand Vertex, plus a Kindred Point of Proximity. - - (c) Logistic Origin, plus a Kindred Point of Proximity. - -A _Triple Strategic Ensemble_ consists of: - - 1. Major Vertex, plus a Kindred Logistic Origin, plus a Kindred - Point of Proximity. - - 2. Grand Vertex, plus a Kindred Point of Proximity, plus a - Kindred Logistic Origin. - - -PRINCIPLE - -_The relative positional advantage expressed by the plus signs of -the Strategic Syllogism decreases as the number of plus signs in the -Strategic Syllogism exceeds the number of corresponding Strategic -Elementals._ - -Failure to observe the amalgamation of the duties of the three Grand -Columns in each and every move upon the Chess-board, and to note that -the tangible and material expression of these powers and advantages may -be expressed either by three, by two, or even by a single Chessic Corps -d’armee, has caused doubt of the exact analogy between Chess and War; -and hence a like doubt of the utility of Chess-play. - -Recognizing the truth of the foregoing, the Asiatic conqueror, Tamerlane, -sought to rectify this discrepancy between the mechanism of Chess and -that of War, by increasing the size of the Chess-board to one hundred and -forty-four squares, and the number of pieces to forty-eight. - -By this innovation the geometric harmony existing between the Dynamic and -the Static surfaces of the Chess-board was destroyed; and this without -substituting therefor another like condition of mathematic perfection. -Ultimately, this remedy was abandoned, a fate which sooner or later, has -overtaken all attempts to improve that superlative intellectual exercise -of which says Voltaire: - - “Of all games, Chess does most honor to the human mind.” - -The reason why the scheme devised by Tamerlane did not satisfy even -himself, and why all attempted alterations in the machinery of Chess -prove unacceptable in practice, is due to the present perfect adaptation -of the Board and the Pieces for exemplifying the processes of Strategetic -Art. - -Any change in the construction of the Chess-board and the Chess-pieces, -to be effective, must largely increase the number of Chessmen, -correspondingly increase the number of squares, and equally so, increase -the number of moves permitted to each player at his turn to play. - -That is to say: Such innovation to be correct must permit each player -at his turn to play to move one of the Corps d’armee contained in the -Column of Attack, a second in the Column of Support, and a third in the -Column of Manoeuvre. Necessarily, the number of pieces must be increased -in order to provide Corps d’armee for the make-up of each Grand Column, -and obviously, the Board must be sufficiently enlarged to accommodate -not merely this increased mass, but also to permit full scope for the -increased number of possible movements. - - _The student thus readily will perceive, that it is only one step - from such an elaboration of Chess, to an army and the theatre of - actual campaigning._ - - * * * * * - -Perfection in Position is attained whenever the kindred army is acting or -is posted as a unit, while the hostile army is not so posted nor able so -to act. - - -MILITARY EXAMPLES - - -COLUMN OF ATTACK - - _“Frontal attacks are to be avoided, and the preference always is - to be given to the assault of a single wing, with your center and - remaining wing held back; because if your attack is successful - you equally destroy the enemy without the risk of being routed if - you fail.”--Frederic the Great._ - -At Leuctra and Mantinea, Epaminondas won by the oblique or Strategic -order of battle. Alexander the Great won by the same order at Issus -and the Haspades. Cyrus won at Thymbra and Hannibal won at Trebia, -Thrasymene, Cannae and Herdonea, by the three sides of an octagon or -enveloping formation. Caesar won by the oblique order at Pharsaleus. - - * * * * * - -Gustavus Adolphus won at Leipsic by acting from the Tactical Center and -Turenne and Prince Eugene gained their victories by the same means. - - * * * * * - -Frederic the Great won at Hohenfriedberg, Sohr, Rosbach, Leuthern, -Zorndorf and Leignitz by the oblique order and at Torgau by acting from -the tactical center. - - * * * * * - -Washington won at Trenton and Princeton acting by three contiguous sides -of an octagon. - -Bonaparte won at Montenotte, Castiglione, Arcola, Rivoli, Ulm, -Austerlitz, Jena, Friedland, Wagram and Ligny, by acting from the -tactical center. Never did he attack by the oblique order of battle. - - * * * * * - -Von Moltke’s victories all were won by acting in strict accord with the -system laid down for the use of the Prussian army by Frederic the Great. - - -COLUMN OF SUPPORT - -The most magnificent illustration both of the proper and of the improper -use of the Column of Support is found in that Grand Operation executed -by the Roman consuls, Claudius Nero and Marcus Livius, whereby the -Carthagenian Army under Hasdrubal was destroyed at the river Metaurus 207 -B.C. - -Hannibal, with the main Carthagenian army, posted in the south of Italy -near Canusium, was observed by Nero and his troops; while in the west, -Hasdrubal, observed by Livius was slowly advancing southward to form a -junction with his brother, a most unscientific procedure. - -Livius permitted Hasdrubal to penetrate into Italy to a point a few -miles south of the Metaurus River; whereupon Nero, taking 7,000 of his -best troops, by a rapid march of 200 miles united with Livius; and the -two consuls at once falling upon Hasdrubal utterly annihilated the -Carthagenian army. Nero returned at all speed and the first news of his -march and of the death blow to the Carthagenian projects against Rome -was furnished by the sight of his brother’s head, which Nero cast into -Hannibal’s camp from a military machine. - -The true method for uniting the Columns of Support to a Column of Attack -is thus shown by Gustavus Adolphus: - - “We encamped about Nuremberg the middle of June, the army after - so many detachments was not above 11,000 infantry and 8,000 horse - and dragoons. The King posted his army in the suburbs and drew - intrenchments around the circumference so that he begirt the - whole city with his army. His works were large, the ditch deep, - planked by innumerable bastions, ravelins, horn-works, forts, - redoubts, batteries and palisades, the incessant labor of 8000 - men for fourteen days. - - “On the 30th of June the Imperialists, joined to the Bavarian - army arrived and sat down 60,000 strong, between the city and the - friendly states; in order to intercept the King’s provisions and - to starve him out. - - “The King had three great detachments and several smaller ones, - acting abroad, reducing to his power the castles and towns of the - adjacent countries and these he did not hasten to join him until - their work was done. - - “The two chief armies had now lain for five or six weeks in - sight of each other and the King thinking all was ready, ordered - his generals to join him. Gustavus Horn was on the Moselle, - Chancellor Oxenstern about Mentz and Cologne and Dukes William - and Bernard and Gen. Bannia in Bavaria. - - “Our friends were not backward in obeying the King’s command, and - having drawn together their forces from various parts and _ALL_ - joined the chancellor Oxenstern, they set out in full march for - Nuremburg, where they arrived Aug. 21, being 30,000 old soldiers - commanded by officers of the greatest conduct and experience in - the world.” - - * * * * * - -Only once, at the battle of Torgau, (Nov. 5, 1760) did Frederick the -Great rely upon the co-operation of his Columns of Support for victory. - -As the result, his Column of Attack of 25,000 men fought the entire -battle and was so ruined by the fire and sabres of 90,000 enemies and 400 -pieces of artillery that, as the sun went down the King charged at the -head of two battalions, his sole remaining troops. At this moment Gen. -Zeithen, with the Column of Support, of 22,000 men occupied Siptka Hill, -the tactical key of the battlefield, and fired a salvo of artillery to -inform the King of their presence. The astonished Austrians turned and -fled; the King’s charge broke their line of battle and Frederic grasped a -victory, “for which” says Napoleon, “he was indebted to Fortune and the -only one in which he displayed no talent.” - -This comment of course is not true. Frederic displayed magnificent -talent that day, by holding in check a force of thrice his numbers and -so shattering it by his incessant attacks that it crumbled to pieces -before the mere presence and at sight of his fresh and vigorous Column -of Support. Had Napoleon displayed such talent in the personal conduct -of battles during 1813, 1814 and 1815 it is possible that he would have -terminated his career at some other place than at St. Helena. - -The experience, however, was enough to fully satisfy Frederic, and never -again did he attempt a Logistic battle. - - * * * * * - -The capture of Lord Cornwallis at Yorktown is perhaps the nearest -approach to the achievement of Nero and Livius in the annals of the -military art. Decoyed by the retrograde movements of Gen. Greene, the -British army was deluded into taking up a position at Yorktown, having -the unfordable James River in rear, and within striking distance of the -main American army under Washington about New York City. - -Lafayette was ordered to reinforce Greene; Count d’Esting was induced to -bring the French fleet from the West Indies to Chesapeake Bay to prevent -the rescue of Cornwallis by British coming by the ocean, and Count -Rochambeau was requested to join Washington with the French army then in -Rhode Island. - -All this took time, but everything was executed like clockwork. The -French fleet arrived in the Chesapeake; the next day came a British -fleet to rescue the Earl’s army. In the naval fight which ensued, the -British were driven to sea and so damaged as to compel their return to -New York. By a swift march, Washington, with his Continentals and the -French, joined Greene and Lafayette, and two of his redoubts being taken -by storm, Lord Cornwallis surrendered. This victory established the -independence of the American Colonies. - - * * * * * - -The Logistic Battle, _i.e._, the combination of the Columns of Attack -and of Support was first favorite with Napoleon and to his partiality -for this particular form of the tactical offensive was due both the -spectacular successes and the annihilating catastrophes which mark his -astonishing career. - -The retrieving of his lost battle of Marengo, by the fortuitous arrival -of Dessaix column, seems to have impressed Napoleon to the extent that he -ever after preferred to win by such process, rather than by any other. - -The first attempt to put his new hypothesis into practice was at Jena. -Single handed his column of attack destroyed the Prussian main body, -while Davoust with the column of manoeuvre held in check over three times -his numbers. - -The French Column of Support under Bernadotte did not arrive in season to -fire a shot. - - * * * * * - -At Eylau, the French Column of Support under Davoust was four hours -in advancing six miles against the opposition of the Russian general -Doctoroff. The second French Column of Support under Ney did not reach -the field until the battle was over. - - * * * * * - -In the retreat from Russia, the French Column of Support under the Duke -of Belluno was driven from its position at Smolensko, thus permitting the -Russians under Kutosof to occupy the Strategic center, which disaster -cost Napoleon 30,000 men in clearing his communications. - - * * * * * - -In 1813, the Column of Support under Ney at Bautzen was misdirected and -the battle rendered indecisive by its lack of co-operation with the -French Column of Attack. - - * * * * * - -In 1814, Napoleon conformed to the Art by acting in three columns, but -yielding to his besetting military sin, he joined his Column of Support -to his Column of Attack and through the open space thus created in the -French Strategetic Front, Blucher advanced triumphantly to Paris. - - * * * * * - -In the Waterloo campaign, Napoleon properly began with three Grand -Columns. At the battle of Ligny, his Column of Support arrived upon -Blucher’s left flank and then without firing a shot, wheeled about and -marched away. - -At Waterloo, by uniting his Columns of Attack and of Support prematurely, -Napoleon permitted Blucher to penetrate the French Strategetic Front and -to win in the same manner and as decisively as he did at Paris. - - * * * * * - -Von Moltke won the battle of Sadowa by the arrival of the Prussian Column -of Support, commanded by Prince Frederic William. But in the interim, the -German main army was driven in several miles by the Austrians, and Prince -Bismark’s first white hairs date from that day. - - -COLUMN OF MANOEUVRE - - _“A small body of brave and expert men, skillfully handled and - favored by the ground, easily may render difficult the advance of - a large army.”--Frederic the Great._ - -At the river Metaurus, the Roman Consul Livius gave a fine example of the -duties of a Column of Manoeuvre which are slowly and securely to retreat -before an advancing enemy and never to be induced into a pitched battle -until the arrival of the kindred main body. - - * * * * * - -Frederic the Great made great use of Columns of Manoeuvre. In the Seven -Years War he constantly maintained such a column against the armies of -each State with whom Prussia was at war; while himself and his brother -Henry operated as Columns of Attack. - - * * * * * - -In the Revolutionary War, Washington maintained a Column of Manoeuvre -against the British in Rhode Island, another against the British in the -south and a third against the hostile Indian tribes of the southwest. - - * * * * * - -Napoleon constantly used Columns of Manoeuvre in all his campaigns; -notably at Montenotte, Castiglione, Arcole, Rivoli, Ulm, Austerlitz, -Jena, in 1812, 1813, 1814 and at Ligny and Waterloo in 1815. - - - - -PRIME STRATEGETIC MEANS - - - - -PRIME STRATEGETIC MEANS - - _“It is necessary exactly to weigh the means we possess in - opposition to the enemy in order to determine beforehand which - must ultimately predominated.”--Frederic the Great._ - - -_Those elemental quantities whose comparative values are determined by -Grand Reconnaissance and which are termed: Organization, Topography, -Mobility, Numbers, Time, and Position, collectively constitute Prime -Strategetic Means whose proper employment is the basis of every true -Prime Strategetic Process._ - - -POLICY OF CAMPAIGN - -That relative advantage in Numbers expressed by the larger aggregate of -Chess-pieces is materially manifested upon the Chess-board by additional -geometric and sub-geometric symbols. - -Excess or deficiency in Numbers determines the policy of Campaign. The -policy of the inferior force is: - - 1. To preserve intact its Corps d’armee, and - - 2. To engage in battle only when victory can be assured by other - advantages in Strategetic means, which nullify the adverse - advantage in Numbers; and even then only when such victory is - decisive of the Campaign. - -Hence, the policy of Campaign of that army superior in Numbers, is: - -Incessantly to proffer battles which: - - (a) Accepted, constantly reduces the inferior army and increases - its disproportion in numbers, or, - - (b) Evaded, compels the inferior army to abandon important posts, - for whose defence it cannot afford the resulting loss of troops; - thus permitting to the numerically superior army a continually - increasing advantage in Position. - - -PRINCIPLE - -_All else being equal the advantage of Numbers is decisive of victory in -battle and Campaign._ - -_Things being unequal, the advantage in Numbers may be nullified by -adverse advantages in Organization, Topography, Mobility, Time and -Position._ - -_Victory resulting from advantage in Numbers is achieved by -simultaneously attacking two or more Tactical Keys from a Kindred -Strategic Key and two or more Kindred Points of Command._ - - -TO LOCATE THE AREA OF CONCENTRATION - -That _relative advantage in Mobility_ expressed by the situation of the -Strategic Front upon the Strategetic Center is materially manifested -upon the Chess-board by Kindred Chess-pieces posted upon that great -central diagonal which extends towards the Objective Plane. Such -advantage determines those points which should be occupied in the proper -development of the front so posted; and consequently designates the -direction and location of that battlefield upon which the kindred army -may concentrate in overwhelming force, despite all possible resistance by -the enemy. - - -MOST FAVORABLE BATTLEFIELD - -That _relative advantage in Organization_ expressed by superior potential -totality, is materially manifested upon the Chess-board by the geometric -and sub-geometric symbols of those Chess-pieces possessed of the superior -potential complement. Such symbols taken in combination, describe that -field of battle most favorable for the execution of those Major Tactical -evolutions which appertain to the Chess-pieces of superior organization. - - -POSTS OF MAXIMUM SECURITY - -That _relative defensive advantage in Topography_ expressed by -inaccessibility to hostile attack is materially manifested upon the -Chess-board by Corps of Position, posted upon points of different color -to that occupied by the adverse Bishop; and this advantage designates -those posts situated on a projected field of battle which may be occupied -with the maximum of security. - -That _relative offensive advantage in Topography_ expressed by -accessibility to kindred attack is materially manifested upon the -Chess-board by Corps of Position posted upon points of the same color as -that occupied by the kindred Bishop; and this advantage designates those -posts situated on a projected field of battle which may be attacked with -the maximum facility. - - -CHARACTER OF THE MOST FAVORABLE BATTLE - -That _relative advantage in Position with the Column of Attack_, -expressed: - - 1. By superior location, direction and development of the Kindred - Strategic Front of Operations; and - - 2. By the occupation of Points of Departure, of Manoeuvre, of - Command and of the Strategic Key of a True Strategic Horizon, - indicates that a Strategic Grand Battle in the first instance; - and in the second case that a Tactical Grand Battle is most - favorable in the existing situation. - -That _relative advantage in Position with the Column of Support_, -expressed by superior facilities for occupying with the Kindred -Promotable Factors their corresponding Points of Junction in the Kindred -Logistic Horizon, is materially manifested upon the Chess-board by -the larger number of Pawn Altitudes which either are open, or may be -opened, despite all possible resistance by the enemy; and such advantage -designates those adverse Points of Impenetrability and Points of -Resistance to the march of the Kindred Promotable Factors, which it is -necessary to nullify. - -That _relative advantage in Position with the Column of Manoeuvre_, -expressed by the security of the Kindred and the exposure of the -adverse Strategetic Rear to attack by the Kindred Column of Support, is -materially manifested upon the Chess-board by the occupation by a Kindred -Promotable Factor of the Point of Proximity; and such advantage indicates -that the advance with all possible celerity of such Promotable Factor -and Point of Proximity toward the corresponding Point of Junction is a -dominating influence in the existing situation. - - -PROJECTED GRAND BATTLE - -From the advantage in Position appertaining to the three Grand Columns is -deduced the character of the Grand Battle properly in sequence. - -_Advantage in Position with the Column of Attack_ indicates the -opportunity, all else being equal, to engage in a victorious Strategic -Grand Battle against the hostile Formation in Mass, or in a Tactical -Grand Battle against the hostile Formation by Wings. - -_Advantage in Position with the Column of Support_ indicates the -opportunity to engage effectively in a series of minor battles, as though -having the advantage in Numbers. - -_Advantage in Position with the Column of Manoeuvre_ indicates the -opportunity to engage in a victorious Logistic Grand Battle against the -adverse Formation by Grand Columns. - - -LEAST FAVORABLE ADVERSE CONDITION - -That _relative advantage in Time_ expressed by restrictions of the -adversary’s choice of movements at his turn to play, is materially -manifested upon the Chess-board by Feints operated by Kindred -Chess-pieces against adverse vital points; and such advantage of the -Initiative dictates the next move of the opposing army. - -The _advantage of the Initiative_ determines which of the adverse corps -d’armee may and may not move. - -The material expression of this advantage always is a Feint by a Kindred -Corps against a vital point either occupied or unoccupied, which -necessitates that upon his next move, the enemy either evacuate, support, -cover or sustain the post so menaced. - -Such feint, therefore, restricts the move of the enemy to those of his -corps as are able to obviate the threatened loss and proportionately -reduces the immediate activity of his army. - - -RELATIVE ADVANTAGES IN LOCATION - - _“It is only the force brought into action that avails in battles - and campaigns--the rest does not count.”--Napoleon._ - -_The distance which separates opposing Corps d’armee always modifies the -values of the Prime Strategetic Means._ - -Hence in the making of Grand Reconnaissance, it is next in sequence to -determine whether the Chess-pieces are: - - I. In Contact. - - II. In Presence. - - III. At Distance. - -Corps d’armee are _in Contact_ with each other whenever their logistic -radii intersect; or, their radii offensive and the corresponding adverse -radii defensive are opposed to each other. - -Corps d’armee are _in Presence_ whenever the posts which they occupy are -contained within the same Strategic front, the same Strategetic Horizon, -or are in communication with their corresponding posts of mobilization, -development, or manoeuvre. - -Corps d’armee are _at Distance_ when the posts which they occupy are not -in communication with Kindred Corps d’armee posted upon the strategic -front adopted, or with posts of mobilization or development contained -within the corresponding Primary Base of Operations, or, within the True -Strategetic Horizon. - - -REQUISITES FOR SUCCESSFUL CAMPAIGNING - -Every Campaign, whether upon the surface of the Earth or upon the -Chess-board is decided and usually is terminated by a Grand Battle. - -Those movements of opposing Grand Columns, whereby such decisive -conflict is brought about under circumstances which ensure victory, by -reason of superior advantages in Strategetic Means, are termed Grand -Manoeuvres; and a proper series of Grand Manoeuvres, combined with their -corresponding feints, strategems, ambuscades and minor battles, the whole -terminated by a resulting Grand Battle, is termed a Grand Operation. - -Those processes of Grand Manoeuvre, which produce an opportunity to -victoriously engage in battle, are the most subtle and difficult known to -the Strategetic Art. - -_Successful application of these processes in practice depends wholly -upon proper use of the MEANS at hand and the doing of the utmost that can -be done in the TIME available._ - -Nothing can be more repugnant to high art in Strategetics than those -crudities termed in the specious mouthings of pretentious mediocrity -“waiting moves,” “delayed strokes,” “defensive-offensives,” “masterly -inactivities,” and the like. - -“Time past is gone and cannot be regained; time future is not and may -never be; time present is” and with it Opportunity, which an instant -later may be gone. - -The gain of but “a foot of ground and a minute of time” would have saved -the French army at Rosbach and have cost Frederic the Great one of his -most lustrous victories and perhaps his army and his crown. - - -PRINCIPLE - -_In Strategetics there is but a single method whereby Opportunity may -be availed of, and that is by so augmenting kindred advantages and so -depreciating adverse advantages as to acquire for the kindred army that -particular advantage of Strategetic means which in the given situation is -the proper basis of the Strategetic movement next in sequence._ - - * * * * * - -_At Distance._ - -_The chief requisite for success when acting against an adverse army at -Distance, is the advantage in MOBILITY._ - -The primary process is that of a Grand Manoeuvre against an adverse army -acting in the formation by Grand Columns, and the object of such Grand -Manoeuvre always is, by superior celerity of movement, to occupy: - -1. The Strategic Center by the Kindred Column of Attack, thus -intersecting the Route of Communication between the adverse main body and -its Base of Operation; or to occupy: - -2. The Logistic Center with the Kindred Columns of Support and of -Manoeuvre, thus intersecting the Route of Communication between the -adverse main body and its Chief Supporting Column and clearing the way -for the advance of the Kindred Column of Support against the flank and -rear of the adverse Main Body. - -Obviously, the united Kindred Columns of Attack and of Support always -will constitute an overwhelming superiority in Numbers as compared with -the adverse main body. - -_In Presence._ - -_The chief requisite for success when acting against an adverse Grand -Column in Presence, is the advantage in POSITION._ - -The primary process is that of a Grand Manoeuvre against an adverse army -acting in the Formation by Wings, and the object of such Grand Manoeuvre -always is, by availing to the uttermost of its situation upon the -Tactical Center, _i.e._, upon the area midway between the adverse Wings -thus isolated from each other; to act in overwhelming Numbers, first -against one and then against the other hostile bodies. - -_In Contact._ - -_The chief requisite for success when acting offensively against an -adverse Grand Column, or Wing, or Corps d’armee, in Contact, is the -advantage in NUMBERS._ - -The primary process is that of a Grand Battle in which the kindred army -has an overwhelming superiority in Numbers in contact, and at least the -equality in all other Prime Strategetic Means. - -In this circumstance, the object of such Grand Battle always is: - -1. To attack the hostile Formation in Mass frontally at the center, and -upon both wings obliquely; all three attacks being made simultaneously -and the evolutions so executed that the hostile army never is able to -penetrate between either kindred wing and the kindred center, nor to -outflank that kindred wing which may be in the air. - -2. In case the kindred army has the equality or inferiority in all -other Prime Strategetic Means, then the object of a Grand Battle on the -Offensive is to attack the hostile Formation in Mass obliquely with the -whole kindred army, and preferably upon that wing which covers the -route of communication of the adverse army with its Base of Operations, -but always upon that wing which contains the Tactical Key of the actual -Battlefield. - -Obviously, the concentration of the entire kindred army against a single -adverse wing always will constitute an overwhelming superiority in -Numbers. - -In making such attack obliquely against a single adverse wing, the center -and remaining wing of the kindred army must not engage until the kindred -Van and Corps of Position of the attacking wing first have formed the -_center_ of three sides of an octagon; of which the Kindred Corps of -Evolution will form the _farthest_ side and the Kindred Center and left -wing Corps d’armee will form the _nearest_ and latest constructed side. - - * * * * * - -_The chief requisite for success when acting defensively against a Grand -Column, or Wing, or Corps d’armee is the advantage in TOPOGRAPHY._ - -The primary process is that of a Grand Battle in which the kindred army, -decidedly inferior in Numbers in the aggregate, has the advantage in -Topography and equality in all other Prime Strategetic Means. - -In this case the object is to support both flanks of the inferior army -upon impassable natural barriers, strengthening both wings at the expense -of the center, both in quantity and in quality of troops. - -If the Tactical Defensive be selected, the center should retire before -the oncoming of the hostile army in order to enclose it between the -Kindred Wings, which will then overwhelm it by superior Numbers, while -the natural barriers on the flanks being impassable will prevent the -remaining hostile corps from participating in the battle otherwise than -as spectators. - -Should the Tactical Offensive be selected, that kindred wing best adapted -for attack should engage supported by all kindred Corps of Evolution, -while advancing the Kindred Center in reserve and holding the remaining -wing refused and in observation. - -All else being equal, relative advantage in either branch of Prime -Strategetic Means is sufficient to ensure victory in battle, and the -proper use of such advantage for securing victory is outlined thus: - - -PRINCIPLE - -_Utilize advantage in Prime Strategetic Means to obtain the superiority -in Numbers at the Point of Contact in an Offensive Battle; and to nullify -the adverse superiority in Numbers at the point of contact in a Defensive -Battle._ - - * * * * * - -Between War and Chess there is a seeming incongruity, which is the basis -of that doubt of the utility of Chess-play, so commonly held by laymen, -and which fallacy few, even among proficients, are competent to combat. - -This doubt most frequently is voiced by the query: - - If Chess and War are analagous, why was not Napoleon a Master - Chess-player and Morphy a great military Commander? - -This query readily is answered in the words of Frederic the Great, viz.: - - “To be possessed of talent is not sufficient. Opportunity to - display such talent and to its full extent is necessary. All - depends on the time in which we live.” - -The Strategetic talent possessed in common by Morphy and Napoleon, in -both was brought to perfection by long and expert training. - -But circumstances placed the twelve year old Napoleon in the midst of -soldiers and in an era of war, while circumstances placed the twelve year -old Morphy in the midst of Chess-players and in an era of Peace. - -Napoleon was educated a General; Morphy was educated a lawyer. - -To develop his self-evident and superlative Strategetic talent, -Napoleon’s education was of the best; to develop his self-evident and -superlative Strategetic talent, Morphy’s education was of the worst. - -Napoleon succeeded as a General; Morphy failed as a lawyer. - -The innate capability of Napoleon for Strategetics was developed in the -direction of Warfare; the innate capability of Morphy for Strategetics -was developed in the direction of Chess-play. - -In War, Napoleon is superlative; in Chess, Morphy is superlative. - -Educated in the law, Napoleon might have proved like Morphy a non-entity; -educated in Chess, Napoleon might have proved like Morphy a phenomenon. - -Educated in War, Morphy might have rivalled Napoleon. - -For the Chess-play of Morphy displays that perfect comprehension of -Strategetics, to which none but the great Captains in warfare have -attained. - -Perfection in Strategetics consists in exactly interpreting in battle and -campaign, the System of Warfare invented by Epaminondas. - -Those able to do this in War have achieved greatness, and the great at -Chess-play are those who best have imitated that exactness with which -Morphy employed this system on the Chess-board. - -To those who imagine that Strategetic talent, as exemplified in Warfare, -is different from Strategetic talent as exemplified in Chess-play, the -following may afford matter for reflection. - - * * * * * - -_“Frederic the Great was one of the finest Chess-players that Germany -ever produced.”--Wilhelm Steinitz._ - - - - -PRIME STRATEGETIC PROPOSITION - -SECTION ONE - - - - -PRIME STRATEGETIC PROPOSITION - -SECTION ONE - - -(FIRST PHASE.) - -In the consideration of every Strategetic Situation possible in Warfare, -or in Chess-play, the initial process always is a Grand Reconnaissance. - -Grand Reconnaissance is that exact scrutiny of existing conditions, -whereby is determined the relative advantages and disadvantages possessed -by the opposing armies in: - - 1. Time. - - 2. Numbers. - - 3. Position. - - 4. Organization. - - 5. Mobility. - - 6. Topography. - -The _First Phase_ in the demonstration of every Prime Strategetic -Proposition consists: - - 1. _In determining by comparison of the relative advantages and - disadvantages in Time, which of the opposing armies has the - ability to MOVE, while the other must remain stationary._ - - 2. _In deducing the MOTIF of such movement._ - - 3. _In designating the DIRECTION of such movement._ - -The making of Grand Reconnaissance is a special privilege which -exclusively appertains to the advantage in _Time_. It always should be -made by the Commander-in-chief of that army which is able to put itself -in motion, while the opposing army must remain stationary, and it never -should be confounded with the advance of the Cavalry Corps, nor confused -with the work of scouts and spies; all of which are matters entirely -separate and distinct from Grand Reconnaissance. - -In the Grand Reconnaissance of any given Strategetic Situation the -element of Numbers _primarily_ is to be considered, for the reason that -the basic fact of the Science of Strategetics is: - - _“THE GREATER FORCE ALWAYS OVERCOMES THE LESSER.”--Napoleon._ - -Hence, unless more immediately vital considerations prevent, superiority -in Numbers, of itself, is _decisive_ of victory; and thus it readily -is to be deduced that all else being equal, the advantage in Time plus -the advantage in Numbers constitutes the easiest and simplest winning -combination known to Strategetic Art. - -But it so happens that the advantage in Time may be combined not only -with the greater force, but also with an equal, or even with the lesser -force, and from this it is self-evident that Strategetic Situations are -divided into three classes, viz.: - - I. Numerical superiority, plus right to move. - - II. Numerical equality, plus right to move. - - III. Numerical inferiority, plus right to move. - -There are _two primary methods_ for availing of superiority in Numbers to -destroy the opposing lesser force, viz.: - - 1. _By the Process of Attrition, i.e., by maintaining an - incessant tactical offensive and thus wearing down the opposing - army by exchanging pieces at every opportunity._ - - 2. _By Acting in Detachments, i.e., by means of the extra corps, - simultaneously to attack more points of vital importance than the - hostile army is able simultaneously to defend._ - -From the foregoing it is obvious that conversely there are two principal -considerations, which all else being equal, must dominate the procedure -of the Numerically inferior force, viz.: - - I. To avoid further diminution of its aggregate. - - II. To avoid creating indefensible vital points. - - * * * * * - -The _second consideration_ in the making of a Grand Reconnaissance by -the commander-in-chief of an army having the advantage in Time, is the -element of _Position_; for the reason that by unscientific posting of -Corps d’armee, relative advantages in Time, or in Numbers or in both, may -be rendered nugatory, on account of inability of the kindred Columns of -Attack, of Support and of Manoeuvre to perform their functions. - -In case the Corps are scientifically posted and are in positions to -avail of advantage in Time and Numbers, those adverse vital points -whose occupation may be effected by superior force, always will be the -objectives of the movements of the latter. - -Hence, the following: - - -PRINCIPLE - -_As the advantage in Time gives the right to MOVE and the advantage -in Numbers indicates the MOTIF of movement; so does the advantage in -Position, as expressed by the Strategic Syllogism, specify the DIRECTION -of that movement which normally appertains to the army having the -advantage in Time._ - -The proper _direction_ of that movement which normally appertains to the -advantage in Time always is indicated by the plus signs in the Strategic -Syllogism, viz.: - - +A. Signifies that the Normal direction of movement for the army - having the advantage in Time is along the Strategetic Center - towards the Objective Plane. - - +S. Signifies that the Normal direction of movement for the army - having the advantage in Time is along one or more pawn - altitudes towards the Kindred Logistic Horizon. - - +M. Signifies that the Normal direction of movement for the army - having the advantage in Time is along the shortest open pawn - altitude towards the Kindred Point of Junction. - - ------- - +A+S. Signifies that the Normal direction of movement for the army - having the advantage in Time is double, _i.e._, - - +A. towards the Objective Plane. - - +S. along one or more open Pawn altitudes toward the - Kindred Logistic Horizon. - - ------- - +A+M. Signifies that the Normal direction of movement for the army - having the advantage in Time, is double, _i.e._, - - +A. towards the Objective Plane. - - +M. Along the shortest open pawn altitude toward the - Kindred Point of Junction. - - ------- - +S+M. Signifies that the Normal direction of movement for the army - having the advantage in Time is double, _i.e._, - - +S. Along one or more open Pawn altitudes toward the - Kindred Logistic Horizon. - - +M. Along the shortest open Pawn Altitude toward the - Kindred Point of Junction. - - ------- - +A+S+M. Signifies that the Normal direction of movement is triple, - _i.e._, - - +A. Toward the Objective Plane. - - +S. Along one or more open Pawn altitudes, toward the - Kindred Logistic Horizon. - - +M. Along the shortest open Pawn altitude, toward the - Kindred Point of Junction. - -The First Phase in the demonstration of every Strategetic Proposition is -determined by the following: - - -THEOREM - -_Given the Normal ability to move, to determine the Normal motif and -direction of movement._ - -1. Designate that army having the advantage in Time and express such -advantage by the symbol +T, express the corresponding disadvantage -in Time which appertains to the opposing army, by the symbol -T, and -such symbols will constitute the First Term of the First Phase of the -demonstration of any Prime Strategetic Proposition. - -2. Express that superiority, equality, or inferiority in Numbers, which -appertains to each of the opposing armies by the symbols +N, =N,-N, -respectively; and such symbols will constitute the Second Term of the -First Phase of the demonstration of any Prime Strategetic Proposition. - -3. Express the objectives designated by the plus terms of the Strategic -Syllogism, viz.: - - (a) Objective of +A = Objective Plane, _i.e._, O. P. - - (b) ” +S = Logistic Horizon, _i.e._, L. H. - - (c) ” +M = Point of Junction, _i.e._, P. J. - -and the symbols denoting such objectives will constitute the Third -Term in the First Phase of the demonstration of any Prime Strategetic -Proposition. - -4. Combine those three terms which appertain to the advantage in Time, -then combine those three terms which appertain to the disadvantage in -Time, and the resulting equation when expanded will depict: - - (a) The normal ability to move. - - (b) The normal motif of movement. - - (c) The normal directions of movement which appertain to each of - the opposing armies. - - -EXAMPLE - - White. (+T+N) + (+A+S+M) - ----------------- - Black. (-T-N) + (-A-S-M) - - -EXPANDED - - First Term. +T = Normal ability to move. - - Second Term. +N = Normal motif of movement, - (a) Detachments, (b) Exchanges. - - Third Term +O. P. = Normal objective of +A. - +L. H. = ” ” ” +S. - +P. J. = ” ” ” +M. - -Hence, in the foregoing example the normal direction of movement for -White may be either toward the Objective Plane with the Column of Attack, -or toward the Logistic Horizon, or the Point of Junction with the Column -of Support, or toward both objectives, with both columns simultaneously. - -Meanwhile, the Black army having the disadvantage in Time is unable to -move, and consequently is stationary. - -Furthermore, White having the superiority in Numbers may move with an -equal force against either objective designated by the Third Term of the -equation, and with his excess force against one or more adverse vital -points, simultaneously, against which latter movement, Black obviously -has no adequate defence. - - -TACTICO-LOGISTIC INEQUALITY - -The Tactico-Logistic Inequality is the algebraic expression of the -relative advantages and disadvantages in Time and in Numbers appertaining -to opposing Strategetic Entireties. - -Such advantages and disadvantages are denoted by the terms, viz.: - -+T. Signifies the absolute advantage in Time, _i.e._, the ability of -an army, a grand column, a wing or a corps d’armee to move, while the -opposing force must remain stationary. - --T. Signifies the absolute disadvantage in Time, _i.e._, the obligation -of an army, a grand column, a wing, or a corps d’armee to remain -stationary, while the opposing force is in motion. - -+N. Signifies the absolute advantage in Numbers, _i.e._, the larger -number of corps d’armee. - --N. Signifies the absolute disadvantage in Numbers, _i.e._, the smaller -number of corps d’armee. - -=N. Signifies the equality in Numbers, _i.e._, the same number of corps -d’armee. - -There are six forms of the Tactico-Logistic Inequality, viz.: - - 1. +T+N - ------ - -T-N - - 2. +T=N - ------ - -T=N - - 3. +T-N - ------ - -T+N - - 4. -T+N - ------ - +T-N - - 5. -T=N - ------ - +T=N - - 6. -T-N - ------ - +T+N - - -INITIAL STRATEGETIC EQUATION - -The Initial Strategetic Equation is made up of those terms which compose -the Strategic Syllogism and the Tactico-Logistic Inequality, viz.: - - ----------------- ----------------- - (+A+S+M) + (+T+N) - (-A-S-M) + (-T-N) = - the Normal Motif and Direction of Effort. - - -RULE - -1. _Set down in parenthesis those terms of the Strategic Syllogism which -appertain to White._ - -_Set down in parenthesis those terms of the Tactico-Logistic Inequality -which appertain to White._ - -_Connect the two kindred terms thus constructed, by the sign of addition, -to show that each is to augment the other, and superscore all by the same -vincula to show that all are to be taken together to form one side of the -resulting equation._ - - * * * * * - -2. _Repeat this process for the Black terms to construct the second side -of the Initial Strategetic Equation, and separate the White from the -Black terms by a minus sign._ - - -STRATEGETIC VALUES - -The Strategetic Values of the terms contained in the Strategic Syllogism -and in the Tactico-Logistic Inequality are shown by the appended tables, -viz.: - - -TABLE OF STRATEGIC VALUES. - - _Term._ _Post._ _Direction._ _Motif._ - - 1. +A Grand Vertex Tactical Key of To give checkmate - Objective Plane - - 2. +M Point Proximity Point of Junction To queen a Pawn - en command - - 3. +A Major Vertex 1. Grand Vertex To gain winning Position - 2. Point Aligned with Column of Attack - 3. Point en Potence - - 4. +M Point Proximity Point en Command To gain winning Position - en Menace with Column of Support - - 5. +M Point Proximity Point en Menace To gain winning Position - en Presence with Column of Support - - 6. +A Minor Vertex 1. Major Vertex To gain Superior Position - 2. Point Aligned with Column of Attack - - 7. +S Point Proximity Point en Presence To gain Superior Position - en Observation with Column of Support - - 8. +S Point Proximity Point en Observation To gain superior Position - en Route with Column of Support - - 9. +S Point Proximity Point en Route To gain advantage with - Remote Column of Support - - -TABLE OF LOGISTIC VALUES - - _Term._ - - 1. +T Unrestricted privilege to move any Piece. - - 2. +T Restricted to moving a Sustaining Piece en counter attack. - - 3. +T Restricted to moving an aggressive Covering Piece. - - 4. +T Restricted to moving a Passive Covering Piece. - - 5. +T Restricted to moving a Supporting Piece. - - 6. +T Restricted to moving the King out of check. - - 7. +T Restricted to moving the King from an untenable Objective Plane. - - 8. +T Restricted to moving a Piece to reduce the value of the Kindred - King’s Logistic Radii. - - -TABLE OF TACTICAL VALUES - - _Term._ - - 1. +N Larger numbers of Grand Corps d’armee of Evolution. - - 2. +N Larger numbers of Major Corps d’armee of Evolution. - - 3. +N Larger numbers of Minor Corps d’armee of Evolution. - - 4. +N Larger numbers of Corps d’armee of Position. - - - - -PRIME STRATEGETIC PROPOSITION - -SECTION TWO - - - - -PRIME STRATEGETIC PROPOSITION - -SECTION TWO - - -THEOREM. - -_Given any Strategetic Situation to determine the True Tactical Sequence._ - - -DEMONSTRATION. - -(_First Phase._) - -Let the term +A in its degree represent the relative advantage in -Position of the Column of Attack; +S in its degree the relative advantage -in Position of the Column of Support, and +M in its degree the relative -advantage in Position of the Column of Manoeuvre; let equality in -Position of the several Columns be represented by the terms =A, =S, =M, -and let inferiority in Positions of the several Columns be represented -by the terms -A, -S, -M, and let those terms appertaining to the White -Columns be written above a line and those terms appertaining to the Black -Columns be written below the line, and let that collection of terms -containing the plus and equal signs of greater Strategetic value be the -Major Premise and that collection of terms containing the signs of lesser -strategetic value be the Minor Premise of the _Strategic Syllogism_ thus -constructed. - -Let the ability to move while the opposing force must remain stationary -be represented by the term +T, and let the converse be represented by -the term -T, and let superiority in Numbers be represented by the term -+N; the equality in Numbers by the term =N, and inferiority in Numbers -by the term -N, and let the combining of any form of the terms T and N -constitute a _Tactico-Logistic Inequality_. - -Let any combination of that Strategic Syllogism which appertains to a -given Strategetic Situation with the corresponding Tactico-Logistic -Inequality, form the _Initial Strategetic Equation_. - -Let the plus terms and the equality terms, which are contained in the -Initial Strategetic Equation, be expanded into their highest forms -according to the table of Strategetic Values, and annex to each of such -terms that numeral which expresses the relative rank of such term in -those calculations which appertain to the pending Prime Strategetic -Proposition. - -Compare the values so obtained and let the highest _Strategetically_ be -regarded as the menace most immediately decisive, then: - -If the term +T appertain to the Piece operating such menace, let such -Piece be regarded as the Corps d’armee en Menace, and the Objective of -such menace as the Prime Decisive Point; the occupation of such Point -by such Piece as the Normal Motif of Offensive Effort, and the Logistic -Radius connecting the Point of Departure occupied by such Piece and the -Prime Decisive Point as the Normal Direction of Offensive Effort. - -If the term +T does NOT apply to that menace which combined with the term -+T would be most immediately decisive, then: - -By further comparison of the terms of the Initial Strategetic Equation, -select that Decisive Menace strategetically next in sequence to which -the term +T does appertain; and let the Piece operating such Decisive -Menace be regarded as the Corps d’armee en Menace; the Objective of such -menace as the Prime Decisive Point; the occupation of such Point by such -Piece as the Normal Motif of Offensive Effort, and the Logistic Radius -connecting the Point of Departure occupied by such Piece and the Prime -Decisive Points as the Normal direction of Offensive Effort. - -Provided: - -Whenever the term +T appertains to a Menace not so immediately decisive -as another menace operated by an adverse army, column, wing or corps -d’armee, but to which the term +T does _not_ appertain, then: the Normal -motif of Effort is _defensive_, and the Normal direction of Defensive -Effort is along the Logistic Radius between the Point of Departure of -that Kindred Piece, which by the advantage of the term +A, is able to -nullify the adverse most immediately Decisive Menace and that Point of -Command which is the Objective of such Effort en Defence and from whence -such adverse most immediately Decisive Menace may be nullified. - - * * * * * - -The second or Intermediate Phase of the Prime Strategetic Proposition -appertains to Grand Manoeuvres; and the third, or Final Phase, appertains -to Grand Operations. - -_However vast one’s capabilities may be, there is no mind so -comprehensive but that it has much to learn from other minds which have -preceded it, and no talent is so potential but that its development is -proportional to its exercise._ - -_For no matter how broad and exact one’s knowledge, the application of -such knowledge alone constitutes Art, and the value of such knowledge -always is commensurate to the degree of skill attained in the use of it._ - -_Hence, there is a training of the physical senses which gives quickness -and strength to the eye, the ear and the hand; a training of the nervous -organism which gives courage to the heart, clearness to the brain, and -steadiness to the body; a training of the intellect which fructifies in -originality, ingenuity, profundity and exactness of calculation._ - -_Such training is to be acquired only from systematic study of the best -productions by Masters of the Art, and by incessant practice with the -best proficients._ - - - - - -End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Chess Generalship, Vol. I. Grand -Reconnaissance, by Franklin K. Young - -*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CHESS GENERALSHIP, VOL. I. *** - -***** This file should be named 55278-0.txt or 55278-0.zip ***** -This and all associated files of various formats will be found in: - http://www.gutenberg.org/5/5/2/7/55278/ - -Produced by Donald Cummings, Adrian Mastronardi and the -Online Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net -(This file was produced from images generously made -available by The Internet Archive/American Libraries.) - -Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will -be renamed. - -Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright -law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works, -so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United -States without permission and without paying copyright -royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part -of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm -concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark, -and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive -specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this -eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook -for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports, -performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given -away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks -not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the -trademark license, especially commercial redistribution. - -START: FULL LICENSE - -THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE -PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK - -To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free -distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work -(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project -Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full -Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at -www.gutenberg.org/license. - -Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic works - -1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to -and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property -(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all -the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or -destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your -possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a -Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound -by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the -person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph -1.E.8. - -1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be -used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who -agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few -things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works -even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See -paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this -agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below. - -1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the -Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection -of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual -works in the collection are in the public domain in the United -States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the -United States and you are located in the United States, we do not -claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing, -displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as -all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope -that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting -free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm -works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the -Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily -comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the -same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when -you share it without charge with others. - -1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern -what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are -in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, -check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this -agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, -distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any -other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no -representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any -country outside the United States. - -1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: - -1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other -immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear -prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work -on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the -phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, -performed, viewed, copied or distributed: - - This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and - most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no - restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it - under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this - eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the - United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you - are located before using this ebook. - -1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is -derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not -contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the -copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in -the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are -redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project -Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply -either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or -obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm -trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. - -1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted -with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution -must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any -additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms -will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works -posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the -beginning of this work. - -1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm -License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this -work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm. - -1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this -electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without -prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with -active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project -Gutenberg-tm License. - -1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, -compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including -any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access -to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format -other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official -version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site -(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense -to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means -of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain -Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the -full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. - -1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, -performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works -unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. - -1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing -access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works -provided that - -* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from - the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method - you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed - to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has - agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project - Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid - within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are - legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty - payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project - Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in - Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg - Literary Archive Foundation." - -* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies - you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he - does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm - License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all - copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue - all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm - works. - -* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of - any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the - electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of - receipt of the work. - -* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free - distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works. - -1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than -are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing -from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The -Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm -trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below. - -1.F. - -1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable -effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread -works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project -Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may -contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate -or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other -intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or -other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or -cannot be read by your equipment. - -1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right -of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project -Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project -Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all -liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal -fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT -LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE -PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE -TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE -LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR -INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH -DAMAGE. - -1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a -defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can -receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a -written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you -received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium -with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you -with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in -lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person -or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second -opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If -the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing -without further opportunities to fix the problem. - -1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth -in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO -OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT -LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. - -1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied -warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of -damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement -violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the -agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or -limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or -unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the -remaining provisions. - -1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the -trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone -providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in -accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the -production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, -including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of -the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this -or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or -additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any -Defect you cause. - -Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm - -Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of -electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of -computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It -exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations -from people in all walks of life. - -Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the -assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's -goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will -remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project -Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure -and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future -generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see -Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at -www.gutenberg.org - - - -Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation - -The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit -501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the -state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal -Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification -number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by -U.S. federal laws and your state's laws. - -The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the -mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its -volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous -locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt -Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to -date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and -official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact - -For additional contact information: - - Dr. Gregory B. Newby - Chief Executive and Director - gbnewby@pglaf.org - -Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg -Literary Archive Foundation - -Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide -spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of -increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be -freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest -array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations -($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt -status with the IRS. - -The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating -charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United -States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a -considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up -with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations -where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND -DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular -state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate - -While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we -have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition -against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who -approach us with offers to donate. - -International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make -any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from -outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. - -Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation -methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other -ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To -donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate - -Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. - -Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project -Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be -freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and -distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of -volunteer support. - -Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed -editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in -the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not -necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper -edition. - -Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search -facility: www.gutenberg.org - -This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, -including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to -subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. - diff --git a/old/55278-0.zip b/old/55278-0.zip Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 23ad959..0000000 --- a/old/55278-0.zip +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/55278-h.zip b/old/55278-h.zip Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 1519992..0000000 --- a/old/55278-h.zip +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/55278-h/55278-h.htm b/old/55278-h/55278-h.htm deleted file mode 100644 index ddd578a..0000000 --- a/old/55278-h/55278-h.htm +++ /dev/null @@ -1,8861 +0,0 @@ -<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN" - "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd"> -<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en"> - <head> - <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" /> - <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" /> - <title> - The Project Gutenberg eBook of Chess Generalship, by Franklin K. Young. - </title> - - <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" /> - -<style type="text/css"> - -a { - text-decoration: none; -} - -body { - margin-left: 10%; - margin-right: 10%; -} - -h1,h2,h3,h4,h5,h6 { - text-align: center; - clear: both; -} - -hr { - margin-top: 2em; - margin-bottom: 2em; - clear: both; -} - -hr.tb { - width: 25%; - margin-left: 37.5%; - margin-right: 37.5%; -} - -hr.chap { - width: 65%; - margin-left: 17.5%; - margin-right: 17.5%; -} - -ul { - list-style-type: none; -} - -li { - margin-top: .5em; - padding-left: 2em; - text-indent: -2em; -} - -li.isub1 { - padding-left: 3.5em; - text-indent: -2em; -} - -p { - margin-top: 0.5em; - text-align: justify; - margin-bottom: 0.5em; - text-indent: 1em; -} - -table { - margin: 1em auto 1em auto; - max-width: 40em; -} - -td { - padding-left: 0.25em; - padding-right: 0.25em; - vertical-align: top; -} - -td.smaller { - font-size: 90%; - padding-left: 2em; -} - -td.chessbook { - font-size: 80%; - padding-left: 1.5em; - text-align: justify; - padding-bottom: 1.5em; -} - -td.bt { - border-top: thin solid black; -} - -tr.why-can-you-not-pad-rows td { - padding-top: 0.5em; -} - -.blockquote { - margin-left: 10%; - margin-right: 10%; -} - -.center { - text-align: center; - text-indent: 0em; -} - -div.chapterhead { - margin: auto; - max-width: 40em; - page-break-before: always; -} - -p.chapterhead { - font-size: 150%; - font-weight: bold; - text-align: center; - text-indent: 0; -} - -.ditto { - margin-left: 1.25em; - margin-right: 1.25em; -} - -.example { - text-align: center; - text-indent: 0; - margin-top: 1.5em; -} - -.footnotes { - margin-top: 1em; - border: dashed 1px; -} - -.footnote { - margin-left: 10%; - margin-right: 10%; - font-size: 0.9em; -} - -.footnote .label { - position: absolute; - right: 84%; - text-align: right; -} - -.fnanchor { - vertical-align: super; - font-size: .8em; - text-decoration: none; -} - -.frontmatter { - margin: auto; - max-width: 40em; - page-break-before: always; -} - -.gothic { - font-family: 'Old English Text MT', Old English, serif; -} - -.hanging { - padding-left: 2em; - text-indent: -2em; - margin-bottom: 1.5em; -} - -.noindent { - text-indent: 0em; -} - -.larger { - font-size: 150%; -} - -.lhigh { - line-height: 1.75em; -} - -.pagenum { - position: absolute; - right: 4%; - font-size: smaller; - text-align: right; - font-style: normal; -} - -.poetry-container { - text-align: center; - margin: 1em; -} - -.poetry { - display: inline-block; - text-align: left; -} - -.poetry .stanza { - margin: 1em 0em 1em 0em; -} - -.poetry .verse { - text-indent: -3em; - padding-left: 3em; -} - -.poetry .indent1 { - text-indent: -2em; -} - -.quote { - margin: 2em 5%; -} - -.right { - text-align: right; -} - -.sig { - margin-right: 10%; - text-align: right; - text-indent: 0; -} - -.smaller { - font-size: 80%; -} - -.smcap { - font-variant: small-caps; - font-style: normal; -} - -.spacer { - margin-right: 3em; -} - -.tdc { - text-align: center; -} - -.tdr { - text-align: right; -} - -.titlepage { - text-align: center; - margin-top: 3em; - text-indent: 0em; -} - -@media handheld { - -img { - max-width: 100%; - width: auto; - height: auto; -} - -.poetry { - display: block; - margin-left: 1.5em; -} - -.blockquote { - margin-left: 5%; - margin-right: 5%; -} -} - </style> - </head> -<body> - - -<pre> - -The Project Gutenberg EBook of Chess Generalship, Vol. I. Grand -Reconnaissance, by Franklin K. Young - -This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most -other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions -whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of -the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at -www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have -to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook. - -Title: Chess Generalship, Vol. I. Grand Reconnaissance - -Author: Franklin K. Young - -Release Date: August 6, 2017 [EBook #55278] - -Language: English - -Character set encoding: UTF-8 - -*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CHESS GENERALSHIP, VOL. I. *** - - - - -Produced by Donald Cummings, Adrian Mastronardi and the -Online Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net -(This file was produced from images generously made -available by The Internet Archive/American Libraries.) - - - - - - -</pre> - - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_i" id="Page_i">[i]</a></span></p> - -<div class="frontmatter"> - -<h1>CHESS<br /> -GENERALSHIP</h1> - -<p class="titlepage"><span class="smaller">BY</span><br /> -FRANKLIN K. YOUNG</p> - -<p class="titlepage larger"><i>Vol. I.</i><br /> -GRAND RECONNAISSANCE.</p> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p>“<i>He who first devised chessplay, made a model of the -Art Militarie, representing therein all the concurrents -and contemplations of War, without omitting any.</i>”</p> - -<p>“<i>Examen de Ingenios.</i>”</p> - -<p class="right"><i>Juan Huarte, 1616.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p>“<i>Chess is the deepest of all games; it is constructed to -carry out the principal of a battle, and the whole theory of -Chess lies in that form of action.</i>”</p> - -<p class="right"><i>Emanuel Lasker.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p class="titlepage">BOSTON<br /> -INTERNATIONAL PUBLISHING CO.<br /> -1910</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_ii" id="Page_ii">[ii]</a></span></p> - -<p class="titlepage smaller"><i>Copyright, 1910</i>,<br /> -<span class="smcap">By Franklin K. Young</span>.</p> - -<p class="center smaller"><i>Entered at Stationers’ Hall.</i></p> - -<p class="center smaller"><i>All rights reserved.</i></p> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p>“<i>Chess is the gymnasium for the mind—it does for the -brain what athletics does for the body.</i>”</p> - -<p class="right"><i>Henry Thomas Buckle.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p class="titlepage smaller"><span class="smcap">George E. Crosby Co., Printers, Boston, Mass.</span></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_iii" id="Page_iii">[iii]</a></span></p> - -<p class="center larger">YOUNG’S CHESS WORKS</p> - -<table summary="A list of books"> - <tr> - <td><span class="smcap">Minor Tactics of Chess</span></td> - <td class="tdr">$1.00</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="chessbook">An eminently attractive treatment of the game - of Chess.—<i>Scientific American.</i></td> - <td></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td><span class="smcap">Major Tactics of Chess</span></td> - <td class="tdr">2.50</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="chessbook">In this book one finds the principles of - strategy and logistics applied to Chess in a unique and scientific - way.—<i>Army and Navy Register.</i></td> - <td></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td><span class="smcap">Grand Tactics of Chess</span></td> - <td class="tdr">3.50</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="chessbook">For the student who desires to enter the broader - channels of Chess, the best books are by FRANKLIN K. YOUNG: his “Minor - Tactics” and his more elaborate “Grand Tactics” are the most important - productions of modern Chess literature.—<i>American Chess Magazine.</i></td> - <td></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td><span class="smcap">Chess Strategetics Illustrated</span></td> - <td class="tdr">2.50</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="chessbook">We know no work outside of the masterpieces of Newton, - Hamilton and Darwin, which so organizes and systematizes human - thought.—<i>Chicago Evening Post.</i></td> - <td></td> - </tr> -</table> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_iv" id="Page_iv">[iv]</a></span></p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="poetry-container"> -<div class="poetry"> -<div class="stanza"> -<div class="verse"><i>“There are secrets that the children</i></div> -<div class="verse"><i>Are not taught in public school;</i></div> -<div class="verse"><i>If these secrets were broadcasted,</i></div> -<div class="verse"><i>How could we the masses rule?</i></div> -<div class="verse"><i>If they understood Religion,</i></div> -<div class="verse"><i>Jurisprudence, Trade and War,</i></div> -<div class="verse"><i>Would they groan and sweat and labor—</i></div> -<div class="verse"><i>Make our bricks and furnish straw?”</i></div> -</div> -<div class="stanza"> -<div class="verse right"><i>Anon.</i></div> -</div> -</div> -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_v" id="Page_v">[v]</a></span></p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p class="center lhigh"><span class="smaller">TO</span><br /> -<span class="gothic">The Memory</span><br /> -<span class="smaller">OF</span><br /> -<span class="larger">EPAMINONDAS</span><br /> -THE INVENTOR<br /> -<span class="smaller">OF</span><br /> -SCIENTIFIC WARFARE</p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="poetry-container"> -<div class="poetry"> -<div class="stanza"> -<div class="verse"><i>“I leave no sons</i></div> -<div class="verse indent1"><i>To perpetuate my name;</i></div> -<div class="verse indent1"><i>But I leave two daughters—</i></div> -<div class="verse"><i>LEUCTRA and MANTINEA</i></div> -<div class="verse indent1"><i>Who will transmit my fame</i></div> -<div class="verse indent1"><i>To remotest posterity.”</i></div> -</div> -</div> -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_vi" id="Page_vi">[vi]</a></span></p> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“For empire and greatness it importeth most that a -people do profess arms as their principal honor, study and -occupation.”—Sir Francis Bacon.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“There is nothing truly imposing but Military Glory.”—Napoleon.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“The conquered in war, sinking beneath the tribute -exacted by the victor and not daring to utter their impotent -hatred, bequeath to their children miseries so extreme that -the aged have not further evil to fear in death, nor the youthful -any good to hope in life.”—Xenocles.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“War is an element established by the Deity in the -order of the World; perpetual peace upon this Earth we -inhabit is a dream.”—Von Moltke.</i></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_vii" id="Page_vii">[vii]</a></span></p> - -<h2 id="PREFACE">PREFACE</h2> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“To become a good General one well may begin by playing -at Chess.”—Prince de Condé.</i></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Except the theatre of actual Warfare, no spot known to -man furnishes such facilities for the practice of combined -strategy, tactics and logistics as does the surface of the -Chess-board.</i></p> - -<p>To those familiar with the Science of Strategetics, it -needs no proof that ability to play a good game at Chess, -indicates the possession of faculties common to all great -military commanders.</p> - -<p>At a certain point, the talent of Morphy for Chess-play -and the talent of Napoleon for Warfare become merged; -and beyond this point, their methods of thought and of -action are identical.</p> - -<p>Opportunity to display, and in most spectacular -fashion, their singular and superlative genius, was not -wanting to either.</p> - -<p>But unlike the ferocious Corsican, whose “only desire -is to find myself on the battlefield,” the greatest of all -Masters at Chess, found in the slaughter of his fellow-creatures -no incentive sufficient to call forth those unsurpassed -strategetical powers, which recorded Chess-play -shows he possessed.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_viii" id="Page_viii">[viii]</a></span></p> - -<p>From this sameness of talent, common to the great -Chess-player and the great military commander, arises -the practical utility of the Royal Game.</p> - -<p>For by means of Chess-play, one may learn and practice -in their highest interpretation, mental and physical -processes of paramount importance to the community -in time of extreme peril.</p> - -<p>From such considerations and for the further reason -that in a true Republic all avenues to greatness are -open to merit, scientific Chess-play should be intelligently -and systematically taught in the public schools. -“A people desirous of liberty will entrust its defense to -none but themselves,” says the Roman maxim, and in -crises, woe to that land where the ruler is but a child in -arms, and where the disinclination of the people towards -its exercise is equalled by their unfamiliarity with the -military habit.</p> - -<p>Despite the ethics of civilization, the optimism of the -“unco guid” and the unction even of our own heart’s -deep desire, there seems no doubt but that each generation -will have its wars.</p> - -<p>“<i>Pax perpetua</i>,” writes Leibnitz, “exists only in -God’s acre.” Here on earth, if seems that men forever -will continue to murder one another for various reasons; -all of which, in the future as in the past, will be good and -sufficient to the fellow who wins; and this by processes -differing only in neatness and despatch.</p> - -<p>Whether this condition is commendable or not, depends -upon the point of view. Being irremediable, such -phase of the subject hardly is worth discussing. However, -the following by a well-qualified observer, is interesting -and undeniably an intelligent opinion, viz.:</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_ix" id="Page_ix">[ix]</a></span></p> - -<h3>From the essay on “WAR,” read by Prof. John Ruskin -at Woolwich, (Eng.) Military Academy.</h3> - -<p>“All the pure and noble arts of Peace are founded on -War; no great Art ever rose on Earth, but among a -nation of soldiers.</p> - -<p>“As Peace is established or extended the Arts decline. -They reach an unparalleled pitch of costliness, but lose -their life, enlist themselves at last on the side of luxury -and corruption and among wholly tranquil nations, -wither utterly away.</p> - -<p>“So when I tell you that War is the foundation of all -the Arts, I mean also that it is the foundation of all the -high virtues and faculties of men.</p> - -<p>“It was very strange for me to discover this and very -dreadful—but I saw it to be quite an undeniable fact.</p> - -<p>“We talk of Peace and Learning, of Peace and Plenty, -of Peace and Civilization; but I found that those were -not the words which the Muse of History coupled together; -but that on her lips the words were—Peace and -Selfishness, Peace and Sensuality, Peace and Corruption, -Peace and Death.</p> - -<p>“I found in brief, that all great nations learned their -truth of word and strength of thought in War; that they -were nourished in War and wasted in Peace; taught by -War and deceived by Peace; trained by War and betrayed -by Peace; that they were born in War and expired -in Peace.</p> - -<p>“Creative, or foundational War, is that in which -the natural restlessness and love of contest among men, -is disciplined into modes of beautiful—though it may be -fatal—play; in which the natural ambition and love of -Power is chastened into aggressive conquest of surrounding -evil; and in which the natural instincts of self-defence<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_x" id="Page_x">[x]</a></span> -are sanctified by the nobleness of the institutions which -they are appointed to defend.</p> - -<p>“For such War as this all men are born; in such War -as this any man may happily die; and forth from such -War as this have arisen throughout the Ages, all the -highest sanctities and virtues of Humanity.”</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>That our own country may escape the common lot of -nations, is something not even to be hoped.</p> - -<p>Defended by four almost bottomless ditches, nevertheless -it is a certainty that coming generations of Americans -must stand in arms, not only to repel foreign aggression, -but to uphold even the integrity of the Great Republic; -and with the hand-writing of coming events flaming on -the wall, posterity well may heed the solemn warning of -by-gone centuries:</p> - -<p>“<i>As man is superior to the brute, so is a trained and -educated soldier superior to the merely brave, numerous -and enthusiastic.</i>”</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“The evils to be apprehended from a standing army are -remote and in my judgment, not to be dreaded; but the consequence -of lacking one is inevitable ruin.”—Washington.</i></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xi" id="Page_xi">[xi]</a></span></p> - -<h2>CONTENTS</h2> - -<table summary="Contents"> - <tr> - <td></td> - <td class="tdr smaller">PAGE</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>PREFACE</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#PREFACE">VII</a></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>INTRODUCTORY</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#INTRODUCTORY">XIII</a></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>CHESS GENERALSHIP</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#GENERALSHIP">3</a></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>GRAND RECONNAISSANCE</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#GRAND_RECONNAISSANCE">23</a></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="smaller">Military Examples</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#GRAND_RECONNAISSANCE_EXAMPLES">28</a></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>ORGANIZATION</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#ORGANIZATION">45</a></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="smaller">Military Examples</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#ORGANIZATION_EXAMPLES">59</a></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>TOPOGRAPHY</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#TOPOGRAPHY">73</a></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="smaller">Military Examples</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#TOPOGRAPHY_EXAMPLES">85</a></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>MOBILITY</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#MOBILITY">97</a></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="smaller">Military Examples</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#MOBILITY_EXAMPLES">116</a></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>NUMBERS</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#NUMBERS">123</a></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="smaller">Military Examples</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#NUMBERS_EXAMPLES">127</a></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>TIME</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#TIME">139</a></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="smaller">Military Examples</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#TIME_EXAMPLES">142</a></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>POSITION</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#POSITION">147</a></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="smaller">Military Examples</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#POSITION_EXAMPLES">158</a></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>PRIME STRATEGETIC MEANS</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#PRIME_STRATEGETIC_MEANS">169</a></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>PRIME STRATEGETIC PROPOSITION</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#PRIME_STRATEGETIC_PROPOSITION_1">185</a></td> - </tr> -</table> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xii" id="Page_xii">[xii]</a></span></p> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“The progress of Science universally is retarded, because -sufficient attention is not paid to explaining essentials in -particular and exactly to define the terms employed.”—Euclid.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“The first care of the sage should be to discover the true -character of his pupils. By his questions he should assist -them to explain their own ideas and by his answers he -should compel them to perceive their falsities. By accurate -definitions he should gradually dispel the incongruities in -their earlier education and by his subtlety in arousing their -doubts, he should redouble their curiosity and eagerness -for information; for the art of the instructor consists in -inciting his pupils to that point at which they cannot endure -their manifest ignorance.</i></p> - -<p><i>“Many, unable to undergo this trial and confounded -by offended self-conceit and lacking the fortitude to sustain -correction, forsake their master, who should not be eager to -recall them. Others who learn from humiliation to distrust -themselves should no longer have snares spread for their -vanity. The master should speak to them neither with the -severity of a censor nor with the haughtiness of a sophist, -nor deal in harsh reproaches nor importunate complaints; -his discourse should be the language of reason and friendship -in the mouth of experience.”—Socrates.</i></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xiii" id="Page_xiii">[xiii]</a></span></p> - -<h2 id="INTRODUCTORY">INTRODUCTORY</h2> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“The test is as true of cerebral power, as if a hundred -thousand men lay dead upon the field; or a score of hulks -were swinging blackened wrecks, after a game between two -mighty admirals.”—Dr. Oliver Wendell Holmes.</i></p> - -<p class="right">(Opening Address at Morphy Banquet, Boston, 1859.)</p> - -</div> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Men whose business it is to understand war and warfare -often are amused by senseless comparisons made by -writers who, as their writings show, are ignorant even of -the rudiments of military art and science. Of course a -certain license in expression of thought is not to be denied -the layman; he cannot be expected to talk with the exactness -of the man who knows. At the same time there -is a limit beyond which the non-technical man passes -at his peril, and this limit is reached when he poses as a -critic and presumes to dogmatize on matters in regard to -which he is uninformed.</i></p> - -<p>The fanciful conjectures of such people, well are -illustrated by the following editorial <i>faux pas</i>, perpetrated -by a leading metropolitan daily, viz.:</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>“<i>Everyone knows now that a future war between states -having similar and substantially equal equipments will -be a different affair from any war of the past; characterized -by a different order of generalship and a radically novel -application of the principles of strategy and tactics.</i>”</p> - -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xiv" id="Page_xiv">[xiv]</a></span></p> - -<p>Many in the struggle to obtain their daily bread, are -tempted to essay the unfamiliar, and for a stipulated -wage to pose as teachers to the public.</p> - -<p>Such always will do well to write modestly in regard -to sciences which they have not studied and of arts -which they never practiced, and especially in future -comments on Military matters, such people may profit -by the appended modicum of that ancient history, which -newspaper men as a class so affect to despise, and in -regard to which, as a rule, they are universally and -lamentably, ignorant.</p> - -<p>What orders of Generalship can exist in the future, -different from those which always have existed since -war was made, viz.: good generalship and bad generalship?</p> - -<p>Ability properly to conduct an army is a concrete -thing; it does not admit of comparison. Says Frederic -the Great:</p> - -<p>“There are only two kinds of Generals—those who -know their trade and those who do not.”</p> - -<p>Hence, “a different order of Generalship,” suggested -by the editorial quoted, implies either a higher or a lesser -degree of ability in the “general of the future”; and as -obviously, it is impossible that he can do worse than -many already have done, it is necessary to assume that -the commander of tomorrow will be an improvement -over his predecessors.</p> - -<p>Consequently, to the military mind it becomes of -paramount interest to inquire as to the form and manner -in which such superiority will be tangibly and visibly -manifested, viz.:</p> - -<p>Will the general of the future be a better general than -Epaminondas, Alexander, Hannibal, Caesar, Gustavus -Adolphus, Turenne, Eugene, Frederic, Washington, -Napoleon, Von Moltke?</p> - -<p>Will he improve upon that application of the principles<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xv" id="Page_xv">[xv]</a></span> -of strategy and tactics to actual warfare which comes -down to us of today, stamped with the approval of these -superlative military geniuses?</p> - -<p>Will the general of the future know a better way for -making war than acting against the enemy’s communications?</p> - -<p>Will he devise a better method of warfare than that -whose motive is the concentration of a superior force upon -the strategetic objective?</p> - -<p>Will the processes of his prime logistic operations be -preferable to those of men who won their victories before -their battles were fought, by combining with their -troops the topography of the country, and causing -rivers and mountains to take the place of corps d’armee?</p> - -<p>Will the general of the future renounce as obsolete -and worthless that military organization founded centuries -before the Christian Era, by the great Theban, -Epaminondas, the father of scientific warfare; that -system adopted by every captain of renown and which -may be seen in its purity in the greater military establishments -from the days of Rome to the present Imperial -North German Confederation?</p> - -<p>Will the general of the future renounce as obsolete -and worthless that system of Minor Tactics utilized by -every man who has made it his business to conquer the -World? Will he propose to us something more perfect -than the primary formation of forces depicted in Plate -XIII of the Secret Strategical Instructions of Frederic II?</p> - -<p>Will the general of the future renounce as obsolete -and worthless those intricate, but mathematically exact, -evolutions of the combined arms, which appertain to the -Major Tactics of men who are remembered to this day -for the battles that they won?</p> - -<p>Will he invent processes more destructive than those -whereby Epaminondas crushed at Leuctra and Mantinea -the power of Sparta, and the women of Lacedaemon saw<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xvi" id="Page_xvi">[xvi]</a></span> -the smoke of an enemy’s camp fire for the first time in six -hundred years?</p> - -<p>Than those whereby Alexander, a youth of eighteen, -won Greece for his father at Chaeronea and the World -for himself at Issus and Arbela? Than those whereby -Hannibal destroyed seriatim four Roman armies at -Trebia, Thrasymenus, Cannae and Herdonea?</p> - -<p>Will he find out processes more sudden and decisive -than those whereby Caesar conquered Gaul and Pompey -and the son of Mithridates, and which are fitly described -only in his own language; “Veni, vidi, vici”?</p> - -<p>What will the general of the future substitute for the -three contiguous sides of the octagon whereby Tamerlane -the Great with his 1,400,000 veterans at the Plains -of Angora, enveloped the Emperor Bajazet and 900,000 -Turks in the most gigantic battle of record?</p> - -<p>Will he eclipse the pursuit of these latter by Mizra, -the son of Tamerlane, who with the Hunnish light -cavalry rode two hundred and thirty miles in five days -and captured the Turkish capital, the Emperor Bajazet, -his harem and the royal treasure?</p> - -<p>Will he excel Gustavus Adolphus, who dominated -Europe for twenty years, and Turenne, the military Atlas -who upheld that magnificent civilization which embellishes -the reign of Louis XIV?</p> - -<p>Will he do better than Prince Eugene, who victoriously -concluded eighteen campaigns and drove the Turks out -of Christendom?</p> - -<p>Will he discover processes superior to those whereby -Frederic the Great with 22,000 troops destroyed at -Rosbach a French army of 60,000 regulars in an hour and -a half, at the cost of three hundred men; and at Leuthern -with 33,000 troops, killed, wounded or captured 54,000 -out of 93,000 Austrians, at a cost of 3,900 men?</p> - -<p>Will he improve on those processes whereby Napoleon -with 40,000 men, destroyed in a single year five Austrian<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xvii" id="Page_xvii">[xvii]</a></span> -armies and captured 150,000 prisoners? Will he improve -on Rivoli, Austerlitz, Jena, Friedland, Wagram, -Dresden, and Ligny?</p> - -<p>Will the general of the future renounce as obsolete -and worthless that system of Grand Tactics, by means -of which the mighty ones of Earth have swept before -them all created things?</p> - -<p>Will his system surpass in grandeur of conception and -exactness of execution the march of Alexander to the -Indus? Will he reply to his rival’s prayers for peace and -amity as did the great Macedonian; “There can be but -one Master of the World”; and to the dissuasions of his -friend; “So would I do, were I Parmenio”?</p> - -<p>Will he do things more gigantic than Hannibal’s -march across the Alps?</p> - -<p>Than the operation of Alesia by Caesar; where the -Romans besieging one Gallic army in a fortified city, and -themselves surrounded by a second Gallic army, single -handed destroyed both? Than the circuit of the Caspian -Sea by the 200,000 light cavalry of Tamerlane, a -feat of mountain climbing which never has been duplicated? -Than that marvelous combination of the -principles of tactics and of field fortification, whereby in -the position of Bunzelwitz, Frederic the Great, with -55,000 men, successfully upheld the last remaining prop -of the Prussian nation, against 250,000 Russian and -Austrian regular troops, commanded by the best generals -of the age?</p> - -<p>Will he conceive anything more scientific and artistic -than the manoeuvre of Trenton and Princeton by -Washington? Than the capture of Burgoyne at Saratoga -and Cornwallis at Yorktown? Than the manoeuvres -of Ulm, of Jena, of Landshut? Than the manoeuvres -of Napoleon in 1814? Than the manoeuvre of Charleroi -in 1815, declared by Jomini to be Napoleon’s masterpiece? -Will he excel the manoeuvres of Kutosof and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xviii" id="Page_xviii">[xviii]</a></span> -Wittsengen in 1812-13 and of Blucher on Paris in 1814 -and on Waterloo in 1815; each of which annihilated for -the time being the military power of France?</p> - -<p>Will he devise military conceptions superior to those -whereby Von Moltke overthrew Denmark in six hours, -Austria in six days, and France in six weeks?</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>The sapient race of quill-drivers ever has hugged to its -breast many delusions; some of which border upon the -outer intellectual darkness. One of these delusions is -that most persistently advertised, least substantial, but -forever darling first favorite of timid and inexperienced -minds: “<i>The pen is mightier than the sword.</i>”</p> - -<p>Explanation of the invincible ignorance of the penny-a-liner -is simple, viz.:</p> - -<p>Of the myriad self-appointed educators to the public, -few are familiar even with the rudimentary principles of -Military Science and almost none are acquainted even -with the simplest processes of Strategetic Art. Hence, -like all who discourse on matters which they do not -understand, such writers continually confound together -things which have no connection.</p> - -<p>Ignorant of war and the use of weapons; bewildered by -the prodigious improvements in mechanical details, -they immoderately magnify the importance of such improvements, -oblivious to the fact that these latter relate -exclusively to elementary tactics and in no way affect -the system of Strategy, Logistics, and the higher branches -of Tactics.</p> - -<p>Of such people, the least that can be said and that in -all charity, is, that before essaying the role of the -pedagogue, they should endeavor to grasp that most -obvious of all truths:</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>“<i>A man cannot teach what he never has learned.</i>”</p> - -</div> - -<p>Says Frederic the Great: “Improvements and new<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xix" id="Page_xix">[xix]</a></span> -discoveries in implements of warfare will be made continually; -and generals then alive must modify tactics to -comply with these novelties. But the Grand Art of -taking advantage of topographical conditions and of the -faulty disposition of the opposing forces, ETERNALLY -WILL REMAIN UNCHANGED in the military -system.”</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Naturally, the student now is led to inquire:</p> - -<p>What then is this immutable military system? What -are its text books, where is it taught and from whom is it -to be learned?</p> - -<p>In answer it may be stated:</p> - -<p>At the present day, private military schools make no -attempt to teach more than elementary tactics. Even -the Governmental academy curriculum aims little higher -than the school of the battalion.</p> - -<p>Scientific Chess-play begins where these institutions -leave off, and ends at that goal which none of these -institutions even attempt to reach.</p> - -<p>Chess teaches to conduct campaigns, to win battles, -and to move troops securely and effectively in the -presence of and despite the opposition of an equal or -superior enemy.</p> - -<p>Military schools graduate boys as second-lieutenants -commanding a platoon. Chess graduates Generals, able -to mobilize Corps d’armee, whatever their number or -location; to develop these into properly posted integers -of a grand Strategic Front and to manoeuvre and operate -the army as a Strategetic Unit, in accordance to the laws -of the Strategetic art and the principles of the Strategetic -science.</p> - -<p>By precept and by actual practice, Chess teaches what -is <i>NOT</i> taught in any military school—that least understood<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xx" id="Page_xx">[xx]</a></span> -and most misunderstood; that best guarded and -most invaluable of all State Secrets—</p> - -<p>The profession of</p> - -<p class="center larger">GENERALSHIP.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xxi" id="Page_xxi">[xxi]</a></span></p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Books will speak plain when counsellors blanch. -Therefore it is good to be conversant with them; especially -the books of such as themselves have been actors upon the -stage.”—Sir Francis Bacon.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xxii" id="Page_xxii">[xxii]</a></span></p> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“At this moment, Europe, which fears neither God nor -devil, grovels in terror before a little man hardly five feet in -height; who, clad in a cocked hat and grey great-coat and -mounted upon a white horse, plods along through mud and -darkness; followed by the most enthusiastic, most devoted -and most efficient band of cut-throats and robbers, the -world has ever seen.”</i></p> - -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xxiii" id="Page_xxiii">[xxiii]</a></span></p> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Many good soldiers are but poor generals.”—Hannibal.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“No soldier serving under a victorious commander, ever -has enough of war.”—Caesar.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Officers always should be chosen from the nobility and -never from the lower orders of society; for the former, no -matter how dissolute, always retain a sense of honor, while -the latter, though guilty of atrocious actions, return to their -homes without compunction and are received by their -families without disapprobation.”—Frederic the Great.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p>At the terrible disaster of Cannae, the Patrician Consul -Aemilius Paulus and 80,000 Romans died fighting sword -in hand; while the Plebian Consul, Varro, fled early in -the battle. Upon the return of the latter to Rome, the -Senate, instead of ordering his execution, with withering -sarcasm formally voted him its thanks and the thanks -of the Roman people, “that he did not despair of the -Republic.”</p> - -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xxiv" id="Page_xxiv">[xxiv]</a></span></p> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Among us we have a man of singular character—one -Phocion. He seems not to know that he lives in our -modern age and at incomparable Athens. He is poor, yet -is not humiliated by his poverty; he does good, yet never -boasts of it; and gives advice, though he is certain it will -not be followed. He possesses talent without ambition and -serves the state without regard to his own interest. At the -head of the army, he contents himself with restoring discipline -and beating the enemy. When addressing the -assembly, he is equally unmoved by the disapprobation or -the applause of the multitude.</i></p> - -<p><i>“We laugh at his singularities and we have discovered -an admirable secret for revenging ourselves for his contempt. -He is the only general we have left—but we do not -employ him; he is the most upright and perhaps the most -intelligent of our counsellors—but we do not listen to him. -It is true, we cannot make him change his principles, but, -by Heaven, neither shall he induce us to change ours; and -it never shall be said that by the example of his superannuated -virtues and the influence of his antique teachings, -Phocion was able to correct the most polished and amiable -people in the world.”—Callimedon.</i></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapterhead"> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_1" id="Page_1">[1]</a></span></p> - -<p class="chapterhead" id="GENERALSHIP">GENERALSHIP</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_2" id="Page_2">[2]</a></span></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_3" id="Page_3">[3]</a></span></p> - -<h2>CHESS GENERALSHIP</h2> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“In Chess the soldiers are the men and the General is the -mind of the player.”—Emanuel Lasker.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“It is neither riches nor armies that make a nation -formidable; but the courage and genius of the -Commander-in-Chief.”—Frederic the Great.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Ho! Ye Macedonians! Because together we have -conquered the World, think ye to give law to the blood of -Achilles and to withstand the dictates of the Son of Jupiter?</i></p> - -<p><i>“Choose ye a new commander, draw yourselves up for -battle; I will lead against you those Persians whom ye so -despise, and if you are victorious, by Mehercule, I will do -everything that you desire.”—Alexander the Great.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“It is I and I alone, who give you your glory and your -success.”—Napoleon.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“My thoughts are not your thoughts, neither are your -ways, My ways, saith the Lord.”—Holy Bible.</i></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_4" id="Page_4">[4]</a></span></p> - -<p class="hanging"><i>By authority indisputable, the ex-cathedra dictum of the -greatest of the Great Captains, we have been informed that -the higher processes of the military system, eternally will -remain unchanged.</i></p> - -<p class="hanging"><i>As a necessary corollary, it follows that these processes -always have been and always will be comprehended and -employed by every great Captain.</i></p> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Equally, it is self-evident, that capability to comprehend -these higher processes, united with ability properly to -utilize them to win battles and campaigns, constitutes -genius for Warfare.</i></p> - -<p>Moreover, we are further informed by the same unimpeachable -authority, that so irresistible is genius for -warfare, that united to courage, it is formidable beyond -the united financial and military resources of the State. -In corroboration of this, we have the testimony of well-qualified -judges. Says the Count de Saxe:</p> - -<p>“Unless a man is born with talent for war and this -talent is brought to perfection, it is impossible for him -to be more than an indifferent general.”</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>In these days, more or less degenerate from the -soldierly standpoint, the fantastic sophistries of Helvetius -have vogue, and most people believe book-learning -to be all-in-all.</p> - -<p>Many are so weak-minded, as really to believe, that -because born in the Twentieth Century, they necessarily -are the repository of all the virtues, and particularly of -all the knowledge acquired by their ancestors from remotest -generations. Few seem to understand that the -child, even of ultra-modern conditions, is born just as -ignorant and often invincibly so, as were the sons of -Ham, Shem and Japhet, and most appear to be unaware, -that:</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_5" id="Page_5">[5]</a></span></p> - -<p><i>Only by intelligent reflection upon their own experience -and upon the experiences of others, can one acquire knowledge.</i></p> - -<p>The triviality of crowding the memory with things -that may or may not be true, is the merest mimicry of -education.</p> - -<p>Real education is nothing more than the fruit of experience; -and he who acts in conformity to such knowledge, -alone is wise. Thus to act, implies ability to -comprehend. But there are those in whom capability -is limited; hence, all may not be wise who wish to be so, -and these necessarily remain through life very much as -they are born.</p> - -<p>The use of knowledge would be infinitely more certain, -if our understanding of its accurate application were as -extensive as our needs require. We have only a few -ideas of the attributes of matter and of the laws of -mechanics, out of an infinite number of secrets which -mankind never can hope to discover. This renders our -feeble adaptations in practice of the knowledge we -possess, oftimes inadequate for the result we desire; -and it seems obvious that if Nature had intended man -to attain to the superlative, she would have endowed -him with intelligence and have communicated to him -information, infinitely superior to that we possess.</p> - -<p>The universal blunder of mankind arises from an -hallucination that all minds are created equal; and that -by mere book-learning, <i>i.e.</i>, simply by memorizing -what somebody says are facts it is possible for any man -to attain to superior and even to superlative ability.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Such profoundly, but utterly mis-educated people, -not unnaturally may inquire, by what right speaks the -eminent warrior previously quoted. These properly -may be informed in the words of Frederic the Great:</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_6" id="Page_6">[6]</a></span></p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>“<i>The Count de Saxe is the hero of the bravest action ever -done by man.</i>” viz.,</p> - -</div> - -<p>A great battle was raging.</p> - -<p>Within a magnificent Pavilion in the centre of the -French camp, the King, the nobility and the high Ecclesiastics -of the realm were grouped about a plain iron cot.</p> - -<p>Prone upon this cot, wasted by disease, lay the Count -de Saxe, in that stupor which often precedes and usually -presages dissolution.</p> - -<p>The last rites of the Church had been administered, -and the assemblage in silence and apprehension, awaited -the approach of a victorious enemy and the final gasp of a -general who had never lost a battle.</p> - -<p>The din of strife drawing nearer, penetrated the coma -which enshrouded the soul of the great Field-Marshal.</p> - -<p>Saxe opened his eyes. His experienced ear told him -that his army, routed and disordered, was flying before -an exultant enemy.</p> - -<p>The giant whose pastime it was to tear horseshoes in -twain with his bare hands and to twist nails into -corkscrews with his fingers, staggered to his feet, hoarsely -articulating fierce and mandatory ejaculations.</p> - -<p>Hastily clothed, the Count de Saxe was placed in a -litter and borne out of his pavilion into that chaos -of ruin and carnage which invariably accompanies a lost -battle. Around him, behind and in front, swarmed his -broken battalions and disorganized squadrons; while in -pursuit advanced majestically in solid column, the -triumphant English.</p> - -<p>Saxe demanded his horse and armor.</p> - -<p>Clad in iron and supported in the saddle on either -hand, this modern Achilles galloped to the front of his -army; then, at the head of the Scotch Guards, the Irish -Brigade, and French Household troops, Saxe in person, -led that series of terrific hand-to-hand onslaughts which<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_7" id="Page_7">[7]</a></span> -drove the English army from the field of battle, and -gained the famous victory of Fontenoy.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>“Furthermore,” declares this illustrious Generalissimo -of Louis XIV;</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>“<i>It is possible to make war without trusting anything -to accident; this is the highest point of skill and perfection -within the province of a general.</i>”</p> - -</div> - -<p>“Most men,” writes Vergetius, “imagine that strength -and courage are sufficient to secure victory. Such are -ignorant that when they exist, stratagem vanquishes -strength and skill overcomes courage.”</p> - -<p>In his celebrated work, <i>Institutorum Rei Militaris</i>, -that source from whence all writers derive their best -knowledge of the military methods of the ancients; and -by means of which, he strove to revive in his degenerate -countrymen that intelligent valor which distinguishes -their great ancestors—the famous Roman reiterates this -solemn warning:</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>“Victory in war depends not on numbers, nor on -courage; skill and discipline only, can ensure it.”</p> - -</div> - -<p>The emphasis thus laid by these great warriors on -genius for warfare is still further accentuated by men -whose dicta few will dispute, viz.,</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>“The understanding of the Commander,” says Frederic -the Great, “has more influence on the outcome of the -battle or campaign, than has the prowess of his troops.”</p> - -</div> - -<p>Says Napoleon:</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>“The general is the head, the whole of an army. It -was not the Roman army that subjugated Gaul, it was -Caesar; nor was it the Carthagenian army that made -the Republic tremble to the gates of Rome, it was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_8" id="Page_8">[8]</a></span> -Hannibal; it was not the Macedonian army which -reached the Indus, it was Alexander; it was not the -French army which carried war to the Weser and the -Inn, it was Turenne; it was not the Prussian army which -for seven years defended Prussia against the three strongest -powers of Europe, it was Frederic the Great.”</p> - -</div> - -<p>From such opinions by men whose careers evince -superlative knowledge of the subject, it is clear, that:</p> - -<ul> -<li>I. <i>There exists a system of Strategetics common to all -great commanders</i>;</li> -<li>II. <i>That understanding of this system is shown by the -skillful use of it</i>;</li> -<li>III. <i>That such skill is derived from innate capability</i>;</li> -<li>IV. <i>That those endowed by Nature with this talent, -must bring their gifts to perfection, by intelligent study</i>.</li> -</ul> - -<p>So abstruse are the processes of this greatest of all -professions, that comprehension of it has been evidenced -by eleven men only, viz.:</p> - -<p>Epaminondas, Alexander, Caesar, Hannibal, Gustavus -Adolphus, Turenne, Eugene, Frederic, Washington, -Napoleon, Von Moltke.</p> - -<p>Comprehension of this system can be attained, only -by innate capability brought to perfection by intelligent -study of the words and achievements of these great -Captains.</p> - -<p>For life is so short and our memories in general so -defective, that we ought to seek instruction only from -the purest sources.</p> - -<p>None but men endowed by Nature with the military -mind and trained in the school of the great Captains, are -able to write intelligently on the acts and motives of -generals of the first order. All the writings of mere -literati relative to these uncommon men, no matter how -excellent such authors may be, never can rise to anything -more than elegant phraseology.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_9" id="Page_9">[9]</a></span></p> - -<p>It is of enlightened critics, such as the former, that the -youthful student always is first in need. Such will -guide him along a road, in which he who has no conductor -may easily lose himself. They will correct his -blunders considerately, recollecting that should these be -ridiculed or treated with severity, talent might be stifled -which might hereafter bloom to perfection.</p> - -<p>It is a difficult matter to form the average student, -and to impart to him that degree of intelligent audacity -and confident prudence which is requisite for the proper -practice of the Art of Strategetics.</p> - -<p>To secure proficiency, the student from the beginning -must cheerfully submit himself to a mental discipline, -which properly may be termed severe; in order to make -his faculties obedient to his will.</p> - -<p>Secondly, he must regularly exercise these faculties, -in order to make them active and to acquire the habit of -implicitly conforming to the laws of the Art; to make -himself familiar with its processes, and to establish in -his mind that confidence in its practice which can come -only through experience.</p> - -<p>The student daily should exercise his mind in the -routine of deployments, developments, evolutions, manoeuvres, -and operations, both on the offensive and on -the defensive. These exercises should be imprinted on -the memory by closely reviewing the lesson of the previous -day.</p> - -<p>Even with all this severe and constant effort, time is -necessary for practical tactics to become habitual; for -the student must become so familiar with these movements -and formations that he can execute them instantly -and with precision.</p> - -<p>To acquire this degree of perfection, much study is -necessary; it is a mistake to think otherwise. But this -study is its own sufficient reward, for the student soon -will find that it has extended his ideas, and <i>that he is -beginning to think in the GREAT</i>.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_10" id="Page_10">[10]</a></span></p> - -<p>At the same time the student should thoroughly -instruct himself in military history, topography, logic, -mathematics, and the science of fortification. With -all of these the strategist must be familiar.</p> - -<p>But his chief aim must be to perfect his judgment and -to bring it to the highest degree of broadness and -exactness.</p> - -<p>This is best done by contemplation of the works of the -Great Masters.</p> - -<p>The past history of Chess-play, is the true school for -those who aspire to precedence in the Royal Game. It is -their first duty to inform themselves of the processes of -the great in every age, in order to shun their errors and -to avail of their methods.</p> - -<p>It is essential to grasp that system of play common to -the Masters; to pursue it step by step. Particularly is -it necessary to learn that he who can best deduce consequences -in situations whose outcome is in doubt, is -the competitor who will carry off the prize from others -who act less rationally than himself.</p> - -<p>Especially, should the student be wary in regard to -what is termed chess analysis, as applied to the so-called -“openings” and to the mid-game. Most chess analysts -are compilers of falsities occasionally interspersed with -truth. Among the prodigious number of variations -which they pretend to establish or refute, none may be -implicitly relied on in actual play; few are of value -except for merely elementary purposes, and many are -fallacies fatal to the user.</p> - -<p>The reason for this is: whenever men invited by curiosity, -seek to examine circumstantially even the less -intricate situations on the Chess-board, they at once -become lost in a labyrinth abounding in obscurities and -contradictions. Those, who ignorant of the synthetic -method of calculation, are compelled to depend upon -their analytic powers, quickly find that these, on account<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_11" id="Page_11">[11]</a></span> -of the number of unknown quantities, are utterly -inadequate.</p> - -<p>Any attempt to calculate the true move in Chess-play -by analysis, other than in situations devoid of unknown -quantities, is futile.</p> - -<p>Yet it is of such folly that the mediocre mind is most -enamoured. Content with seeing much, it is oblivious -to what it cannot see; and the analytical system consists -merely in claiming that there is nothing to see, other -than what it does see.</p> - -<p>This is that slender reed upon which the so-called -“chess-analyst” hangs his claims, oblivious to the basic -truth that in analysis, unless all is known, nothing is -known.</p> - -<p>Many delude themselves to the contrary and strive to -arrive at correct conclusions without first having arranged -clearly before their minds all the facts.</p> - -<p>Hence, their opinions and judgments, being founded in -ignorance of all the facts, are to that extent defective; -and their conclusions necessarily wrong.</p> - -<p>Through action taken upon incomplete knowledge, men -are beguiled into error; and it is to such unreason that -most human catastrophes are to be attributed.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Most of those who attempt to write on Strategetics, -and whether applied to Chess-play or to Warfare, very -quickly are compelled to seek refuge in vague phrases; -in order to conceal their uncertain grasp on the subject -discussed. The uninformed believe in them, because of -their reputation, and are satisfied that the thing is so, -without understanding <i>WHY</i>.</p> - -<p>Words intended to convey instruction, should not be -used except in their proper meaning. Each word should -be defined for the student and its use regulated. The -true use of words being established, there is no longer<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_12" id="Page_12">[12]</a></span> -danger from a play upon them; or, from different and -confused ideas annexed to them, either by the persons -who read, or who employ them.</p> - -<p>By means of this warning, the student easily may -detect the empty mouthings of enthusiastic inexperience, -and equally so, the casuistries of the subtle expert; who -often uses language merely to conceal from youthful -talent, knowledge which if imparted, might be fatal to -his domination.</p> - -<p>As the student progresses toward proficiency, he, sooner -or later, will come to realize, that of all disgusting things, -to a mind which revolts at nonsense, reasoning ill is -the worst.</p> - -<p>It is distressing, to be afflicted with the absurdities of -men, who, victims of the fancy, confound enthusiasm -with capability and mistake mania for talent. The -world is full of such people, who, in all honesty thinking -themselves philosophers, are only visionaries enamoured -of their own lunatic illusions.</p> - -<p>The true discipline for the student who aspires to -proficiency at Chess-play, is, in every succeeding game, -to imitate more closely the play of the Great Masters; -and to endeavor to take his measures with more attention -and judgment than in any preceding.</p> - -<p>Every player at Chess has defects; many have very -great ones. In searching for these one should not treat -himself tenderly, and when examining his faults, he should -grant himself no quarter.</p> - -<p>Particularly should the student cultivate confidence -in and rigidly adhere to the standard of skill, as interpreted -by that immutable System of Chess-play, of which -Morphy is the unapproachable and all-sufficient exponent.</p> - -<p>Observing the lack of method displayed by the incompetent -Chess-commander, the student of this system -will remark with astonishment, the want of plan and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_13" id="Page_13">[13]</a></span> -the entire absence of co-operation between the various -Chessic corps d’armee, which under such leadership are -incapable of a general effort.</p> - -<p>How dense is such a leader in the selection of a project, -how slow and slovenly in its execution; how many opportunities -does he suffer to escape him and how many -enormous faults does he not commit? To such things, -the numerically weaker but more skillful opponent, often -is indebted for safety and ultimately for success.</p> - -<p>One who is opposed by such blockheads, necessarily -must gain advantages continually; for conduct so opposite -to all the laws of the Art, is, in itself, sufficient to -incur ruin. It is for such negligence on his own part -that one often has cause bitterly to reproach himself. -But such errors, especially on the part of great players, -are exemplary lessons for the student, who from them -may learn to be more prudent, circumspect, and wise.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Those who make a mere pastime of Chess, who have -no desire for the true benefit of the game, do not deserve -information.</p> - -<p>Such people are more numerous than may be supposed. -They have few coherent ideas and are usually influenced -by mere chatter and by writers whose sole excuse is -enthusiasm.</p> - -<p>These players at the game cannot benefit by example. -The follies of others afford them no useful lesson. Each -generation of such “wood-shifters,” has blindly followed -in the footsteps of those preceding and daily is guilty of -errors which times innumerable have been fully exposed.</p> - -<p>It is the darling habit of such folk to treat the great -things in Chess with levity and to dignify those insignificant -matters which appertain to the game when -used as a plaything.</p> - -<p>Such people are merely enthusiastic; usually they are<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_14" id="Page_14">[14]</a></span> -equally frivolous. They do everything from fancy, -nothing from design. Their zeal is strong, but they can -neither regulate nor control it.</p> - -<p>Such bear about their Chessic disabilities in their -character. Inflated in good fortune, groveling in adversity, -these players never attain to that sage contemplation, -which renders the scientific practice of -Chess so indescribably beautiful.</p> - -<p>There is another class of Chess-players who from mere -levity of mind are incapable of steadily pursuing any -fixed plan; but who overturn, move by move, even such -advantages as their good fortune may have procured. -There are others, who, although possessed of great vivacity -of mind and eager for information, yet lack that -patience necessary to receive instruction.</p> - -<p>Lastly, there are not a few whose way of thinking and -the validity of whose calculations, depend upon their -good or ill digestion.</p> - -<p>It is in vain that such people endeavor to divine -things beyond their understanding. Hence it is, that -among those incapable of thought, or too indolent for -mental effort, the game proceeds in easy fashion until -routine is over. Afterward, at each move, the most -probable conjecture passes for the best reason and -victory ultimately rests with him whose blunders are -least immediately consequential.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Understanding of high art is dispensed only to the -few; the great mass neither can comprehend nor enjoy it. -In spite of the good natured Helvetius, all are not wise -who wish to be so and men ever will remain what Nature -made them. It is impossible for the stream to rise -higher than its source.</p> - -<p>“The progress of human reason,” writes the great -Frederic, “is more slow than is imagined; the true cause<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_15" id="Page_15">[15]</a></span> -of which is that most men are satisfied with vague -notions of things and but few take time for examination -and deep inquiry.</p> - -<p>“Some, fettered by prejudice from their infancy, wish -not, or are unable to break their chains; others, delighting -in frivolity know not a word of mathematics and -enjoy life without allowing their pleasures to be interrupted -by a moment of reflection. Should one thinking -man in a thousand be discovered it will be much; and -it is for him that men of talent write.</p> - -<p>“The rest naturally are offended, for nothing so enrages -the mediocre mind as to be compelled to admit to -itself its own inferiority. Consequently, they consign -book, author, and reader conjointly to Satan. So much -easier is it to condemn than to refute, or to learn.”</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>The early success of many young students does not -permit them to observe that they often have departed -from the rules of the Art. As they have escaped -punishment for their errors, they remain unacquainted -with the dangers to which they were exposed. Constant -good fortune finally makes them over-confident and -they do not suspect it necessary to change their measures, -even when in the presence of an able foe.</p> - -<p>Thus, the youthful tyro, inconsiderate, inconsistent, -and turbulent, and oblivious to the innumerable dangers -by which he is surrounded, plays his pieces hither and -thither, as fancy and inclination dictate, culling bouquets -of the most gorgeous flowers of the imagination; thoughtless -of the future and perfectly happy because he cannot -reflect.</p> - -<p>To reason exactly, the student first must rid his mind -of all preconceived notions; he must regard the matter -under consideration as a blank sheet of paper, upon -which nothing is to be written save those things which<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_16" id="Page_16">[16]</a></span> -by the processes of logic and demonstration, are established -as facts.</p> - -<p>There is much difference between the Art of Logic -and mere conjecture.</p> - -<p>The calculations of arithmeticians, though rigorous and -exact, are never difficult; because they relate to known -quantities and to the palpable objects of nature. But -when it is required to argue from combining circumstances, -the least ignorance of uncertain and obscure -facts breaks the chain and we are deceived every moment.</p> - -<p>This is no defect of the understanding, but error -arising from plausible ideas, which wear the face of and -are too quickly accepted for truth. A long chapter can -be written on the different ways in which men lose -themselves in their conjectures. Innumerable examples -of this are not wanting, and all because they have -suffered themselves to be hurried away and thus to be -precipitate in drawing their conclusions.</p> - -<p>The part that the General, whether in Chess-play or in -Warfare, has to act, always is more difficult because he -must not permit himself the least mistake, but is bound -to behave with prudence and sagacity throughout a -long series of intricate processes. A single false deduction, -or a movement of the enemy unintelligible to a -commander, may lead him to commit an irremediable -error; and in cases wherein the situation is beyond -comprehension, his ignorance is invincible.</p> - -<p>For however extensive the human mind may be, it -never is sufficiently so to penetrate those minute combinations -necessary to be developed in order to foresee -and regulate events, the sequence, utility and even -existence of which, depend upon future contingencies.</p> - -<p>Incidents which are past, can be explained clearly, -because the reasons therefor are manifest. But men -easily deceive themselves concerning the future, which,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_17" id="Page_17">[17]</a></span> -by a veil of innumerable and impenetrable secondary -causes, is concealed from the most prying inspection.</p> - -<p>In such situations, how puerile are the projects even -of the greatest Strategist. To him, as much as to the -tyro, is the future hidden; he knows not what shall -happen, even on the next move. How then may he -foresee those situations which secondary causes later -may produce?</p> - -<p>Circumstances most often oblige him to act contrary -to his wishes; and in the flux and reflux of fortune, it is the -part of prudence to conform to system and to act with -consistency. It is impossible to foresee all events.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>“It is not possible,” writes the Count de Saxe, “to -establish a system without first being acquainted with -the <i>principles</i> that must necessarily support it.”</p> - -<p>In corroboration of this is the opinion of Frederic the -Great:</p> - -<p>“Condemned by my unfortunate stars to philosophies -on contingencies and on probabilities I employ my -whole attention to examine the <i>principle</i> on which my -argument must rest and to procure all possible information -on that point. Deprived of such precaution, the -edifice I erect, wanting a base, would fall like a house of -cards.”</p> - -<p>Everyone who does not proceed on principle, is inconsistent -in his conduct. Equally so, whenever the -principle on which one acts is false, <i>i.e.</i>, does not apply -to the existing situation; all deductions based thereon, if -applied to the existing situation, necessarily are false.</p> - -<p>“Those principles which the Art of Warfare prescribes, -never should be departed from,” writes Frederic -the Great, “and generals rigidly should adhere to those -circumspections and never swerve from implicit obedience -to laws, upon whose exact observance depends the -safety of their armies and the success of their projects.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_18" id="Page_18">[18]</a></span></p> - -<p>Thus the student will clearly see that all other calculations, -though never so ingeniously imagined, are of -small worth in comparison with comprehension of the -use of Strategetic principles. By means of these latter, -we are taught to control the raging forces which dominate -in the competitive arts and to compel obedience from -friend and foe alike.</p> - -<p>“To the shame of humanity it must be confessed,” -writes Frederic the Great, “that what often passes for -authority and consequence is mere assumption, used as a -cloak to conceal from the layman the extreme of official -indolence and stupidity.</p> - -<p>“To follow the routine of service, to be busied concerning -food and clothing, and to eat when others eat, to -fight when others fight, are the whole warlike deeds of -the majority and constitute what is called having seen -service and grown grey in arms.</p> - -<p>“The reason why so many officers remain in a state -of mediocrity, is because they neither know, nor trouble -themselves to inquire into the causes either of their -victories or defeats, although such causes are exceedingly -real.”</p> - -<p>In this connection, writes Polybius, the friend and -biographer of Hannibal:</p> - -<p>“Having made ourselves masters of the subject of -Warfare, we shall no longer ascribe success to Fortune -and blindly applaud mere conquerors, as the ignorant do; -but we shall approve and condemn from Principle and -Reason.”</p> - -<p>To the Chess-student nothing can be more conclusive -than the following:</p> - -<p>“My success at Chess-play,” writes Paul Morphy, “is -due to rigid adherence to fixed rules and Principles.”</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Chess is best fought on Principles, free from all deception -and trickery.”—Wilhelm Steinitz.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_19" id="Page_19">[19]</a></span></p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapterhead"> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_20" id="Page_20">[20]</a></span></p> - -<p class="chapterhead" id="GRAND_RECONNAISSANCE">GRAND RECONNAISSANCE</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_21" id="Page_21">[21]</a></span></p> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Man can sway the future, only by foreseeing through a -clear understanding of the present, to what far off end -matters are tending.”—Caesar.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“From the erroneous ideas they form in regard to good -and evil, the ignorant, the mis-educated and the inexperienced -always act without precisely knowing what they -ought to desire, or what they ought to fear; and it is not in -the end they propose, but in the choice of means, that most -deceive themselves.”—Aristotle.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_22" id="Page_22">[22]</a></span></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_23" id="Page_23">[23]</a></span></p> - -<h2>GRAND RECONNAISSANCE</h2> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“In every situation the principal strategical requirements -must clearly be defined and all other things must be subordinated -to these considerations.”—Frederic the Great.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“One should seek to obtain a knowledge of causes, rather -than of effects; and should endeavor to reason from the -known, to the unknown.”—Euclid.</i></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p class="hanging"><i>The province of Grand Reconnaissance is exactly to determine -the relative advantages and disadvantages in time, -numbers, organization, topography, mobility and position, -which appertain to hostile armies contained in the same -strategetic plane; and to designate those Corps d’armee -by which such advantages are materially expressed.</i></p> - -<p>Those processes which appertain to the making of -Grand Reconnaissance, necessarily are argumentative; -inasmuch as all the facts never are determinate.</p> - -<p>Consequently, talent of the highest order is required -for the deducing of conclusions which never can be based -upon exact knowledge, and which always must contemplate -the presence of numerous unknown quantities.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_24" id="Page_24">[24]</a></span></p> - -<p>The responsibilities inherent to Grand Reconnaissance -never are to be delegated to, nor thrust upon subordinates. -Scouts, spies, and informers of every kind, -have their manifold and proper uses, but such uses -never rise above furnishing necessary information in -regard to topographical, tactical, and logistic details.</p> - -<p>The Commander-in-chief alone is presumed to possess -knowledge and skill requisite to discern what strategetically -is fact and what is not fact; and to ascribe to -each fact its proper place and sequence.</p> - -<p>Lack of military talent and of Strategetic knowledge, -never is more strikingly shown than by negligence or -inability in this regard.</p> - -<p>Incompetents, ignorant of this truth, and oblivious to -its importance, devolve such vital responsibility upon -subordinates; and later, these legalized murderers -palliate the slaughter of their troops and the national -shame by publicly reprimanding men serving at shillings -per month, for failing in a service, which were the latter -able to perform, would entitle them to the gold epaulets -and general’s pay, of which their commander is the -unfit recipient.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Knowledge of the number, organization, position and -movements of the enemy’s troops is the basic element -for correct calculation in campaign and battle.</p> - -<p>Such things to be accurately estimated must be -closely inspected. All speculation and all conjecture in -regard to these matters is but frivolity.</p> - -<p>It is by being precipitate and hasty in making such -conclusions, that men are deceived, for to judge rightly -of things before they become clearly shown is most -difficult.</p> - -<p><i>To act on uncertainty is WRONG.</i></p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_25" id="Page_25">[25]</a></span></p> - -<p>We do not know all the facts and a single iota of light -later on may oblige us to condemn that which we previously -have approved.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>In the making of Grand Reconnaissance, one always -must be wary of placing too much confidence in appearances -and in first impressions. Especially must -care be taken not to magnify the weaknesses of the -hostile army, nor the efficacy of the kindred position.</p> - -<p>Also, one never should underrate:</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. The talents of the opposing commander; nor</li> -<li>2. The advantages possessed by the opposing army: - <ul> - <li>(a) In numbers,</li> - <li>(b) In organization,</li> - <li>(c) In position,</li> - <li>(d) In topography,</li> - <li>(e) In time,</li> - <li>(f) In mobility.</li> - </ul> -</li> -</ul> - -<p>It is a first essential, constantly to note the movements -of the enemy, in order to detect his plans and the exact -location of his corps.</p> - -<p>These things are the only reliable guides for determining -the true course of procedure. It must be left to the -enemy to show by his movements and the posts which -he occupies, the measures he projects for the future, and -until these are known, it is not proper to <i>ACT</i>. Hence:</p> - -<h3>PRINCIPLE</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>All movements of Corps Offensive should be governed by -the POSITION of the hostile army, and all movements -of Corps Defensive should be governed by the MOVEMENTS -of the hostile army.</i></p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_26" id="Page_26">[26]</a></span></p> - -<p>As soon as the enemy begins a movement, his intentions -become clear. It is then possible to make precise -calculations.</p> - -<p>But be not hasty to build conclusions upon uncertain -information and do not take any resolutions until certain -what are the numbers, the position, the objectives, and -the projects of the enemy.</p> - -<p>However interesting an undertaking may appear, one -should not be seduced by it while ill-informed of the -obstacles to be met and the possibility of not having -sufficient force in the theatre of action.</p> - -<p>Chimerical schemes should be abandoned at their -inception. Reason, instead of extravagancies of the -fancy, always must be the guide. Men, most courageous, -often undertake fearful difficulties, but impracticable -things they leave to lunatics.</p> - -<p>In all situations, one must beware of venturing beyond -his depth. It is wiser to keep within the limits -which the knowledge we possess shall prescribe.</p> - -<p>Especially in crises, one must proceed most cautiously -until sure information is acquired; for over-haste is -exceedingly dangerous, when exact knowledge is lacking -of the enemy’s numbers, position, and movements.</p> - -<h3>PRINCIPLE</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Situations always should be contemplated as they EXIST, -never as they OUGHT to be, or, perhaps, MAY be.</i></p> - -<p>In every important juncture, each step must be profoundly -considered; as little as possible should be left to -chance.</p> - -<p>Particularly, must one never be inflated and rendered -careless and negligent by success; nor made spiritless and -fearful by reverses. At all times the General should see -things only as they are and attempt what is dictated by<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_27" id="Page_27">[27]</a></span> -that Strategetic Principle which dominates the given -situation. Fortune often does the rest.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Napoleon bending over and sometimes lying at full -length upon his map, with a pair of dividers opened to a -distance on the scale of from 17 to 20 miles, equal to 22 to 25 -miles over country, and marking the positions of his own -and of the hostile armies by sticking into the map pins -surmounted by little balls made of diverse colored sealing -wax; in the twinkling of an eye calculated those wonderful -concentrations of his Corps d’armee upon decisive points -and dictated those instructions to his Marshals which in -themselves are a title to glory.”—Baron de Jomini.</i></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_28" id="Page_28">[28]</a></span></p> - -<h3 id="GRAND_RECONNAISSANCE_EXAMPLES">MILITARY EXAMPLES</h3> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Phillip, King of Macedonia, is the single confidant of -his own secrets, the sole dispenser of his treasure, the most -able general of all Greece, the bravest soldier in his army. -He foresees and executes everything himself; anticipates -events, derives all possible advantages from them and yields -to them when to yield is necessary.</i></p> - -<p><i>His troops are extremely well disciplined, he exercises -them incessantly. Always himself at their head, they -perform with arms and baggage marches of three hundred -stadia with alarming expedition and making no difference -between summer or winter, between fatigue and rest.</i></p> - -<p><i>He takes no step without mature reflection, nor proceeds -to a second until he is assured of the success of the first and -his operations are always dominated by considerations of -time and place.”—Apollodorus.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p>The facility with which one familiar with the Strategetic -Art may make Grand Reconnaissance, even of an -invisible theatre of action, and may evolve accurate deductions -from a mass of inexact and contradictory reports -is illustrated by the following practical examples, viz.:</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_29" id="Page_29">[29]</a></span></p> - -<h4>FIRST EXAMPLE.</h4> - -<p class="example">(From the <i>New York Journal</i>, Dec. 26, 1899 -By <b>Franklin K. Young</b>.)</p> - -<p>“The position of the British armies is deplorable.</p> - -<p>“With the single exception of Gen. Buller’s force, the -situation of these bodies of British troops, thus unfortunately -circumstanced, is cause for the greatest -anxiety.</p> - -<p>“Strong indications point to a grand offensive movement -on the part of the Boers, with the object of terminating -the war in one campaign and by a single blow.</p> - -<p>“True, this movement may be but a feint, but if it be -a true movement, it is difficult to over-estimate the -gravity of the situation of the British in South Africa.</p> - -<p>“For if this movement is a true military movement, it -shows as clearly as the sun in the sky to those who know -the Strategetic Art, that the Boer armies are in transition -from the defensive to an offensive plan of campaign, with -the purpose of capturing DeArr and from thence advancing -in force against the chief British depot, Capetown.”</p> - -<p>The United States War Department, <i>Report on the -British-Boer War</i>, published June 14, 1901, contains the -following:</p> - -<p class="example">(By <b>Capt. S. L’H. Slocum</b>, December 25, 1899. -U. S. Military Attache with the British Army.)</p> - -<p>“I consider the present situation to be the most -critical for the English forces, since hostilities began.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_30" id="Page_30">[30]</a></span> -Should the Boers assume offensive operations, the English -armies with their long and thinly guarded lines of -communication, would be placed in great jeopardy.”</p> - -<p class="example">(By <b>Chas. S. Goldmann</b>, war correspondent with -Gen. Buller and Lord Roberts in the South African -Campaign. MacMillan & Co., 1902.)</p> - -<p>“Had the defence (of Cape Colony) been entrusted -to less capable hands than those of Gen. French, who, -with a mere handful of troops succeeded not only in -checking the Boer advance, but in driving them back on -Colesberg, it is not unreasonable to suppose that the -enemy would have been able to push on south and west -to Craddock and Hex River range and thus bring about a -state of affairs which might have shaken British rule in -South Africa to its foundation.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_31" id="Page_31">[31]</a></span></p> - -<h4>SECOND EXAMPLE.</h4> - -<p class="example">(<i>Boston Globe</i>, Jan. 12, 1900. By <b>Franklin K. Young</b>.)</p> - -<p>“Lord Roberts’ first object will be the rescue of Lord -Methuen’s army now blockaded near Magersfontein by -Gen. Conje.</p> - -<p>“As the first step to effect this, the British commander-in-chief -at once and with all his force, will occupy the -line from Naauwpoort to De Arr. There, he will await -the arrival of twenty-two transports now en route from -England.</p> - -<p>“With these reinforcements, he will advance directly -to the Modder River by the route previously taken by -Lord Methuen.”</p> - -<p class="example">(By <b>Chas. S. Goldmann</b>, Sp. Cor. British Army.)</p> - -<p>“Slow to recognize their opportunities, the enemy were -still in the midst of preparation, when Gen. French -reached De Arr. Meanwhile a detachment under Major -McCracken occupied Naauwpoort, to which place -thirty days’ supplies for 3000 men and 1100 animals -had been ordered.</p> - -<p>“In the ten weeks of fighting which ensued, prior -to the arrival of the British main army, Gen. French by -his skillful tactics held a powerful force of Boers at bay, -checked their descent into the southern part of the -colony, defeated their attempt to display the Vierkleur -across the cape peninsular, and materially influenced, -if not absolutely determined, the entire future of the -campaign.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_32" id="Page_32">[32]</a></span></p> - -<p class="example">(By <b>Chas. S. Goldmann</b>, Sp. Cor. with British Army.)</p> - -<p>“Arriving at Capetown on Jan. 10, Lord Roberts -decided that the line of march should lead by way of -Bloemfontein to Pretoria, initiating the operation by -the concentration of large forces on the Modder River, -forming there an advanced base.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_33" id="Page_33">[33]</a></span></p> - -<h4>THIRD EXAMPLE.</h4> - -<p class="example">(<i>Boston Globe</i>, Jan. 21, 1900. By <b>Franklin K. Young</b>.)</p> - -<p>“It is plain that when the Boers took position at Colenso -they prepared their plan for the protection of their -flanks; to deny this would be to assume that men who -had displayed superb military sagacity were ignorant -of the simplest processes of warfare.</p> - -<p>“What that plan is will be unfolded very rapidly -should Gen. Buller attempt to pierce the line of Boer -vedettes posted upon the Spion Kop and concealing as -near as can be determined from the present meagre facts, -either the Second, or the Fourth Ambuscade.</p> - -<p>“In either case it signifies that the Boers are confident -of annihilating Gen. Buller’s army if it should cross the -Tugela.</p> - -<p>“About this time the Boers are watching Gen. Warren -and his command and watching him intently. Something -may happen to him.”</p> - -<p class="example">(<i>London Times</i>, Jan. 22, 1900.)</p> - -<p>“On Friday, Jan. 19, Gen. Warren began a long, -circuitous march to the westward for the purpose of -turning the right of the Boer position.</p> - -<p>“This attempt was abandoned on account of the long -ridge running from Spion Kop being occupied by the -Boers in such strength as to command the entire route.</p> - -<p>“Saturday, Jan. 20, Gen. Warren, having crossed the -Tugela River with the bulk of his troops, ordered a -frontal attack. Our men behaved splendidly under a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_34" id="Page_34">[34]</a></span> -heavy cross-fire for seven hours. Our casualties were -slight. Three lines of rifle fire<a name="FNanchor_1" id="FNanchor_1"></a><a href="#Footnote_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> were visible along the -Boer main position.”</p> - -<div class="footnotes"> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p><a name="Footnote_1" id="Footnote_1"></a><a href="#FNanchor_1"><span class="label">[1]</span></a> The Second Ambuscade. Vide “Secret Instructions” -of Frederic the Great.</p> - -</div> - -</div> - -<p class="example">(<i>British War Office Bulletin</i>, Jan. 22, 1900.)</p> - -<p>“Gen. Warren has been engaged all day chiefly on his -left, which he has swung forward a couple of miles.”</p> - -<p class="sig"><span class="spacer">(Signed)</span> <i>Buller.</i></p> - -<p class="example">(<i>British War Office Bulletin</i>, Jan. 24, 1900.)</p> - -<p>“Gen. Warren holds the position he gained two days -ago. The Boer position is on higher ground than ours -and can be approached only over bare and open slopes. -An attempt will be made tonight to seize Spion Kop.”</p> - -<p class="sig"><span class="spacer">(Signed)</span> <i>Buller.</i></p> - -<p class="example">(<i>British War Office Bulletin</i>, Jan. 25, 1900.)</p> - -<p>“Gen. Warren’s troops last night occupied Spion Kop, -surprising the small<a name="FNanchor_2" id="FNanchor_2"></a><a href="#Footnote_2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> garrison which fled.”</p> - -<p class="sig"><span class="spacer">(Signed)</span> <i>Buller.</i></p> - -<div class="footnotes"> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p><a name="Footnote_2" id="Footnote_2"></a><a href="#FNanchor_2"><span class="label">[2]</span></a> Merely the outposts and vedettes of the Second -Ambuscade.</p> - -</div> - -</div> - -<p class="example">(<i>British War Office Bulletin</i>, Jan. 26, 1900.)</p> - -<p>“Gen. Warren’s garrison, I am sorry to say, I find this -morning had in the night abandoned Spion Kop.”</p> - -<p class="sig"><span class="spacer">(Signed)</span> <i>Buller.</i></p> - -<p class="example">(<i>British War Office Bulletin</i>, Jan. 28, 1900.)</p> - -<p>“I decided that a second attack on Spion Kop was -useless<a name="FNanchor_3" id="FNanchor_3"></a><a href="#Footnote_3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> and that the enemy’s right was too strong to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_35" id="Page_35">[35]</a></span> -allow me to force it. Accordingly I decided to withdraw -the troops to the south side of the Tugela River.”</p> - -<p class="sig"><span class="spacer">(Signed)</span> <i>Buller.</i></p> - -<div class="footnotes"> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p><a name="Footnote_3" id="Footnote_3"></a><a href="#FNanchor_3"><span class="label">[3]</span></a> The proffer of an untenable post always is the bait -of the Second Ambuscade.</p> - -</div> - -</div> - -<p class="example">(<i>London Daily Mail</i>, Jan. 29, 1900.)</p> - -<p>“The richest and what was hitherto considered the -most powerful nation in the world is today in the humiliating -position of seeing its armies beaten back with heavy -losses by two small states.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_36" id="Page_36">[36]</a></span></p> - -<h4>FOURTH EXAMPLE.</h4> - -<p class="example">(<i>Boston Globe</i>, Feb. 16, 1900, by <b>Franklin K. Young</b>.)</p> - -<p>“Lord Roberts’ communications for nearly two hundred -miles are exposed to the attack of an enemy, who -at any moment is liable to capture and destroy his supply -and ammunition trains and to reduce the British army -to a condition wherein it will be obliged to fight a battle -under most disadvantageous circumstances.”</p> - -<p class="example">(From United States War Department <i>Report on the -British Boer War</i>. By <b>Capt. S. L’H. Slocum</b>, U. S. -Attache with British Army.)</p> - -<p>“Feb. 15, 1900. The main supply park of the army -was attacked by the enemy near Watervale Drift.</p> - -<p>“This park consisted of one hundred ox-wagons containing -rations and one hundred more wagons filled with -ammunition. One hundred and fifty of these wagons -and three thousand oxen were captured by the Boers.</p> - -<p>“The loss of these rations and munitions was a most -serious blow. Lord Roberts was here confronted by a -crisis which would have staggered and been the undoing -of many commanders-in-chief placed as he was.</p> - -<p>“He was in the enemy’s country, cut off from his base -of supplies on the railroad and with an unknown number -of the enemy in his rear and upon his line of communication. -His transport was nearly all captured and his army -was suddenly reduced to three days full rations on the -eve of a great movement and the country afforded no food -whatever. The crisis still further developed when a courier -brought the report that the Boers were in position at -Watervale Drift and commanding the ford with artillery.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_37" id="Page_37">[37]</a></span></p> - -<h4>FIFTH EXAMPLE.</h4> - -<p class="example">(<i>Boston Globe</i>, Feb. 25, 1900. By <b>Franklin K. Young</b>.)</p> - -<p>“There is reason to believe that should worse come to -worse, the Boer Army, should it be compelled to abandon -its position, will be able to save its personnel by a rapid -flight across the Modder. Of course, in this case, the -Boers would lose their supplies and cannon.”</p> - -<p class="example">(From United States War Department, <i>Report on the -British Boer War</i>. By <b>Capt. S. L’H. Slocum</b>, U. S. -Attache, with British Army.)</p> - -<p>“The enemy, under Cronje, with all his transport was -in all practical effect surrounded, although by abandoning -his wagons and supplies, a large number of the Boers -undoubtedly could have escaped.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_38" id="Page_38">[38]</a></span></p> - -<p class="example">(<i>Boston Sunday Times</i>, March, 1900. By <b>Franklin -K. Young</b>.)</p> - -<p>“Cronje’s conduct was heroic and imbecile in the extreme. -As the commander on the ground he is entitled -to all the glory and must assume all the blame. One of -the ablest of the Boer generals, he is the only one in -the whole war to make a mistake.</p> - -<p>“Cronje’s first duty was to decide whether he should -stand or run; he decided to run, which was proper, but -having so decided he should have run at once and not -have stopped running until safe on the north bank of -the Vaal River.</p> - -<p>“Properly he sent his siege guns and trains off to the -north across the Vaal and improperly held his position -in force on the British front, instead of withdrawing his -personnel after his material.</p> - -<p>“This blunder, like all blunders of a commander-in-chief, -quickly produced blunders by his subordinates. -Commander Ferrera permitted French to get around -Cronje’s left flank without a battle. The presence of -this force on his rear cut Cronje off from his natural -line of retreat across the Vaal and compelled him to -flee toward Bloemfontein.</p> - -<p>“Even now Cronje was all right; he easily and brilliantly -out-manoeuvred the British and gained the protection -of the Modder River. But a second time he -blundered. Instead of first executing Ferrera and then -abandoning everything and devoting all his efforts to -saving his men, he neglected an obvious and imperative -military duty and clung to his slow-moving cannon and -wagons.</p> - -<p>“Finally he took position on the Modder and resolved -to fight the whole British army. This was fatal.</p> - -<p>“Then for the fourth time he blundered. Having -made his decision to fight he should not have surrendered<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_39" id="Page_39">[39]</a></span> -to the British on the anniversary of Majuba Hill. On -the contrary, surrounded by the mightiest army the -British empire ever put in the field and enveloped in -the smoke of a hundred cannon, Cronje, upon a rampart -formed by his dead army and with his last cartridge -withstanding the destroyers of his country, would have -presented to posterity a more spectacular and seemingly -a more fitting termination of the career of the Lion of -South Africa.”</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Mere hope of attaining their desires, coupled with -ignorance of the processes necessary to their accomplishment, -is the common delusion and the certain destruction of the -inexperienced.”—Plato.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_40" id="Page_40">[40]</a></span></p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapterhead"> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_41" id="Page_41">[41]</a></span></p> - -<p class="chapterhead" id="ORGANIZATION">ORGANIZATION</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_42" id="Page_42">[42]</a></span></p> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“To employ in warfare an uninstructed people is to -destroy the nation.”—Chinese Saying.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_43" id="Page_43">[43]</a></span></p> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p>Antiochus, King of Syria, reviewing his immense but -untrained and undisciplined army at Ephesus, asked of -Hannibal, “if they were not enough for the Romans.”</p> - -<p>“Yes,” replied the great Carthagenian, “enough to glut -the bloodthirstiness, even of the Romans.”</p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“A man in the vigor of life and capable of sustaining the -heaviest fatigues, but untrained in warfare, is fitted not to -bear arms, but to bear baggage.”—Timoleon.</i></p> - -</div> - -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_44" id="Page_44">[44]</a></span></p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_45" id="Page_45">[45]</a></span></p> - -<h2>ORGANIZATION</h2> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“The chief distinction between an army and a mob is the -good order and discipline of the former and the disorderly -behavior of the latter.”—Washington.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p>“It is the duty of the commander-in-chief frequently -to assemble the most prudent and experienced of his -generals and to consult with them as to the state of his -own and of the enemies’ troops.</p> - -<p>“He must examine which army has the better weapons, -which is the better trained and disciplined; superior in -condition and most resolute in emergencies.</p> - -<p>“He must note whether himself or the adversary has -the superior infantry, cavalry or artillery, and particularly -must he discern any marked lack in quantity and -quality of men or horses, and any difference in equipment -of those corps which necessarily will be or because of -such reason, advantageously may be opposed to each -other.</p> - -<p>“Advantages in Organization determine the field of -battle to be preferred, which latter should be selected with -the view of profiting to the uttermost by the use of -specially equipped corps, to whom the enemy is not able -to oppose similar troops.</p> - -<p>“If a general finds himself superior to his enemy he -must use all means to bring on an engagement, but if he -sees himself inferior, he must avoid battle and endeavor<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_46" id="Page_46">[46]</a></span> -to succeed by surprises, stratagems and ambuscades; -which last skillfully managed often have gained the -victory over foemen superior in numbers and in strength.”—<i>Vergetius.</i></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Advantage in Organization consists in having one or more -Corps d’armee which in equipment or in composition are so -superior to the hostile corps to which they may become opposed, -as entails to them exceptional facilities for the execution -of those major tactical evolutions that appertain to any -tactical area made up of corresponding geometric or sub-geometric -symbols.</i></p> - -<h3>PRINCIPLE</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Advantage in Organization determines the choice of a -prospective battlefield; and the latter always should be composed -of those tactical areas which permit of the fullest -exercise of the powers peculiar to kindred corps d’armee.</i></p> - -<p>Every corps d’armee thus especially equipped should -be constantly and energetically employed in the prospective -battle; and usually it will eventuate as the Prime -Tactical Factor in the decisive Major Tactical evolution.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Notions most mistaken prevail in regard to the Pawns -and Pieces of the Chessboard.</p> - -<p>To suppose that the Chessmen <i>per se</i> may be utilized -to typify the different arms of the military service is a -fallacy.</p> - -<p>Many unfamiliar with the technicalities of Strategetic -Science delude themselves that the Pawns, on account -of their slow and limited movements properly are to be -regarded as Infantry; that the Knights because topped<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_47" id="Page_47">[47]</a></span> -by horses’ heads thereby qualify as light Cavalry; the -Bishops, for reasons unknown, often are held to represent -Artillery; the Rooks, because of their swift, direct and -far-reaching movements are thought to duplicate heavy -Cavalry; while the Queen, in most of these unsophisticated -philosophies, is supposed to constitute a Reserve.</p> - -<p>Nothing can be further from the truth than such assumptions.</p> - -<p>As a fundamental of military organization applied -to Chessplay, each Chesspiece typifies in itself a complete -Corps d’armee. Each of these Chessic corps d’armee is -equal to every other in strength, but all differ, more or -less, in construction and in facilities, essential to the -performance of diverse and particular duties.</p> - -<p>Thus it is that while every Chesspiece represents a -perfectly appointed and equally powerful body of troops, -these corps d’armee in Chessplay as in scientific warfare -are not duplicates, except to others of their own class. -Each of these corps d’armee is made up of Infantry, -Cavalry and Artillery in correct proportion to the service -they are to perform and such proportions are determined -not by simple arithmetic, but by those deployments, -developments, evolutions, and manoeuvres, which such -corps d’armee is constructed promptly and efficiently to -execute.</p> - -<p>The Chessmen, therefore, do not as individuals represent -either infantry, cavalry or artillery.</p> - -<p>But in the same manner as the movements of troops -over the surface of the earth, exemplify the attributes of -the three kindred grand columns in the greater logistics -of a campaign; so do those peculiarities which appertain -to the moves of the different Chesspieces exemplify the -action of the three chief arms of the military service; -either singly or in combination against given points -in given times, in the evolutions of the battlefield, viz.:</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_48" id="Page_48">[48]</a></span></p> - -<h4>CORPS D’ARMEE EN MARCH.</h4> - -<p>The march of:</p> - -<ul> -<li>(<i>a</i>) Infantry, alone, or of</li> -<li>(<i>b</i>) Cavalry, alone, or of</li> -<li>(<i>c</i>) Artillery, alone, or of</li> -<li>(<i>d</i>) Infantry and Cavalry, or of</li> -<li>(<i>e</i>) Infantry and Artillery, or of</li> -<li>(<i>f</i>) Cavalry and Artillery, or of</li> -<li>(<i>g</i>) Infantry, Cavalry and Artillery,</li> -</ul> - -<p class="noindent">is indicated by the movement of any Chesspiece from a -given point to an unoccupied adjacent point.</p> - -<p>The march of:</p> - -<ul> -<li>(<i>a</i>) Cavalry, alone, or of</li> -<li>(<i>b</i>) Artillery, alone, or of</li> -<li>(<i>c</i>) Cavalry and Artillery,</li> -</ul> - -<p class="noindent">is indicated by the movement of any Chesspiece from a -given point to an unoccupied point, <i>not</i> an adjacent -point.</p> - -<h4>CORPS D’ARMEE EN ASSAULT.</h4> - -<p>The <i>Charge of Infantry</i> is indicated by the movement -of any Chesspiece from a given point to an occupied adjacent -point; posting itself thereon and capturing the -adverse piece there located.</p> - -<p>The <i>Charge of Cavalry</i> is indicated by the movement -of any Chesspiece from a given point to an occupied -point <i>not</i> an adjacent point; posting itself thereon and -capturing the adverse piece there located.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_49" id="Page_49">[49]</a></span></p> - -<h4>CORPS D’ARMEE FIRE EFFECT.</h4> - -<h5><i>Infantry:</i></h5> - -<p><i>Offensive Fire Effect.</i> Compelling an adverse piece -to withdraw from its post upon an adjacent occupied -point.</p> - -<p><i>Defensive Fire Effect.</i> Preventing an adverse piece -from occupying an adjacent unoccupied point.</p> - -<h5><i>Artillery:</i></h5> - -<p><i>Offensive Fire Effect.</i> Compelling an adverse piece -to withdraw from its post upon an occupied point not an -adjacent point.</p> - -<p><i>Defensive Fire Effect.</i> Preventing an adverse piece -from occupying an unoccupied point not an adjacent -point.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_50" id="Page_50">[50]</a></span></p> - -<h4>CHESSIC CORPS D’ARMEE.</h4> - -<p>The <i>Corps d’armee of the Chessboard</i> are divided into -two classes: viz.:</p> - -<ul> -<li>I. Corps of Position.</li> -<li>II. Corps of Evolution.</li> -</ul> - -<h4>CORPS D’ARMEE OF POSITION.</h4> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“The Pawns are the soul of Chess; upon their good or bad -arrangement depends the gain or loss of the game.”—Philidor.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p><i>The eight Pawns</i>, by reason of their limited movements, -their inability to move backward and the peculiarity -of their offensive and defensive powers, are best -adapted of the Chesspieces to perform those functions -which in the Military Art appertain to Corps of Position.</p> - -<p>Each Corps of Position has its particular and designated -Point of Mobilization and of Development, which -differ with the various Strategic Fronts.</p> - -<p>Upon each Corps of Position devolves the duties of -maintaining itself as a consistent integer of the established, -or projected kindred Pawn Integral; as a -possible kindred Promotable Factor and as a Point of -Impenetrability upon the altitude of an opposing Pawn.</p> - -<p>Corps of Position take their individual appelation -from their posts in a given formation, viz.:</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. Base Corps.</li> -<li>2. Pivotal Corps.</li> -<li>3. Minor Vertex Corps.</li> -<li>4. Minor Corps Aligned.</li> -<li>5. Major Vertex Corps.</li> -<li>6. Major Corps Aligned.</li> -<li>7. Corps Enpotence.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_51" id="Page_51">[51]</a></span></li> -<li>8. Minor Corps Enceinte.</li> -<li>9. Major Corps Enceinte.</li> -<li>10. Corps Echeloned.</li> -<li>11. Corps En Appui.</li> -<li>12. Base Corps Refused.</li> -<li>13. Pivotal Corps Refused.</li> -<li>14. Minor Vertex Corps Refused.</li> -<li>15. Minor Corps Aligned Refused.</li> -<li>16. Major Vertex Corps Refused.</li> -<li>17. Major Corps Aligned Refused.</li> -<li>18. Major Corps Refused Enpotence.</li> -<li>19. Corps en Major Crochet.</li> -<li>20. Corps en Minor Crochet.</li> -<li>21. Corps en Crochet Aligned.</li> -<li>22. Corps Doubly Aligned.</li> -<li>23. Grand Vertex Corps.</li> -</ul> - -<p>The above formations by Corps of Position are described -and illustrated in detail in preceding text-books -by the author, entitled:</p> - -<ul> -<li>The Minor Tactics of Chess.</li> -<li>The Grand Tactics of Chess.</li> -</ul> - -<p>The normal use of Corps of Position is limited to -Lines of Mobilization, of Development and to the Simple -Line of Manoeuvre.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_52" id="Page_52">[52]</a></span></p> - -<h4>CORPS D’ARMEE OF EVOLUTION.</h4> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Every man in Alexander’s army is so well trained and -obedient that at a single word of command, officers and -soldiers make any movement and execute any evolution in -the art of warfare.</i></p> - -<p><i>“Only such troops as themselves can check their career -and oppose their bravery and expertness.”—Caridemus.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p><i>The eight Pieces</i>, by reason of their ability to move in -all directions, the scope of their movements and the -peculiar exercises of their offensive and defensive powers, -are best adapted of the Chesspieces to perform those -functions which in the Military Art appertain to Corps -of Evolution.</p> - -<p><i>Corps of Evolution</i> acting offensively, take their individual -appelations from the points which constitute -their objective in the true Strategetic Horizon, viz.:</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. Corps of the Right.</li> -<li>2. Corps of the Centre.</li> -<li>3. Corps of the Left.</li> -</ul> - -<p><i>Corps of Evolution</i> acting defensively, take their individual -appelations from the particular duties they are -required to perform, viz.:</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. Supporting Corps.</li> -<li>2. Covering Corps.</li> -<li>3. Sustaining Corps.</li> -<li>4. Corps of Impenetrability.</li> -<li>5. Corps of Resistance.</li> -</ul> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_53" id="Page_53">[53]</a></span></p> - -<p>The normal use of Corps of Evolution is limited to -Lines of Manoeuvre. When acting on a Simple Line of -Manoeuvre, a Corps of Evolution may deploy on the -corresponding Line of Mobilization; but it has nothing -in common with the Line of Development, which latter -appertains exclusively to Corps of Position.</p> - -<p>Any corps d’armee, whether of Position or of Evolution -may be utilized upon a Line of Operations.</p> - -<h4>THE KING.</h4> - -<p>Regarded as a Chessic Corps d’armee, the King -marches as infantry, cavalry and artillery; but it attacks -as infantry exclusively and never as cavalry or artillery.</p> - -<p>Although every situation upon the Chessboard contemplates -the presence of both Kings, either, or neither, -or both, may, or may not be present in any given Strategetic -Horizon.</p> - -<p>Whenever the King is present in a given Strategetic -Horizon the effect of his co-operation is mathematically -outlined, thus:</p> - -<ul> -<li>I. At his maximum of efficiency, the King occupies -the centre of a circle of one point radius. His offensive -power is equally valid against all eight points contained -in his circumference, but his defensive power is valid for -the support from a minimum of one point to a maximum -of five points.</li> -<li>II. At his medium of efficiency the King occupies the -centre of a semi-circle of one point radius. -His offensive power is valid against all five points contained -in his semi-circumference, and his defensive -power is valid for the support from a minimum of one, to -a maximum of five points.</li> -<li>III. At his minimum of efficiency, the King occupies -the centre of a quadrant of one point radius. Both his -offensive and his defensive powers are valid against all -three points contained in his segment.</li> -</ul> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_54" id="Page_54">[54]</a></span></p> - -<h4>THE QUEEN.</h4> - -<p>Regarded as a Chessic Corps d’armee the Queen -marches and attacks as infantry, cavalry and artillery.</p> - -<p>Either, neither, or both Queens may be present in any -given Strategetic Horizon; and whenever present the -effect of her co-operation mathematically is outlined, -viz.:</p> - -<p>At her maximum of efficiency the Queen occupies the -common vertex of one or more unequal triangles, whose -aggregate area is from a minimum of 21 to a maximum -of 27 points. Her offensive power is equally valid -against all of these points; but her defensive power is -valid for the support from a minimum of one point to a -maximum of five points.</p> - -<h4>THE ROOK.</h4> - -<p>Regarded as a Chessic Corps d’armee the Rook marches -and attacks as infantry, cavalry and artillery.</p> - -<p>From one to four Rooks may be present in any given -Strategetic Horizon; and whenever present the effect of -its co-operation mathematically is outlined, viz.:</p> - -<p>At her maximum of efficiency, the Rook occupies the -common angle of four quadrilaterals, whose aggregate -area always is 14 points. The Offensive Power of the -Rook is equally valid against all these points, but his defensive -power is valid for the support of only two points.</p> - -<h4>THE BISHOP.</h4> - -<p>Regarded as a Chessic Corps d’armee, the Bishop -marches and attacks as infantry, cavalry and artillery.</p> - -<p>From one to four Bishops may be present in any -Strategetic Horizon; and whenever present the effect of -its co-operation mathematically is outlined, viz.:</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_55" id="Page_55">[55]</a></span></p> - -<p>At its maximum of efficiency, the Bishop occupies the -common vertex of four unequal triangles, having a -maximum of 13 and a minimum of 9 points. His -offensive power is valid against all of these points but his -defensive power is valid only for the support of two -points.</p> - -<h4>KNIGHT.</h4> - -<p>Regarded as a Chessic Corps d’armee the Knight -marches and attacks as cavalry and artillery.</p> - -<p>From one to four Knights may be present in any given -Strategetic Horizon; and whenever present the effect of -its co-operation mathematically is outlined, viz.:</p> - -<p>At its maximum of efficiency, the Knight occupies the -centre of an octagon of two points radius, having a -minimum of two points and a maximum of eight points -area. His offensive power is equally valid against all -of these eight points, but his defensive power is valid for -the support of only one point.</p> - -<h4>THE PAWN.</h4> - -<p>Regarded as a Chessic Corps d’armee, the Pawn at its -normal post marches as infantry and cavalry. Should -an adverse corps, however, take post within the kindred -side of the Chessboard; that Pawn upon whose altitude -the adverse Piece appears, at once loses its equestrian -attributes and marches and attacks exclusively as infantry.</p> - -<p>Located at any other point than at its normal post, the -Pawn is composed exclusively of infantry and never acts -either as cavalry or artillery.</p> - -<p>From one to eight Pawns may be present in any Strategetic -Horizon; and whenever present the effect of its -co-operation mathematically is outlined as follows:</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_56" id="Page_56">[56]</a></span></p> - -<p>At its maximum of efficiency the Pawn occupies the -vertex of a triangle of two points. Its offensive power is -equally valid against both of these points; but its defensive -power is valid for the support of only one point.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_57" id="Page_57">[57]</a></span></p> - -<h4>POTENTIAL COMPLEMENTS.</h4> - -<p>Subjoined is a table of the potential complements of -the Chesspieces.</p> - -<table summary="The potential complements of the chesspieces"> - <tr> - <td>The King</td> - <td>6⁹⁄₁₆</td> - <td>units.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>The Queen</td> - <td>22¼</td> - <td><span class="ditto">”</span></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>The Rook</td> - <td>14</td> - <td><span class="ditto">”</span></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>The Bishop</td> - <td>8¾</td> - <td><span class="ditto">”</span></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>The Knight</td> - <td>5¼</td> - <td><span class="ditto">”</span></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>The Pawn</td> - <td>1½</td> - <td><span class="ditto">”</span></td> - </tr> -</table> - -<p>The student clearly should understand that this table -does not indicate prowess, but relates exclusively to -normal facilities for bringing force into action.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>The relative advantage in Organization possessed by -one army over an opposing army always can be determined -by the following, viz.:</p> - -<h3><i>RULE.</i></h3> - -<p>1. Above a line, set down in order those abbreviations -which properly designate the White corps d’armee present -in a given Strategetic Situation; and below the line, set -down those abbreviations which in like manner designate -the Black corps d’armee, viz.:</p> - -<table summary="Relative strengths of Black and White corps"> - <tr> - <td>K+Q+R+R+P+P+P+P</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt">K+Q+R+B+P+P+P+P+P</td> - </tr> -</table> - -<p>2. Cancel all like symbols and resolve the unlike -symbols remaining, into their respective Potential complements, -viz.:</p> - -<table summary="Relative strengths of Black and White corps, simplified to Potential"> - <tr> - <td>R</td> - <td rowspan="2">=</td> - <td></td> - <td rowspan="2">=</td> - <td>14</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt">B+P</td> - <td class="bt">8¾ + 1½</td> - <td class="bt">10¼</td> - </tr> -</table> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_58" id="Page_58">[58]</a></span></p> - -<p>3. Subtract the lesser Potential total from the greater -and the difference will be the relative advantage in -Organization.</p> - -<p>4. To utilize the relative advantage in Organization -select a battlefield in which the Strategic Key, the -Tactical Keys and the Points of Command of the True -Strategetic Horizon are situated upon the perimeters -of those geometric and sub-geometric symbols which -appertain to the corps d’armee whose superior potentiality -is established by Section 2.</p> - -<p>5. To neutralize the relative disadvantage in Organization, -occupy the necessary posts upon the battlefield -selected in such a manner that the kindred decisive -points are situated <i>not</i> upon the perimeters of the -geometric and sub-geometric symbols appertaining to -the adverse corps d’armee of superior potentiality; -while the adverse decisive points <i>are</i> situated upon the -perimeters of the geometric and sub-geometric symbols -which appertain to the kindred corps d’armee of inferior -potentiality.</p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_59" id="Page_59">[59]</a></span></p> - -<h3 id="ORGANIZATION_EXAMPLES">MILITARY EXAMPLES</h3> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Men habituated to luxury cannot contend with an army -accustomed to fatigue and inured to want.”—Caesar.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“That wing with which you propose to engage the enemy -should be composed of your best troops.”—Epaminondas.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p>The <i>Sacred Band</i> of the Thebans was composed of men -selected for valor and character. Epaminondas called -them <i>Comrades</i> and by honorable rewards and distinctions -induced them to bear without murmur the hardest -fatigues and to confront with intrepidity the greatest -dangers.</p> - -<p>At Leuctra (371 B.C.) and again at Mantinea (362 -B.C.) the right wing of the Lacedaemonian Army, composed -exclusively of Spartans and for six hundred years -invincible, was overthrown and destroyed by the Sacred -Band led by Epaminondas.</p> - -<p>This formidable body of Theban warriors was massacred -by Alexander the Great at the Battle of Chaeronea -(338 B.C.)</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>The <i>Macedonian Phalanx</i> was devised by Philip, -King of Macedon. It was made up of heavy infantry -accoutred with cuirass, helmet, greaves, and shield. -The principal weapon was a pike twenty-four feet long.</p> - -<p>The Phalanx had a front of two hundred and fifty-six -files and a depth of sixteen ranks. A file of sixteen men -was termed Lochos; two files were called Dilochie; four<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_60" id="Page_60">[60]</a></span> -files made a Tetrarchie; eight files a Taxiarchie and -thirty-two of the last constituted a simple Phalanx of -4096 men. A grand Phalanx had a front of one thousand -and twenty-four files and a depth of sixteen ranks. -It was made up of four simple Phalanxes and contained -16,384 men.</p> - -<p>With this formation of his infantry, Alexander the -Great, when eighteen years of age, destroyed the Allied -Athenian—Theban—Boeotian army at Chaeronea, the -hosts of Persia at the river Grancius (334 B.C.) at -Issus (333 B.C.) and Arbela (331 B.C.) and conquered -Porus, King of India at the Hydaspes (326 B.C.).</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>The <i>Spanish Heavy Cavalry</i> and <i>Nubian Infantry</i> of -Hannibal was a reproduction of that Macedonian organization -whereby Alexander the Great had conquered the -world.</p> - -<p>With this formation Hannibal maintained himself for -fifteen years in the richest provinces of Italy and destroyed -seven Roman armies, at the Trebia (218 B.C.) at -Lake Trasymenus (217 B.C.) at Cannae (216 B.C.) and -at Herdonea (212 B.C.) at Herdonea (210 B.C.) at -Locri (208 B.C.) and at Apulia (208 B.C.).</p> - -<p>At Zama (202 B.C.) Hannibal’s effacement as a military -factor was directly due to his lack of that organization -which had been the instrument of his previous successes; -a circumstance thus commented on by the victorious -Roman commander, Scipio Africanus;</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>“Hitherto I have been opposed by an army without a -general; now they send against me a General without an -army.”</p> - -</div> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>The <i>Tenth Legion</i> of Caesar was the quintessence of -that perfection in elementary tactics devised by the -Romans to accord with the use of artillery.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_61" id="Page_61">[61]</a></span></p> - -<p>The fundamentals of minor tactics as elucidated by -Epaminondas and exploited by Alexander the Great and -Hannibal are unchanged in the Legion, but by subdivision -of the simple Phalanx into ten Cohorts, a necessary -and maximum gain in mobility was effected.</p> - -<p>The Roman Legion consisted of 6100 infantry and 726 -cavalry, divided into the Militarain Cohort of 1105 -heavy foot, 132 Cuirassiers and nine ordinary Cohorts, -each containing 555 heavy foot and 66 Cuirassiers. The -Legion was drawn up in three lines; the first of which -was termed Principes, the second Hastati, and the third -Triarii. The infantry were protected by helmet, cuirass, -greaves and shield; their arms were a long sword, a short -sword, five javelins and two large spears.</p> - -<p>With this formation Caesar over-run Spain, Gaul, -Germany, Britain, Africa, Greece, and Italy. The -Scots alone withstood him and the ruins of a triple line -of Roman entrenchments extending from the North to -the Irish Seas to this day mark the southern boundary -of the Scottish Highlands and the northern limit of Roman -dominion.</p> - -<p>At Pharseleus, Pompey made the inexplicable blunder -of placing his best troops in his right wing, which was -covered by the river Enipeus and inferior troops on his -left wing which was in the air. By its first charge, the -Tenth Legion destroyed the latter, outflanked the entire -Pompeian army, drove it backward into the river and -single handed won for Caesar undisputed dominion of the -Earth.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>The <i>Scots Volunteers</i> of Gustavus Adolphus consisted -of two brigades aggregating about 12,000 foot, made up -of Scottish gentlemen who for various reasons were -attracted to the Continental Wars.</p> - -<p>At Leipsic, (Sept. 7, 1631) 20,000 Saxons, constituting -one-half of the allied Protestant army, were routed at<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_62" id="Page_62">[62]</a></span> -the first charge, put to flight and never seen again. -Tilly’s victorious right wing then turned upon the flank -of the King’s army. Three regiments of the Scots Volunteers -on foot held in check in open field 12,000 of the -best infantry and cavalry in Europe, until Gustavus had -destroyed the Austrian main body and hastened to their -aid with the Swedish heavy cavalry.</p> - -<p>The Castle of Oppenheim was garrisoned by 800 Spanish -infantry. Gustavus drew up 2,000 Swedes to escalade -the place. Thirty Scots Volunteers, looking on -observed that the Spaniards, intently watching the King -had neglected to guard the opposite side of the fortress. -Beckoning to their aid about a hundred of their comrades, -they scaled the wall, captured the garrison and opened -the gates to the king. Gustavus entered on foot, hat -in hand. “My brave Scots,” said he, “you carry in -your scabbards, the key to every castle in Europe.”</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>The <i>Van-Guard</i> of Frederic the Great is the perfect -adaptation of the minor tactics of Epaminondas to -gunpowder. This choice body was made up of the best -troops in the army divided into infantry, cuirassiers, -dragoons and light artillery.</p> - -<p>The Van-Guard, a miniature army in itself, always -marched between the main body and the enemy; it -always led in the attack, followed by that wing containing -the best soldiers, in two lines; and supported by -the heavy cavalry on that flank.</p> - -<p>At Rosbach (Nov. 5, 1757) the Prussian Van-Guard, -composed of 4,800 infantry, 2,500 cavalry and 30 guns, -annihilated 70,000 French regular troops, by evolutions -so rapidly executed that the Prussian main army was -unable to overtake either pursuers or pursued and had -no part in the battle, other than as highly interested -spectators.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_63" id="Page_63">[63]</a></span></p> - -<p>The <i>Continentals</i> of the Revolutionary army under -Washington were made up of troops enlisted for the -war and trained by Baron von Steuben, a Major-General -in the Prussian service, who had served throughout the -Seven Years War under Frederic the Great.</p> - -<p>The Continentals, without firing a shot, carried by -assault, Stony Point (July 16, 1779), Paulus Hook (July -20, 1779) and the British intrenchments at Yorktown -(Oct. 19, 1781). Of these troops, the Baron von Steuben -writes:</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>“I am satisfied with having shown to those who understand -the Art of Warfare, an American army worthy of -their approbation; officers who know their profession and -who would do honor to any army in Europe; an infantry -such as England has never brought into the field, soldiers -temperate, well-drilled and obedient and the equal of any -in the world.”</p> - -</div> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>The <i>Consular Guard</i> was the reproduction of the Van -Guard of Frederic the Great, but its sphere of action was -strangely restricted by Bonaparte, who, instead of placing -his best troops in the front of his army, as is the -practice of all other of the Great Captains; subordinated -their functions to that of a reserve and to personal attendance -upon himself.</p> - -<p>This Corps d’elite was but once notably in action; at -Marengo (June 14, 1800) it undoubtedly saved the day -for France, by maintaining the battle until the arrival of -Gen. Desaix and his division.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>The <i>Imperial Guard</i> of Napoleon was the development -of the Consular Guard of Bonaparte. Under the Empire -the Guard became an independent army, consisting -of light and heavy infantry, horse and field artillery,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_64" id="Page_64">[64]</a></span> -cuirassiers, dragoons, hussars and chasseurs, and composed -of the best troops in the French service.</p> - -<p>The functions of this fine body, like that of its prototype, -was limited to the duties of a reserve and to -attendance upon the person of the Emperor; and perhaps -next to announcement of victory, Napoleon’s -favorite bulletin always read, “The Imperial Guard was -not engaged.”</p> - -<p>Many were the unavailing remonstrances made by his -advisors against this policy, which judged by the practice -of the great masters of warfare, is putting the cart before -the horse; and seemingly is that speck of cloud in Napoleon’s -political sky, which properly may be deemed a -precursor of St. Helena.</p> - -<p>At Austerlitz (Dec. 2, 1805), the cuirassiers of the -French Imperial Guard routed a like body of Russian -cavalry. At Eylau (Nov. 7, 1807) the Guard, as -at Marengo again saved the day, after the corps d’armee -of Soult and Angereau had been destroyed, by maintaining -the battle until the arrival of Ney and Davoust. In -the retreat from Russia (1812) the Guard then numbering -64,000 men was nearly destroyed. What was left -of it won at Ligny (June 16, 1815), Napoleon’s last -victory and at Waterloo (June 18, 1815), one of its two -surviving divisions covered the flight of the French -army, while the other escorted Napoleon in safety to -Paris.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>The <i>Royal Prussian Guard</i>, under Von Moltke, was -organized and utilized in accord with the teachings of -Frederic the Great.</p> - -<p>Its most notable achievement occurred in the campaign -of 1870. The right flank of the French having -been turned by the battle of Woerth (Aug. 4, 1870) and -Marshal MacMahon’s army being driven to the westward,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_65" id="Page_65">[65]</a></span> -it became the paramount object of Von Moltke to -seize the country in rear of Metz and thus prevent the retreat -of Marshall Bazine across the Moselle River.</p> - -<p>The Royal Prussian Guard out-marching both friends -and enemies first reached the Nancy road (Aug. 18, 1870) -and until the German corps reached the battlefield this -body of picked troops successfully withstood the assault -of nearly the entire French army. In the first half-hour -the Guard lost 8,000 men.</p> - -<p>As the result of all this, Marshal Bazine with 150,000 -men was forced back into and taken in the intrenched -camp at Metz; and the Emperor Napoleon III, Marshal -MacMahon and a second French army of 140,000 men -was captured at Sedan (Sept. 1, 1870), in an attempt to -rescue Marshal Bazine.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_66" id="Page_66">[66]</a></span></p> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“I must tell you beforehand this will be a bloody touch. -Tilly has a great army of old lads with iron faces that dare -look an enemy in the eye; they are confident of victory, have -never been beaten and do not know what it means to fly. -Tilly tells his men he will beat me and the old man is as -likely to do it as to say it.”—Gustavus Adolphus.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p>“Tilly’s men were rugged, surly fellows; their faces -mangled by wounds and scars had an air of hardy courage. -I observed of them that their clothes were always dirty, -their armor rusty from winter storms and bruised by -musket-balls, their weapons sharp and bright. They -were used to camp in the open fields and to sleep in the -frosts and rain. The horses like the men were strong and -hardy and knew by rote their exercises. Both men and -animals so well understood the trade of arms that a -general command was sufficient; every man was fit to -command the whole, and all evolutions were performed in -order and with readiness, at a note of the trumpet or a -motion of their banners.</p> - -<p>“The 7th of Sept. (1631) before sunrise, the Swedish -army marched from Dieben to a large field about a mile -from Leipsic, where we found old Tilly’s army in full -battalia in admirable order, which made a show both -glorious and terrible.</p> - -<p>“Tilly, like a fair gamester, had taken up but one side -of the plain, and left the other side clear and all the -avenues open to the King’s approach, nor did he stir -to the charge until the Swedish army was fully drawn up -and was advancing toward him. He had with him 44,000 -old soldiers and a better army I believe never was so -soundly beaten.…</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_67" id="Page_67">[67]</a></span></p> - -<p>“Then was made a -most dreadful slaughter, and yet there was no flying. -Tilly’s men might be killed or knocked down, but no man -turned his back, nor would give an inch of ground, -save as they were marched, wheeled, or retreated by -their officers.… About six -o’clock the field was cleared of the enemy except at one -place on the King’s front, where some of them rallied; -and though they knew that all was lost, they would take -no quarter, but fought it out to the last man, being found -dead the next day in rank and file as they were drawn -up.”</p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p>Perfection in Organization is attained when troops -instantly and intelligently act according to order and -execute with exactness and precision any and every -prescribed evolution.</p> - -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_68" id="Page_68">[68]</a></span></p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapterhead"> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_69" id="Page_69">[69]</a></span></p> - -<p class="chapterhead" id="TOPOGRAPHY">TOPOGRAPHY</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_70" id="Page_70">[70]</a></span></p> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Let us not consider where we shall give battle, but where -we may gain the victory.”—Phocion.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_71" id="Page_71">[71]</a></span></p> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“There can be no discretion in a movement which forsakes -the advantage in ground.”—Gustavus Adolphus.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“That battlefield is best which is adapted to the full -use of the chief constituents of your army and unfavorable to -the mass of the enemy.”—Napoleon.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_72" id="Page_72">[72]</a></span></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_73" id="Page_73">[73]</a></span></p> - -<h2>TOPOGRAPHY</h2> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“The ground is the CHESSBOARD of we cannibals; -and it is the selection and use made of it, that decides the -knowledge or the ignorance of those by whom it is occupied.”—Frederic the Great.</i></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p class="hanging"><i>The highest use of Topography consists in reducing a -superior adverse force to the inferior force, by minimizing -the radius of action of the hostile Corps d’armee.</i></p> - -<p class="hanging"><i>This is effected by so posting the kindred corps that in the -resulting Strategetic Horizons, impassable natural barriers -are presented to the march of hostile corps toward their -respective objectives.</i></p> - -<p>On the surface of the earth such natural barriers are -formed by mountains, rivers, lakes, swamps, forests, -deserts, the ocean, and the boundaries of neutral States.</p> - -<p>On the Chess-board these topographical conditions are -typified by peculiarities and limitations in the movements -of the Chess-pieces, viz.:</p> - -<ul> -<li>I. The sides of the Chess-board which terminate all -movements of the chess pieces.</li> -<li>II. That limitation of the movements of the Chesspieces -which makes it impossible for them to move other -than in straight lines.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_74" id="Page_74">[74]</a></span></li> -<li>III. The inability of the Queen to move on obliques.</li> -<li>IV. The inability of the Rook to move either on -obliques or on diagonals.</li> -<li>V. The inability of the Bishop to move either on -obliques, verticals, or horizontals.</li> -<li>VI. The inability of the Knight to move either on -diagonals, verticals, or horizontals, and the limitation of -its move to two squares distance.</li> -<li>VII. The inability of the Pawn to move either on -obliques or horizontals, and the limitation of its first move -to two squares and of its subsequent moves to one square.</li> -<li>VIII. The limitation of the King’s move to one -square.</li> -</ul> - -<p>These limitations and impediments to the movements -of the Chess-pieces, are equivalent in Chess-play to obstacles -interposed by Nature to the march of troops -over the surface of the earth.</p> - -<p>Prefect Generalship, in its calculations, so combines -these insurmountable barriers with the relative positions -of the contending armies, that the kindred army becomes -at every vital point the superior force.</p> - -<p>This effect is produced by merely causing rivers and -mountains to take the place of kindred Corps d’armee.</p> - -<p>It is only by the study of Chessic topography that the -tremendous problems solved by the chess player become -manifest:</p> - -<p><i>Instead of calculations limited to one visible and unchangeable -Chess-board of sixty-four squares, the divinations -of the Chess-master comprehend and harmonize as -many invisible Chess-boards as there are Chess-pieces contained -in the Topographical Zone.</i></p> - -<p>Furthermore, all these surfaces differ to the extent and -in conformity to that particular sensible horizon, appertaining -to the Chess-piece from which it emanates.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_75" id="Page_75">[75]</a></span></p> - -<p>The enormous difficulties of Chess-play, like those of -warfare, arise from the necessity of combining in a single -composite topographical horizon, all those differing, -sensible horizons which appertain, not merely to the -kindred, but also to the hostile corps; and to do this in -such a manner, as to minimize the hostile powers for -offence and defence, by debarring one or more of the -hostile pieces from the true Strategetic Horizon.</p> - -<p><i>To divide up the enemy’s force, by making natural -barriers take the place of troops, is the basis of those processes -which dominate Grand Manoeuvres.</i></p> - -<p>Of all the deductions of Chess-play and of warfare, -such combinations of Strategy and Topography are the -most subtle and intangible. The highest talent is -required in its interpretation, and mastery of it, more -than of any other branch of Strategetics, proclaims the -great Captain at war, or at chess.</p> - -<h3>TOPOGRAPHY OF THE KING</h3> - -<p>From the view-point of the <i>King</i>, the surface of the -Chess-board takes on the topographical aspect of a vast -expanse of open, level country.</p> - -<p>This vista is void of insurmountable natural obstacles, -other than the sides and extremities. The latter collectively -may be regarded, for strategical purposes, -either as the Ocean, or the boundaries of neutral States.</p> - -<p>To the King, this vast territory is accessible in all -directions. At his pleasure he may move to and occupy -either of the sixty-four squares of the Chess-board, in a -minimum of one and in a maximum of seven moves. -The only obstacles to his march are distance and the -opposition of an enemy.</p> - -<p>The Strategical weakness of the Topographical Horizon<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_76" id="Page_76">[76]</a></span> -peculiar to the King arises from its always taking on and -maintaining the physical form of a plain. Consequently -it is vulnerable to attack from all sides and what is far -worse, it readily is commanded and from a superior -topographical post, by every adverse piece, except the -King and Pawn.</p> - -<p>Thus, the hostile Queen, without being attacked in return, -may enfilade the King along all verticals, horizontals -and diagonals; the Rooks, along all verticals and -horizontals; the Bishops, along all diagonals of like color; -and the Knights along all obliques.</p> - -<h3>TOPOGRAPHY OF THE QUEEN</h3> - -<p>From the view-point of the <i>Queen</i>, the surface of the -Chess-board takes on the topographical aspect of a series -of wide, straight valleys separated by high, impassable -mountain ranges, unfordable rivers, and impenetrable -forests and morasses. These valleys, which number never -less than three, nor more than eight, in the same group, -are of varying length and always converge upon and -unite with each other at the point occupied by the Queen.</p> - -<p>These valleys contained in the Queen’s topographical -horizon may be classified, viz.:</p> - -<p>Class I, consists of those groups made up of three -valleys.</p> - -<p>Class II, of those groups made up of five valleys.</p> - -<p>Class III, of those groups made up of eight valleys of -lesser area; and</p> - -<p>Class IV, of those groups made up of eight valleys of -greater area.</p> - -<p>Groups of the first class always have an area of twenty -points; those of the second have an area of twenty-three -points; those of the third have an area of twenty-five<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_77" id="Page_77">[77]</a></span> -points, and those of the fourth have an area of twenty-seven -points. Such areas always are exclusive of that -point upon which the Queen is posted.</p> - -<p>Although impassable natural barriers restrict the -movement of the Queen to less than one-half of the -Topographical Zone, these obstacles always are intersected -by long stretches of open country formed by -intervening valleys.</p> - -<p>Hence, the march of this most mobile of the Chesspieces -always is open either in three, five, or eight directions, -and it always is possible for her, unless impeded by -the interference of kindred or hostile corps, to reach any -desired point on the Chess-board in two moves.</p> - -<p>The weakness peculiar to the Topographical Horizon -which appertains to the Queen, originates in the fact that -it never commands the origins of obliques. Consequently, -every post of the Queen, is open to unopposed -attack by the hostile Knights.</p> - -<h3>TOPOGRAPHY OF THE ROOK</h3> - -<p>From the view-point of the <i>Rook</i>, the surface of the -Chess-board takes on a topographical aspect which varies -with the post occupied.</p> - -<p>Placed at either R1 or R8 the Rook occupies the central -point of a great valley, 15 points in length, which winds -around the slope of an immense and inaccessible mountain -range. This latter, in extent, includes the remainder -of the Topographical Zone.</p> - -<p>With the Rook placed at R2 or R7, this great mountain -wall becomes pierced by a long valley running at right -angles to the first, but the area open to the movement -of the Rook is not increased.</p> - -<p>Placed at Kt2, B3, K4, or Q4, the Rook becomes enclosed -amid impassable natural barriers. But although<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_78" id="Page_78">[78]</a></span> -in such cases it always occupies the point of union of four -easily traversed although unequal valleys, its area of -movement is neither increased nor diminished, remaining -always at fourteen points open to occupation.</p> - -<p>Unless impeded by the presence of kindred or adverse -corps on its logistic radii, the Rook always may move -either in two, three, or four directions, and it may reach -any desired point on the Chess-board in two moves.</p> - -<p>The weakness peculiar to the Topographical Horizon -of the Rook lies in the fact that it never commands the -origins of diagonals or obliques. Hence it is open to -unopposed attack along the first from adverse Queen, -King, Bishops and Pawns, and along the second from -adverse Knights.</p> - -<h3>TOPOGRAPHY OF THE BISHOP</h3> - -<p>From the view-point of the <i>Bishop</i>, the surface of the -Chess-board takes on a topographical aspect most forbidding.</p> - -<p>To this Chess-piece at least one-half of the Topographical -Zone is inaccessible, and under any circumstances -his movements are limited to the thirty-two -squares of his own color.</p> - -<p>Thus, the Topographical Horizon of the Bishop takes -the form of a broken country, dotted with high hills, -deep lakes, impenetrable swamps, and thick woodlands. -But between these obstacles thus set about by Nature, -run level valleys, varied in extent and easy of access. -This fact so modifies this harshest of all sensible horizons -as to make the Bishop next in activity to the Rook.</p> - -<p>Within its limited sphere of action, the Bishop may -move in either one or four directions with a minimum of -nine and a maximum of fourteen points open to his -occupation. Unimpeded by other corps blocking his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_79" id="Page_79">[79]</a></span> -route of march, the Bishop may reach any desired point -of his own color on the chess board in two moves.</p> - -<p>The weakness peculiar to the topographical horizon -of the Bishop is its liability to unopposed attack along -verticals and horizontals by the hostile King, Queen and -Rooks; and along obliques by the hostile Knights.</p> - -<h3>TOPOGRAPHY OF THE KNIGHT</h3> - -<p>From the view-point of the <i>Knight</i>, the surface of the -Chess-board takes on the aspect of a densely wooded -and entirely undeveloped country; made up of a profusion -of ponds, rivulets, swamps, etc., none of which are -impassable although sufficient to impede progress.</p> - -<p>Unless interfered with by kindred or hostile corps, or -the limitations of the Chess-board, the Knight always -may move either in two, four, six, or eight directions. -It may reach any desired point in a minimum of one and -a maximum of six moves, and may occupy the sixty-four -squares of the Chess-board in the same number of -marches.</p> - -<p>The weakness of the topographical horizon of the -Knight lies in the fact that it never commands adjacent -points, nor any of those distant, other than the -termini of its own obliques. Hence it is open to unopposed -attack along verticals and horizontals from the -adverse King, Queen and Rooks, and along diagonals -from the adverse King, Queen, Bishop and Pawns.</p> - -<h3>TOPOGRAPHY OF THE PAWN</h3> - -<p>From the point of view of the <i>Pawn</i>, the surface of the -Chess-board takes on the topographical aspect of a -country which as it is entered, constantly becomes wilder -and more rugged.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_80" id="Page_80">[80]</a></span></p> - -<p>The march of the Pawn always is along a valley situated -between impracticable natural barriers, and the -possible movements of the Pawn always decrease as the -distance traveled increases.</p> - -<p>Unhindered by either kindred or hostile corps, the -Pawn may reach any point of junction in the kindred -Logistic Horizon, which is contained within its altitude, -in a minimum of five and in a maximum of six moves. -It may march only in one direction, except in capturing, -when it may acquire the option of acting in three directions.</p> - -<p>The weakness of the topographical horizon of the -Pawn originates in its inability to command the adjacent -country. Therefore, it is exposed to unopposed attack -along verticals and horizontals by the hostile King, -Queen and Rooks; along diagonals by the adverse King, -Queen and Bishops, and along obliques by the adverse -Knights.</p> - -<h3>TOPOGRAPHY OF THE TOPOGRAPHICAL ZONE</h3> - -<p>That normal and visible surface of the <i>Chess-board</i> -termed the Topographical Zone is bounded by four great -natural barriers, impassable to any Chess-piece.</p> - -<p>The two sides of the zone may be held to typify either -the Ocean or the boundaries of neutral States. The two -extremities of the Chess-board while holding the previously -announced relation to Chess-pieces contained in -the Topographical Zone, also holds another and radically -different relation to those Chess-pieces <i>not</i> contained in -the Topographical Zone, viz.:</p> - -<p>In the latter case, the two extremities of the chessboard -are to be regarded as two great mountain ranges,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_81" id="Page_81">[81]</a></span> -each of which is pierced by eight defiles, the latter being -the sixteen points of junction contained in the kindred -and adverse logistic horizons.</p> - -<p>In the arena thus formed by these four great natural -barriers, two hostile armies composed of the thirty-two -Chess-pieces, are contending for the mastery.</p> - -<p>Meanwhile, beyond these great mountain ranges, are -advancing to the aid of the combatants, two other armies, -represented by the power of promotion possessed by the -Pawns. Each of these two hypothetical armies is assailing -the outer slope of that range of mountains which lies -in the rear of the hostile force. Its effort is to pass one -of the eight defiles and by occupying a Point of Junction -in the kindred Logistic Horizon, to gain entrance into -the Topographical Zone. Then in the array of a Queen, -or some other kindred piece, it purposes to attack decisively, -the adverse Strategetic Rear.</p> - -<p>To oppose the attack of this hypothetical hostile army, -whose movements always are typified by the advance of -the adverse Pawns, is the duty of the kindred column of -manoeuvre.</p> - -<p>Primarily this labor falls upon the kindred Pawns. -Upon each Pawn devolves the duty of guarding that -defile situated directly on its front, by maintaining itself -as a Point of Impenetrability between the corresponding -hostile pawn and the kindred Strategic Rear.</p> - -<p>Conversely, a second duty devolves upon each Pawn; -and as an integer of the Column of Support, it continually -must threaten and whenever opportunity is -presented it decisively must assault the defile on its -front, for the purpose of penetrating to the kindred -logistic horizon and becoming promoted to such kindred -piece, as by attacking the adverse Determinate Force -in flank, in rear, or in both, may decide the victory in -favor of the kindred army.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_82" id="Page_82">[82]</a></span></p> - -<p>Every variety of topography has peculiar requirements -for its attack and its defence; and situations even though -but little different from each other, nevertheless must be -treated according to their particular nature.</p> - -<p>In order to acquire the habit of selecting at a glance -the correct posts for an army and of making proper -dispositions of the kindred corps with rapidity and precision, -topography should be studied with great attention, -for most frequently it happens that circumstances do -not allow time to do these things with deliberation.</p> - -<h3>PRINCIPLE</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Acting either offensively or defensively, one never should -proceed in such a way as to allow the enemy the advantage -of ground;</i></p> - -<p>That is to say: Kindred corps never should be exposed -to unopposed adverse radii of offence, when the effect -of such exposure is the loss of kindred material, or of -time much better to be employed, than in making a necessary -and servile retreat from an untenable post.</p> - -<p>On the contrary, every kindred topographical advantage -should unhesitatingly be availed of; and particular -attention continually should be paid to advancing -the kindred corps to points offensive where they cannot -be successfully attacked.</p> - -<p>Pains always must be taken to select advantageous -ground. Indifferent posts must never be occupied from -sheer indolence or from over-confidence in the strength -of the kindred, or the weakness of the adverse army.</p> - -<p>Particularly must one beware of permitting the enemy -to retain advantages in topography; always and at once -he should be dislodged from posts whose continued occupation -may facilitate his giving an unforeseen and often -a fatal blow.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_83" id="Page_83">[83]</a></span></p> - -<p>The full importance of topography perhaps is best expressed -in the following dictum by the great Frederic:</p> - -<h3>PRINCIPLE</h3> - -<p class="hanging">“<i>Whenever a general and decisive topographical advantage -is presented, one has merely to avail of this, without troubling -about anything further.</i>”</p> - -<p>The relative advantage in Topography possessed by -one army over an opposing army, always can be determined -by the following, viz.:</p> - -<h3>RULE</h3> - -<p>1. If the principal adverse Corps of Position are -situated upon points of a given color, and if the principal -Kindred Corps of Position are situated upon points <i>not</i> -of the given color, then:</p> - -<p>That army which has the <i>more</i> Corps of Evolution able -to act against points of the given color, and the <i>equality</i> -in Corps of Evolution able to act against points of the -opposite color, has the relative advantage in Topography.</p> - -<p>2. To utilize the relative advantage in Topography, -construct a position in which the kindred Corps of Position -necessary to be defended shall occupy a point upon -the sub-geometric symbol of a kindred Corps of Evolution; -which point shall be a Tactical Key of a True -Strategetic Horizon of which the kindred Corps of Evolution -is the Corps of the Centre and of which either the -adverse King or an undefendable adverse piece is the -second Tactical Key.</p> - -<p>3. To neutralize the relative disadvantage in Topography, -eliminate that adverse Corps d’armee which is able -to act simultaneously by its geometric symbol against -the principal Kindred Corps of Position upon a given<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_84" id="Page_84">[84]</a></span> -color; and by its sub-geometric symbol against points of -opposite color.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Perfection in Defensive Topography is attained whenever -the ground occupied nullifies hostile advantages in -Time, Organization, Mobility, Numbers and Position.</p> - -<p>Perfection in Offensive Topography is attained whenever -the ground occupied accentuates the kindred advantages -in Time, Organization, Mobility, Numbers and -Position.</p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_85" id="Page_85">[85]</a></span></p> - -<h3 id="TOPOGRAPHY_EXAMPLES">MILITARY EXAMPLES</h3> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“When you intend to engage in battle endeavor that your -CHIEF advantage shall arise from the ground occupied -by your army.”—Vegetius.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p>To cross the Granicus, Alexander the Great selected -a fordable spot where the river made a long, narrow -bend, and attacked the salient and both sides simultaneously. -The Persians thus outflanked were easily -and quickly routed; whereupon the Grecian army in -line of Phalanxes, both flanks covered by the river and -its retreat assured by the fords in rear, advanced to -battle in harmony with all requirements of Strategetic -Art.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Issus, Alexander the Great so manoeuvred that the -Persian army of more than a million men was confined -in a long valley not over three miles in width, having the -sea on the left hand and the Amanus Mountains on the -right, thus the Grecians had a battlefield fitted to the -size of their army, and fought in Phalanxes in line, both -wings covered by impassable natural barriers and retreat -assured, by open ground in rear.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At the Trebia, Hannibal by stratagems now undiscernible, -induced the consul Sempronius to pass the -river and following along the easterly bank to take position -with his army upon the lowlands between an unfordable -part of the stream and the Carthagenians.</p> - -<p>Upon this, Hannibal detached his youngest brother -Margo to cut off the retreat of the Romans from the -ford by which they had crossed the Trebia; advanced his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_86" id="Page_86">[86]</a></span> -infantry by Phalanxes in line and overthrowing the few -Roman horse, assailed the hostile left wing with 10,000 -heavy cavalry. The destruction of the Roman army was -completed by the simultaneous attack of their right -wing by Margo and the impossibility of repassing the -river in their rear.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>By one of the most notable marches in surprise recorded -in military annals, Hannibal crossed the seemingly -impassible marshes of the river Po, and turned -the left flank of the Roman army, commanded by the -Consul C. Flaminius. Then the great Carthagenian -advanced swiftly toward the city of Rome, devasting the -country on either hand.</p> - -<p>In headlong pursuit the Consul entered a long narrow -valley, having Lake Trasymenus on the one hand and -the mountains on the other.</p> - -<p>Suddenly while entombed in this vast ravine, the -Roman army was attacked by infantry from the high -ground along its right flank; and in front and rear by the -Carthagenian heavy cavalry, while the lake extending -along its left flank made futile all attempts to escape.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Cannae, Hannibal reproduced the evolutions of -Alexander the Great at the passage of the Granicus. -Selecting a long bend in the Aufidus, Hannibal forded -the river and took position by Phalanxes in line, his -flanks covered by unfordable parts of the stream and his -retreat assured by the fords by which he had crossed, -while as at Issus, the ground on his front though fitting -his own army, was so confined as to prevent the Romans -engaging a force greater than his own. Beyond Hannibal’s -front, the hostile army was posted in a wide level<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_87" id="Page_87">[87]</a></span> -plain, suited to the best use of the vastly superior Carthagenian -heavy cavalry, both for the evolutions of the -battle and the subsequent pursuit and massacre of the -Romans.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At the River Arar (58 B.C.) Caesar achieved his first -victory. Following leisurely but closely the marauding -Helvetii, he permitted three-fourths of their army to -cross to the westerly side of the river; then he fell upon -the remainder with his whole army.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>An eye-witness thus describes the famous passage of -the Lech by Gustavus Adolphus:</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>“Resolved to view the situation of the enemy, his -majesty went out the 2nd of April (1632) with a strong -body of horse, which I had the honor to command. -We marched as near as we could to the bank of the river, -not to be too much exposed to the enemy’s cannon; and -having gained a height where the whole course of the -river might be seen, we drew up and the king alighted -and examined every reach and turning of the river with -his glass. Toward the north, he found the river fetching -a long reach and doubling short upon itself. ‘There is -the point will do our business,’ says the king, ‘and if -the ground be good, we will pass there, though Tilly -do his worst’.”</p> - -</div> - -<p>He immediately ordered a small party of horse to -bring him word how high the bank was on each side and -at the point, “and he shall have fifty dollars” says the -king, “who will tell me how deep the water is.”</p> - -<p>… The depth and breadths of -the stream having been ascertained, and the bank on our -side being ten to twelve feet higher than the other and of -a hard gravel, the king resolved to cross there; and himself -gave directions for such a bridge as I believe never -army passed before nor since.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_88" id="Page_88">[88]</a></span></p> - -<p>The bridge was loose plank placed upon large tressels -as bricklayers raise a scaffold to build a wall. The -tressels were made some higher and some lower to answer -to the river as it grew deeper or shallower; and all was -framed and fitted before any attempt was made to cross.</p> - -<p>At night, April 4th the king posted about 2,000 men -near the point and ordered them to throw up trenches on -either side and quite around it; within which at each end -the king placed a battery of six pieces and six cannon at -the point, two guns in front and two at each side. By -daylight, all the batteries were finished, the trenches -filled with musketeers and all the bridge equipment at -hand in readiness for use. To conceal this work the king -had fired all night at other places along the river.</p> - -<p>At daylight, the Imperialists discovered the king’s -design, when it was too late to prevent it. The musketeers -and the batteries made such continual fire that the -other bank twelve feet below was too hot for the Imperialists; -whereupon old Tilly to be ready for the king -on his coming over on his bridge, fell to work and raised -a twenty-gun battery right against the point and a -breast-work as near the river as he could to cover his -men; thinking that when the King should build his -bridge, he might easily beat it down with his cannon.</p> - -<p>But the King had doubly prevented him; first by -laying his bridge so low that none of Tilly’s shot could -hurt it, for the bridge lay not above half a foot above the -water’s edge; and the angle of the river secured it against -the batteries on the other side, while the continual fire -beat the Imperialists from those places where they had -no works to cover them.</p> - -<p>Now, in the second place, the King sent over four -hundred men who cast up a large ravelin on the other -bank just where he planned to land; and while this was -doing the King laid over his bridge.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_89" id="Page_89">[89]</a></span></p> - -<p>Both sides wrought hard all the day and all the night -as if the spade, not the sword, was to decide the controversy; -meanwhile the musketry and cannon-balls flew -like hail and both sides had enough to do to make the -men stand to their work. The carnage was great; -many officers were killed. Both the King and Tilly -animated the troops by their presence.</p> - -<p>About one o’clock about the time when the King had -his bridge finished and in heading a charge of 3000 foot -against our ravelin was brave old Tilly slain by a musket -bullet in the thigh.</p> - -<p>We knew nothing of this disaster befallen them, and -the King, who looked for blows, the bridge and ravelin -being finished, ordered to run a line of palisades to take -in more ground and to cover the first troops he should -send over. This work being finished the same night, the -King sent over his Guards and six hundred Scots to man -the new line.</p> - -<p>Early in the morning a party of Scots under Capt. -Forbes of Lord Rae’s regiment was sent abroad to learn -something of the enemy and Sir John Hepburn with the -Scots Brigade was ordered to pass the bridge, draw up -outside the ravelin, and to advance in search of the -enemy as soon as the horse were come over.</p> - -<p>The King was by this time at the head of his army in -full battle array, ready to follow his van-guard and expecting -a hot day’s work of it. Sir John sent messenger -after messenger entreating for permission to advance, -but the King would not suffer it; for he was ever on his -guard and would not risk a surprise. So the army continued -on this side of the Lech all day and the next night.</p> - -<p>In the morning the King ordered 300 horse, 600 horse -and 800 dragoons to enter the wood by three ways, but -sustaining each other; the Scots Brigade to follow to the -edge of the wood in support of all, and a brigade of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_90" id="Page_90">[90]</a></span> -Swedish infantry to cover Sir John’s troops. So warily -did this famous warrior proceed.</p> - -<p>The next day the cavalry came up with us led by -Gustavus Horn; and the King and the whole army -followed, and we marched on through the heart of -Bavaria. His Majesty when he saw the judgment with -which old Tilly had prepared his works and the dangers -we had run, would often say, “That day’s work is -every way equal to the victory of Leipsic.”</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>With but 55,000 troops in hand and surrounded by the -united Austrian and Russian armies aggregating a -quarter of a million men; Frederic the Great availing of a -swamp, a few hills, a rivulet and a fortified town, constructed -a battlefield upon which his opponents dared not -engage him.</p> - -<p>This famous camp of Bunzlewitz is one of the wonders -of the military art. It also is an illustration of the inability -of the Anglo-Saxon to reason; for to this day -many who wear epaulets, accepting the dictum of a -skillfully hoodwinked French diplomat at the siege of -Neisse, (Dec., 1740) commonly assert that “the great -Frederic was a bad engineer.”</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Washington compelled the British to evacuate Boston, -merely by occupying with artillery Dorchester Heights, -the tactical key of the theatre of action and thus preventing -either ingress or egress from the harbor.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Trenton the Hessian column was unable to escape -from Washington’s accurate evolutions, on account of -being imprisoned in an angle formed by the unfordable -Delaware river.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_91" id="Page_91">[91]</a></span></p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Yorktown, the British army under Lord Cornwallis -was captured entire, being cut off from all retreat by the -ocean on the right flank and the James river in rear.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Bonaparte made his reputation at Toulon (1793) -merely by following the method employed by Washington -in the siege of Boston.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Bonaparte gained his first success in Italy because the -allied Piedmontese and Austrian armies, although thrice -his numbers, were separated by the Apennine mountains.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Bonaparte’s success at Castiglione was due to the -separation of the Austrian army into two great isolated -columns by the Lake of Garda.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Arcola, Bonaparte occupied a great swamp upon -the hostile strategic center and the Austrian army was -destroyed by its efforts to dislodge him.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Rivoli, the Austrian army purposed to unite its five -detached wings upon a plateau of which Bonaparte was -already in possession. All were ruined in the effort to -dislodge the French from this Tactical Center.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>The Austrian army was unable to escape after Marengo -on account of the Po river in its rear.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Austerlitz the left wing of the Austro-Russian army -was caught between the French army and a chain of -lakes and rivulets and totally destroyed.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_92" id="Page_92">[92]</a></span></p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Friedland the Russian army was caught between -the French in front and the Vistula river in rear and -totally destroyed.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Krasnoe, the Russians under Kutosof, occupied -the strategic center and were covered by the Dnieper. -To force the passage of the river cost Napoleon 30,000 -men.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At the Beresina, the Russians under Benningsen, -occupied the Strategic Center and were covered by the -unfordable river. To force the passage cost Napoleon -20,000 men.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Leipsic, Napoleon was caught between the allied -army and the Elbe. The retreat across the river cost the -French 50,000 men.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Waterloo, the high plateau sloping gradually to a -plain, various hamlets on front and flank and the forest -in rear, made a perfect topography for a defensive battle.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Sedan, the Emperor, Napoleon III, and his army -were enclosed between the Prussian army and the frontier -of Belgium and captured.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Where the real general incessantly sees prepared by -Nature means admirably adapted for his needs, the commander -lacking such talents sees nothing.”—Hannibal.</i></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapterhead"> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_93" id="Page_93">[93]</a></span></p> - -<p class="chapterhead" id="MOBILITY">MOBILITY</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_94" id="Page_94">[94]</a></span></p> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Success in an operation depends upon the secrecy and -celerity with which the movements are made.”—Napoleon.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_95" id="Page_95">[95]</a></span></p> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“An eye unskilled and a mind untutored can see but little -where a trained observer detects important movements.”—Von Moltke.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Caesar is a marvel of vigilance and rapidity, he finishes -a war in a march.”—Cicero.</i></p> - -</div> - -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_96" id="Page_96">[96]</a></span></p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_97" id="Page_97">[97]</a></span></p> - -<h2>MOBILITY</h2> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Victory lies in the legs of the soldier.”—Frederic the Great.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“The principal part of the soldier’s efficiency depends -upon his legs.</i></p> - -<p><i>“The personal abilities required in all manoeuvres and -in battles are totally confined to them.</i></p> - -<p><i>“Whoever is of a different opinion is a dupe to ignorance -and a novice in the profession of arms.”—Count de Saxe.</i></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p class="hanging"><i>“It is easier to beat an enemy than commonly is supposed,” -says Napoleon, “the great Art lies in making nothing -but decisive movements.”</i></p> - -<p>To the proficient in Strategetics the truth of the foregoing -dictum is self-evident. Nevertheless, it remains -to instruct the student how to select from a multitude of -possible movements, that particular movement or series -of movements, which in a given situation are best calculated -to achieve victory.</p> - -<p>Whatever may be such series of movements, obviously, -it must have an object, <i>i.e.</i>, a specific and clearly defined -purpose. Equally so, all movements made on such line -of movement must each have an objective, <i>i.e.</i>, a terminus. -These objectives, like cogs in a gear, intimately -are connected with other objectives or termini, so that the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_98" id="Page_98">[98]</a></span> -project thus formed constitutes always an exact and often -a vast scheme.</p> - -<p>Frequently it happens that the occupation of an -objective, valid in a given situation, is not valid in an -ensuing situation for the reasons:</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. That the object of the given line of movement is -become unattainable, or,</li> -<li>2. Because it has become no longer worth attaining, -or,</li> -<li>3. Because such belated attainment may be direct -cause of disaster.</li> -</ul> - -<h3>PRINCIPLE</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>In order to select the decisive movement in a given situation -it is necessary first to determine both the object and -the objective, not merely of the required movement, but also -of that series of movements, which collectively constitute the -projected line of movement; together with the object and the -objective of every movement contained therein.</i></p> - -<p>The mathematician readily will perceive, and the -student doubtless will permit himself to be informed, -that:</p> - -<p>Before the true object and the true objective of any -movement can be determined it first is necessary to -deduce the common object of all movement.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>As is well known, the combined movements of the -Chess-pieces over the surface of the Chess-board during -a game at Chess are infinite.</p> - -<p>These calculations are so complex that human perception -accurately can forecast ultimate and even immediate -results only in comparatively few and simple -situations. Such calculable outcomes are limited to the -earlier stages of the opening, to the concluding phases of a -game; and to situations in the mid-game wherein the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_99" id="Page_99">[99]</a></span> -presence of but few adverse pieces minimizes the volume -of effort possible to the opponent.</p> - -<p>Consequently, it is self-evident, that:</p> - -<h3>PRINCIPLE</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Situations on the Chess-board require for their demonstration -a degree of skill which decreases as the hostile -power of resistance decreases.</i></p> - -<p>All power for resistance possessed by an army emanates -from its ability to move. This faculty of Mobility is -that inestimable quality without which nothing and by -means of which everything, can be done.</p> - -<p>From this truth it is easy to deduce the common object -of all movement, which obviously is:</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p><i>To minimize the mobility of the opposing force.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p>The hostile army having the ability to move and consequently -a power for resistance equal to that possessed -by the kindred army; it becomes of the first importance to -discover in what way the kindred army is superior to -that adverse force, which in the Normal Situation on the -Chess-board is its exact counterpart in material, position -and formation.</p> - -<p>Such normal superiority of the White army over the -Black army is found in the fact that:</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. <i>The former has the privilege of making the -initial move of the game.</i></li> -<li>2. <i>This privilege of first move is the absolute advantage -in Time.</i></li> -</ul> - -<p>While no mathematical demonstration of the outcome -of a game at Chess is possible, nevertheless there are -rational grounds for assuming that with exact play, White -should win.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_100" id="Page_100">[100]</a></span></p> - -<p>This decided and probably decisive advantage possessed -by White can be minimized only by correcting a -mathematical blemish in the game of Chess as at present -constructed; which blemish, there is reason to believe, -did not originally exist.</p> - -<p>This imperfection seemingly is the result of unscientific -modifications of the Italian method of Castling; -which latter, from the standpoint of mathematics and of -Strategetics, embodies the true spirit of that delicate and -vital evolution.</p> - -<p>To the mathematician and to the Strategist, it is clear -that Chess as first devised was geometrically perfect. -The abortions played during successive ages and in -various parts of the Earth, merely are crude and unscientific -deviations from the perfect original.</p> - -<p>Thus, strategetically, the correct post of deployment -for the Chess-King is at the extremity of a straight line -drawn from the center of that Grand Strategic Front -which appertains to the existing formation.</p> - -<p>Hence, in the grand front by the right, the King in -Castling K R, properly goes in one move to KKt1, his -proper post. Conversely, in Castling Q R, he also should -go in one move to QKt1, his proper post corresponding to -the grand front by the left.</p> - -<p>Again, whenever the formation logically points to the -grand front by the right refused, the King should go in -one move from K1 to KR1. When the formations indicate -the grand front by the left refused, the King -should go in one move from K1 to QR1.</p> - -<p>In each and every case the co-operating Rook should -be posted at the corresponding Bishop’s square, in order -to support the alignment by P-B4, of the front adopted.</p> - -<p>The faulty mode of castling today in vogue clearly -is not the product either of the mathematic nor of the -strategetic mind.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_101" id="Page_101">[101]</a></span></p> - -<p>The infantile definition of “the books,” viz., “The -King in Castling moves two squares either to the right -or to the left,” displays all that mania for the commonplace, -which characterizes the dilettante.</p> - -<p>All that can be done is to call attention to this baleful -excrescence on the great Game. Of course, it is useless -to combat it. In the words of the Count de Saxe:</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>“The power of custom is absolute. To depart from it -is a crime, and the most inexcusable of all crimes is to -introduce innovations. For most people, it is sufficient -that a thing is so, to forever allow it to remain so.”</p> - -</div> - -<p>Says the great Frederic;</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>“Man hardly may eradicate in his short lifetime all the -prejudices that are imbibed with his mother’s milk; and -it is well nigh impossible to successfully wrestle with -custom, that chief argument of fools.”</p> - -</div> - -<p>Also bearing in mind the irony of Cicero, who regarded -himself fortunate in that he had not fallen victim to -services rendered his countrymen, it suffices to say:</p> - -<p>The true Chessic dictum in regard to the double -evolution of the King and Rook should read:</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>“<i>The King of Castling should deploy in one move to -that point where, as the Base of Operations, it mathematically -harmonizes with that Strategic Front, which is, -or must become, established.</i>”</p> - -</div> - -<p>The change in the present form of Castling, herein -suggested, should be made in the true interests of the -Royal Game.</p> - -<p>The instant effect of such change will be:</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. Largely to increase the defensive resources both -of White and Black;</li> -<li>2. To minimize the handicap on the second player, -due to White’s advantage of first move;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_102" id="Page_102">[102]</a></span></li> -<li>3. To permit open play on the Queen’s side of the -board and thus provide a broader and more resplendent -field for Strategetic genius.</li> -</ul> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>In all our modern-day mis-interpretations of the ethics -of Chess and our characteristic Twentieth Century -looseness of practice as applied to Chess-play, perhaps -there exists no greater absurdity, than that subversion -of ordinary intelligence, daily evinced by permitting a -piece which cannot move, to give check.</p> - -<p>It is a well known and in many ways a deserved reproach, -cast by the German erudite, that the mind of -the Anglo-Saxon is not properly developed, that it is -able to act correctly only when dealing with known -quantities, and is inadequate for the elucidation of -indeterminate things.</p> - -<p>In consequence, they say, the argumentative attempts -of the Anglo-Saxon are puerile; the natural result of a -mental limitation which differs from that of monkeys -and parrots, merely in ability to count beyond two.</p> - -<p>Surely it would seem that a very young child readily -would sense that:</p> - -<p>A Chess-piece, which by law is debarred from movement, -is, by the same law, necessarily debarred from -capturing adverse material; inasmuch as in order to -capture, a piece must move.</p> - -<p>Nevertheless consensus of opinion today among -children of every growth and whether Anglo-Saxon or -German, universally countenance the paradox that:</p> - -<p>A piece which is pinned on its own King, can give check -<i>i.e.</i>, threaten to move and capture the adverse King.</p> - -<p>To argue this question correctly and to deduce the -logical solution, it is necessary to revert to first principles -and to note that:</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_103" id="Page_103">[103]</a></span></p> - -<p>It is a fundamental of Chess mathematics that the -King cannot be exposed to capture.</p> - -<p>Furthermore, it is to be noted as equally fundamental, -that:</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. A piece exerts no force against that point upon -which it is posted;</li> -<li>2. That whatever power a piece exerts, always is -exerted against some other point than the point upon -which it stands; and that;</li> -<li>3. In order to exert such power, it is an all-essential -that the piece move from the point which it occupies to -the point at which its power is to be exerted.</li> -</ul> - -<p>Hence, it is obvious and may be mathematically demonstrated, -that,</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. A piece which cannot move, cannot capture.</li> -<li>2. A piece which cannot capture, does not exercise -any threat of capture; and</li> -<li>3. Consequently, a piece deprived of its right to -move; which cannot capture nor exercise any threat to -capture, obviously and by mathematical demonstration, -cannot give check, inasmuch, as “check” merely is the -threat by a piece to move and capture the adverse King.</li> -</ul> - -<p>Therefore, whatever may be the normal area of movement -belonging to a piece, whenever from any cause -such piece loses its power of movement, then,</p> - -<p>It no longer can capture, nor exercise any threat of -capture, upon the points contained within said area; and -consequently such points so far as said immovable piece -is concerned, may be occupied in safety by any adverse -piece including the adverse King, for the reason that:</p> - -<p>An immovable piece cannot move; and not being able -to move it cannot capture, and not being able to capture, -it does not exercise any threat of capture, and consequently -it cannot give check.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_104" id="Page_104">[104]</a></span></p> - -<p>This incongruity of permitting an immovable piece to -give check constitutes the second mathematical blemish -in the game of Chess, as at present constructed.</p> - -<p>This fallacy, the correction of which any schoolboy -may mathematically demonstrate, is defended, even by -many who would know better, if they merely would take -time for reflection; by the inane assumption, that:</p> - -<p>A piece which admittedly is disqualified and rendered -dormant by all the fundamentals of the science of Chess, -and which therefore cannot legally move and consequently -cannot legally capture anything; by some -hocus-pocus may be made to move and to capture that -<i>most</i> valuable of <i>all</i> prizes, the adverse King; and this -at a time and under circumstances when, as is universally -allowed, it cannot legally move against, nor legally capture -<i>any other</i> adverse piece.</p> - -<p>The basis of this illogical, illegal, and untenable assumption -is:</p> - -<p>The pinned piece, belonging to that force which has -the privilege of moving, can abandon its post, and capture -the adverse King; this stroke ends the game and -the game being ended, the pinning piece never can avail -of the abandonment of the covering post by the pinned -piece to capture the King thus exposed.</p> - -<p>The insufficiency of this subterfuge is clear to the -mathematical mind. Its subtlety lies in confounding -together things which have no connection, viz.:</p> - -<p>Admittedly the given body of Chess-pieces has the -right to move, but it is of the utmost importance to -note that this privilege of moving extends only to a single -piece and from this privilege of moving the pinned piece -is debarred by a specific and fundamental law of the -game, which declares that:</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_105" id="Page_105">[105]</a></span></p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>“A piece shall not by removing itself uncover the -kindred King to the attack of a hostile piece.”</p> - -</div> - -<p>Thus, it is clear, that a pinned piece is a disqualified -piece; its powers are dormant and by the laws of the -game it is temporarily reduced to an inert mass, and -deprived of every faculty normally appertaining to it as a -Chess-piece. On the other hand, as is equally obvious, -the pinning piece is in full possession of its normal powers -and is qualified to perform every function.</p> - -<p>To hold that a piece disqualified by the laws of the -game can nullify the activities of a piece in full possession -of its powers, is to assert that black is white, that the -moon is made of green cheese, that the tail can wag the -dog, or any other of those things which have led the German -to promulgate his caustic formula on the Anglo-Saxon.</p> - -<p>Hence, artificially to nullify the normal powers of an -active and potential piece which is operating in conformity -to the laws of the game, and artificially to revivify -the dormant powers of a piece disqualified by the -same laws; to debar the former from exercising its -legitimate functions and to permit the latter to exercise -functions from which by law, it specifically is debarred, -is a self-evident incongruity and any argument whereby -such procedure is upheld, necessarily and obviously, -is sophistry.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>No less interesting than instructive and conclusive, -is reference of this question to those intellectual principles -which give birth to the game of Chess, <i>per se</i>, viz.:</p> - -<p>As a primary fundamental, with the power to give -check, is associated concurrently the obligation upon -the King thus checked, not to remain in check.</p> - -<p>Secondly: The totality of powers assigned to the -Chess-pieces is the ability to move, provided the King be<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_106" id="Page_106">[106]</a></span> -free from check. This totality of powers may be denoted -by the indefinite symbol, X.</p> - -<p>The play thus has for its object:</p> - -<p>The reduction to zero of the adverse X, by the operation -of the kindred X.</p> - -<p>This result is checkmate in its generalized form. In -effect, it is the destruction of the power of the adverse -pieces to move, by means of check made permanent.</p> - -<p>By the law of continuity it is self-evident that:</p> - -<p>The power to move appertaining either to White or to -Black, runs from full power to move any piece (a power -due to freedom from check), down to total inability to -move any piece, due to his King being permanently -checked, <i>i.e.</i>, checkmated.</p> - -<p>This series cannot be interrupted without obvious -violation of the ethics of the game; because, so long as -any part of X remains, the principle from which the -series emanated still operates, and this without regard -to quantity of X remaining unexpended.</p> - -<p>Thus, a game of Chess is a procedure from total ability -to total disability; <i>i.e.</i>, from one logical whole to another; -otherwise, from X to zero.</p> - -<p>Checkmate, furnishes the limit to the series; the game -and X vanish together.</p> - -<p>This is in perfect keeping with the law of continuity, -which acts and dominates from beginning to end of the -series, and so long as any part of X remains.</p> - -<p>Hence to permit either White or Black to move any -piece, leaving his King in check, is an anomaly.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Denial to the Pawn of ability to move to the rear is an -accurate interpretation of military ethics.</p> - -<p>Of those puerile hypotheses common to the man who<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_107" id="Page_107">[107]</a></span> -does not know, one of the most entrancing to the popular -mind, is the notion that Corps d’armee properly are of -equal numbers and of the same composition.</p> - -<p>This supposition is due to ignorance of the fact that -the multifarious duties of applied Strategetics, require -for their execution like variety of instruments, which -diversity of means is strikingly illustrated by the differing -movements of the Chess-pieces.</p> - -<p>The inability of the Pawn to move backward strategically -harmonizes with its functions as a Corps of Position, -in contradiction to the movements of the pieces, -which latter are Corps of Evolution.</p> - -<p>This restriction in the move of the Pawn is in exact -harmony with the inability of the Queen to move on -obliques, of the Rook to move on obliques or on diagonals, -of the Bishop to move on obliques, verticals and -horizontals, of the Knight to move on diagonals, verticals, -and horizontals, and of the King to move like any -other piece.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Possessed of the invaluable privilege of making the -first move in the game, knowing that no move should -be made without an object, understanding that the true -object of every move is to minimize the adverse power -for resistance and comprehending that all power for -resistance is derived from facility of movement, the -student easily deduces the true object of White’s initial -move in every game of Chess, viz.:</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_108" id="Page_108">[108]</a></span></p> - -<h3>PRINCIPLE</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>To make the first of a series of movements, each of which -shall increase the mobility of the kindred pieces and correspondingly -decrease the mobility of the adverse pieces.</i></p> - -<p>As the effect of such policy, the power for resistance -appertaining to Black, ultimately must become so insufficient -that he no longer will be able adequately to -defend:</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. His base of operations.</li> -<li>2. The communications of his army with its base.</li> -<li>3. The communications of his corps d’armee with -each other, or,</li> -<li>4. To prevent the White hypothetical force penetrating -to its Logistic Horizon.</li> -</ul> - -<p>To produce this fatal weakness in the Black position -by the advantage of the first move is much easier for -White than commonly is supposed.</p> - -<p>The process consists in making only those movements -by means of which the kindred corps d’armee, progressively -occupying specified objectives, are advanced, -viz.:</p> - -<ul> -<li>I. <i>To the Strategetic Objective, when acting against the -communications of the adverse Determinate Force and its -Base of Operations.</i></li> -<li>II. <i>To the Logistic Horizon, when acting against the -communications between the adverse Determinate and the -adverse Hypothetical Forces.</i></li> -<li>III. <i>To the Strategic Vertices, when acting against the -communications of the hostile corps d’armee with each other.</i></li> -</ul> - -<p>To bring about either of these results against an opponent -equally equipped and capable, of course is a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_109" id="Page_109">[109]</a></span> -much more difficult task than to checkmate an enemy -incapable of movement.</p> - -<p>Yet such achievement is possible to White and with -exact play it seemingly is a certainty that he succeeds in -one or the other, owing to his inestimable privilege of -first move.</p> - -<p>For the normal advantage that attaches to the first -move in a game of Chess is vastly enhanced by a peculiarity -in the mathematical make-up of the surface of the -Chess-board, whereby, he who makes the first move may -secure to himself the advantage in mobility, and conversely -may inflict upon the second player a corresponding -disadvantage in mobility.</p> - -<p>This peculiar property emanates from this fact:</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p><i>The sixty-four points, i.e., the sixty-four centres of the -squares into which the surface of the Chess-board is divided, -constitute, when taken collectively, the quadrant of a circle, -whose radius is eight points in length.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p>Hence, in Chessic mathematics, the sides of the Chessboard -do not form a square, but the segment of a circumference.</p> - -<p>To prove the truth of this, one has but to count the -points contained in the verticals and horizontals and in -the hypothenuse of each corresponding angle, and in -every instance it will be found that the number of points -contained in the base, perpendicular, and hypothenuse, -is the same.</p> - -<p>For example:</p> - -<p>Let the eight points of the King’s Rook’s file form the -perpendicular of a right angle triangle, of which the -kindred first horizontal forms the base; then, the hypothenuse -of the given angle, will be that diagonal which -extends from QR1 to KR8. Now, merely by the processes<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_110" id="Page_110">[110]</a></span> -of simple arithmetic, it may be shown that there -are,</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. Eight points in the base.</li> -<li>2. Eight points in the perpendicular.</li> -<li>3. Eight points in the hypothenuse.</li> -</ul> - -<p>Consequently the <i>three</i> sides of this given right angled -triangle are <i>equal</i> to each other, which is a geometric -<i>impossibility</i>.</p> - -<p>Therefore, it is self-evident that there exists a mathematical -incongruity in the surface of the Chess-board.</p> - -<p>That is, what to the eye <i>seems</i> a right angled triangle, -is in its relations to the <i>movements</i> of the Chess-pieces, -an equilateral triangle. Hence, the Chess-board, in its -relations to the pieces when the latter are at <i>rest</i>, properly -may be regarded as a great <i>square</i> sub-divided into sixty-four -smaller squares; but on the contrary, in those calculations -relating to the Chess-pieces in <i>motion</i>, the -Chess-board must be regarded as the <i>quadrant</i> of a circle -of eight points radius. The demonstration follows, viz.:</p> - -<p>Connect by a straight line the points KR8 and QR8. -Connect by another straight line the points QR8 and -QR1. Connect each of the fifteen points through which -these lines pass with the point KR1, by means of lines -passing through the least number of points intervening.</p> - -<p>Then the line KR8 and QR8 will represent the segment -of a circle of which latter the point KR1 is the center. -The lines KR1-KR8 and KR1-QR1 will represent the -sides of a quadrant contained in the given circle and -bounded by the given segment, and the lines drawn from -KR1 to the fifteen points contained in the given segment -of the given circumference, will be found to be fifteen -equal radii each eight points in length.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Having noted the form of the Static or positional surface -of the Chess-board and its relations to the pieces at<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_111" id="Page_111">[111]</a></span> -rest, and having established the configuration of the -Dynamic surface upon which the pieces move, it is next -in sequence to deduce that fundamental fact and to give -it that geometric expression which shall mathematically -harmonize these conflicting geometric figures in their -relations to Chess-play.</p> - -<p>As the basic fact of applied Chessic forces, it is to be -noted, that:</p> - -<h3>PRINCIPLE</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>The King is the SOURCE from whence the Chess-pieces -derive all power of movement; and from his ability to -move, emanates ALL power for attack and for defence -possessed by a Chessic army.</i></p> - -<p>This faculty of mobility, derived from the existence of -the kindred King, is the all essential element in Chess-play, -and to increase the mobility of the kindred pieces -and to reduce that of the adverse pieces is the simple, sure -and only scientific road to victory; and by comparison -of the Static with the Dynamic surface of the Chess-board, -the desired principle readily is discovered, viz.,</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>The Static surface of the Chess-board being a square, -its least division is into two great right angled triangles -having a common hypothenuse.</p> - -<p>The Dynamic surface being the quadrant of a circle, -its least division also is into two great sections, one of -which is a right angled triangle and the other a semi-circle.</p> - -</div> - -<p>Comparing the two surfaces of the Chess-board thus -divided, it will be seen that these three great right angled -triangles are equal, each containing thirty-six points; -and having for their common vertices, the points KR1, -QR1 and R8.</p> - -<p>Furthermore, it will be seen that the hypothenuse<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_112" id="Page_112">[112]</a></span> -common to these triangles, also is the chord of that -semi-circle which appertains to the Dynamic surface.</p> - -<p>Again, it will be perceived that this semi-circle, like -the three right angled triangles, is composed of thirty-six -points, and consequently that all of the four sub-divisions -of the Static and Dynamic surfaces of the Chess-board -are equal.</p> - -<p>Thus it obviously follows, that:</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. The great central diagonal, always is one side of -each of the four chief geometric figures into which the -Chess board is divided; that:</li> -<li>2. It mathematically perfects each of these figures -and harmonizes each to all, and that:</li> -<li>3. By means of it each figure becomes possessed of -eight more points than it otherwise would contain.</li> -</ul> - -<p>Hence, the following is self-evident:</p> - -<h3>PRINCIPLE</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>That Chessic army which can possess itself of the great -central diagonal, thereby acquires the larger number of -points upon which to act and consequently greater facilities -for movement; and conversely:</i></p> - -<p class="hanging"><i>By the loss of the great central diagonal, the mobility of -the opposing army is correspondingly decreased.</i></p> - -<p>It therefore is clear that the object of any series of -movements by a Chessic army acting otherwise than on -Line of Operations, should be:</p> - -<h3>PRINCIPLE</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Form the kindred army upon the hypothenuse of the right -angled triangle which is contained within the Dynamic surface -of the Chess-board; and conversely,</i></p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_113" id="Page_113">[113]</a></span></p> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Compel the adverse army to act exclusively within that -semi-circle which appertains to the same surface.</i></p> - -<p>Under these circumstances, the kindred corps will be -possessed of facilities for movement represented by thirty-six -squares; while the logistic area of the opposing army -will be restricted to twenty-eight squares.</p> - -<p>There are, of course, two great central diagonals of the -Chess-board; but as the student is fully informed that -great central diagonal always is to be selected, which -extends towards the Objective Plane.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Mobility, <i>per se</i>, increases or decreases with the number -of squares open to occupation.</p> - -<p>But in all situations there will be points of no value, -while other points are of value inestimable; for the reason -that the occupation of the former will not favorably affect -the play, or may even lose the game; while by the occupation -of the latter, victory is at once secured.</p> - -<p>But it is not the province of Mobility to pass on the -values of points; this latter is the duty of Strategy. It is -sufficient for Mobility that it provide superior facilities -for movement; it is for Strategy to define the Line of -Movement; for Logistics, by means of this Line of -Movement, to bring into action in proper times and -sequence, the required force, and for Tactics, with this -force, to execute the proper evolutions.</p> - -<p>Mobility derives its importance from three things -which may occur severally or in combination, viz.:</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. All power for offense or for defense is eliminated -from a Chess-piece the instant it loses its ability to move.</li> -<li>2. The superiority possessed by corps acting offensively -over adverse corps acting defensively, resides in -that the attack of a piece is valid at every point which it<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_114" id="Page_114">[114]</a></span> -menaces; while the defensive effort of a piece, as a rule, -is valid only at a single point. Consequently:</li> -</ul> - -<h3>PRINCIPLE</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Increased facilities for movement enhance the power of -attacking pieces in a much greater degree than like facilities -enhance the power of defending pieces.</i></p> - -<p>Such increasing facilities for movement ultimately -render an attacking force irresistible, for the reason that -it finally becomes a physical impossibility for the opposing -equal force to provide valid defences for the numerous -tactical keys, which at a given time become simultaneously -assailed. Hence:</p> - -<h3>PRINCIPLE</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Superior facilities for occupying any point at any time -and with any force, always ensure the superior force at a -given point, at a given time.</i></p> - -<p>The relative advantage in mobility possessed by one -army over an opposing army always can be determined -by the following, viz.:</p> - -<h3>RULE</h3> - -<p class="hanging">1. That army whose strategic front of operations is -established upon the Strategetic Center has the relative -advantage in Mobility.</p> - -<p class="hanging">2. To utilize the advantage in Mobility extend the -Strategic Front in the direction of the objective plane.</p> - -<p class="hanging">3. To neutralize the relative disadvantage in Mobility -eliminate that adverse Corps d’armee which tactically -expresses such adverse advantage; or so post the Prime -Strategetic Point as to vitiate the adverse Strategic front.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_115" id="Page_115">[115]</a></span></p> - -<p>Advantage in Mobility is divided into two classes, viz.:</p> - -<ul> -<li>I. General Advantage in Mobility.</li> -<li>II. Special Advantage in Mobility.</li> -</ul> - -<p>A General Advantage in Mobility consists in the -ability to act simultaneously against two or more vital -points by means of interior logistic radii due to position -between:—</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. The adverse army and its Base of Operations.</li> -<li>2. Two or more adverse Grand Columns.</li> -<li>3. The wings of a hostile Grand Column.</li> -<li>4. Two or more isolated adverse Corps d’armee.</li> -</ul> - -<p>Such position upon interior lines of movement is -secured by occupying either of the Prime Offensive Origins, -<i>i.e.</i>:</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. Strategic Center <i>vs.</i> Adverse Formation in Mass.</li> -<li>2. Logistic Center <i>vs.</i> Adverse Formation by Grand -Columns.</li> -<li>3. Tactical Center <i>vs.</i> Adverse Formation by Wings.</li> -<li>4. Logistic Triune <i>vs.</i> Adverse Formation by Corps.</li> -</ul> - -<p>Special Advantage in Mobility consists in the ability -of a corps d’armee to traverse greater or equal distances -in lesser times than opposing corps.</p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_116" id="Page_116">[116]</a></span></p> - -<h3 id="MOBILITY_EXAMPLES">MILITARY EXAMPLES</h3> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Never interrupt your enemy when he is making a -false movement.”—Napoleon.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p>In the year (366 B.C.) the King of Sparta, with an -army of 30,000 men marched to the aid of the Mantineans -against Thebes. Epaminondas took up a post with his -army from whence he equally threatened Mantinea and -Sparta. Agesilaus incautiously moved too far towards -the coast, whereupon Epaminondas, with 70,000 men -precipitated himself upon Lacedaemonia, laying waste -the country with fire and sword, all but taking by storm -the city of Sparta and showing the women of Lacedaemonia -the campfire of an enemy for the first time in six -hundred years.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Flaminius advancing incautiously to oppose Hannibal, -the latter took up a post with his army from whence he -equally threatened the city of Rome and the army of the -Consul. In the endeavor to rectify his error, the Roman -general committed a worse and was destroyed with his -entire army.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Thapsus, April 6, 46 B.C., Caesar took up a post -with his army from whence he equally threatened the -Roman army under Scipio and the African army under -Juba. Scipio having marched off with his troops to a -better camp some miles distant, Caesar attacked and -annihilated Juba’s army.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Pirna, Frederic the Great, captured the Saxon -army entire, and at Rossbach, Leuthern and Zorndorf<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_117" id="Page_117">[117]</a></span> -destroyed successively a French, an Austrian and a -Russian army merely by occupying a post from whence -he equally threatened two or more vital points, awaiting -the time when one would become inadequately defended.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Washington won the Revolutionary War merely by -occupying a post from whence he equally threatened the -British armies at New York and Philadelphia; refusing -battle and building up an army of Continental regular -troops enlisted for the war and trained by the Baron von -Steuben in the system of Frederic the Great.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Bonaparte won at Montenotte, Castiglione, Arcola, -Rivoli and Austerlitz his most perfect exhibitions of -generalship, merely by passively threatening two vital -points and in his own words: “By never interrupting an -enemy when he is making a false movement.”</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Perfection in Mobility is attained whenever the -kindred army is able to act unrestrainedly in any and -all directions, while the movements of the hostile army -are restricted.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_118" id="Page_118">[118]</a></span></p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapterhead"> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_119" id="Page_119">[119]</a></span></p> - -<p class="chapterhead" id="NUMBERS">NUMBERS</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_120" id="Page_120">[120]</a></span></p> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“In warfare the advantage in numbers never is to be -despised.”—Von Moltke.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_121" id="Page_121">[121]</a></span></p> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Arguments avail but little against him whose opinion is -voiced by thirty legions.”—Roman Proverb.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“That king who has the most iron is master of those who -merely have the more gold.”—Solon.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“It never troubles the wolf how many sheep there are.”—Agesilaus.</i></p> - -</div> - -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_122" id="Page_122">[122]</a></span></p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_123" id="Page_123">[123]</a></span></p> - -<h2>NUMBERS</h2> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“A handful of troops inured to Warfare proceed to -certain victory; while on the contrary, numerous hordes of -raw and undisciplined men are but a multitude of victims -dragged to slaughter.”—Vegetius.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Turenne always was victorious with armies infinitely -inferior in numbers to those of his enemies; because he -moved with expedition, knew how to secure himself from -being attacked in every situation and always kept near his -enemy.”—Count de Saxe.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Numbers are of no significance when troops are once -thrown into confusion.”—Prince Eugene.</i></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Humanity is divisible into two groups, one of which -relatively is small and the other, by comparison, very -large.</p> - -<p>The first of these groups is made up comparatively of -but a few persons, who, by virtue of circumstances are -possessed of everything except adequate physical -strength; and the second group consists of those vast -multitudes of mankind, which are destitute of everything<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_124" id="Page_124">[124]</a></span> -except of incalculable prowess, due to their overwhelming -numbers.</p> - -<p>Hence, at every moment of its existence, organized -Society is face to face with the possibility of collision into -the Under World; and because of the knowledge that -such encounter is inevitable, unforeseeable and perhaps -immediately impending, Civilization, so-called, ever is -beset by an unspeakable and all-corroding fear.</p> - -<p class="hanging"><i>To deter a multitude, destitute of everything except the -power to take, from despoiling by means of its irresistible -physique, those few who are possessed of everything except -ability to defend themselves, in all Ages has been the -chiefest problem of mankind; and to the solution of this -problem has been devoted every resource known to Education, -Legislation, Ecclesiasticism and Jurisprudence.</i></p> - -<p>This condition further is complicated by a peculiar -outgrowth of necessary expedients, always more or less -unstable, due to that falsity of premise in which words -do not agree with acts.</p> - -<p>Of these expedients the most incongruous is the arming -and training of the children of the mob for the protection -of the upper stratum; and that peculiar mental insufficiency -of hoi polloi, whereby it ever is induced to accept -as its leaders the sons of the Patrician class.</p> - -<p>That a social structure founded upon such anomalies -should endure, constitutes in itself the real Nine Wonders -of the World; and is proof of that marvellous ingenuity -with which the House of Have profits by the chronic -predeliction of the House of Want to fritter away time -and opportunity, feeding on vain hope.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p><i>The advantage in Numbers consists in having in the -aggregate more Corps d’armee than has the adversary.</i></p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_125" id="Page_125">[125]</a></span></p> - -<p>All benefit to be derived from the advantage in Numbers -is limited to the active and scientific use of every -corp d’armee; otherwise excess of Numbers, not only -is of no avail, but easily may degenerate into fatal disadvantage -by impeding the decisive action of other -kindred corps. Says Napoleon: “It is only the troops -brought into action, that avails in battles and campaigns—the -rest does not count.”</p> - -<p>A loss in Numbers at chess-play occurs only when two -pieces are lost for one, or three for two, or one for none, -and the like. No diminution in aggregate of force can -take place on the Chess-board, so long as the number of -the opposing pieces are equal.</p> - -<p>This is true although all the pieces on one side are -Queens and those of the other side all Pawns.</p> - -<p>The reason for this is:</p> - -<p>All the Chess-pieces are equal in strength, one to the -other. The Pawn can overthrow and capture any piece—the -Queen can do no more.</p> - -<p>That is to say, at its turn to move, any piece can capture -any adverse piece; and this is all that any piece can -do.</p> - -<p>It is true that the Queen, on its turn to move, has a -maximum option of twenty-seven squares, while the -Pawn’s maximum never is more than three. But as the -power of the Queen can be exerted only upon one point, -obviously, her observation of the remaining twenty-six -points is merely a manifestation of mobility, and her -display of force is limited to a single square. Hence, the -result in each case is identical, and the display of force -equal.</p> - -<p>The relative advantage in Numbers possessed by one -army over an opposing army always can be determined -by the following, viz.:</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_126" id="Page_126">[126]</a></span></p> - -<h3>RULE</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>That army which contains more Corps d’armee than an -opposing army has the relative advantage in Numbers.</i></p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“With the inferiority in Numbers, one must depend -more upon conduct and contrivance than upon strength.”—Caesar.</i></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_127" id="Page_127">[127]</a></span></p> - -<h3 id="NUMBERS_EXAMPLES">MILITARY EXAMPLES</h3> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“He who has the advantage in Numbers, if he be not a -blockhead, incessantly will distract his enemy by detachments, -against all of which it is impossible to provide a -remedy.”—Frederic the Great.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“He that hath the advantage in Numbers usually should -exchange pieces freely, because the fewer that remain the -more readily are they oppressed by a superior force.”—Dal Rio.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p>At Thymbra, Cyrus the Great, king of the Medes and -Persians, with 10,000 horse cuirassiers, 20,000 heavy -infantry, 300 chariots and 166,000 light troops, conquered -Croesus, King of Assyria whose army consisted -of 360,000 infantry and 60,000 cavalry. This victory -made Persia dominant in Asia.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Marathon, 10,000 Athenian and 1,000 Plataean -heavy infantry, routed 110,000 Medes and Persians. -This victory averted the overthrow of Grecian civilization -by Asiatic barbarism.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Leuctra, Epaminondas, general of the Thebans, -with 6000 heavy infantry and 400 heavy horse, routed -the Lacedaemonean army, composed of 22,000 of the -bravest and most skillful soldiers of the known world, -and extinguished the military ascendency which for -centuries Sparta had exercised over the Grecian commonwealths.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_128" id="Page_128">[128]</a></span></p> - -<p>At Issus, Alexander the Great with 40,000 heavy infantry -and 7,000 heavy cavalry destroyed the army of -Darius Codomannus, King of Persia, which consisted of -1,000,000 infantry, 40,000 cavalry, 200 chariots and 15 -elephants. This battle, in which white men encountered -elephants for the first time, established the military -supremacy of Europe over Asia.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Alexander the Great invaded Asia (May, 334 B.C.) -whose armies aggregated 3,000,000 men trained to war; -with 30,000 heavy infantry, 4000 heavy cavalry, $225,000 -dollars in money and thirty days’ provisions.</p> - -<p>At Arbela, Alexander the Great with 45,000 heavy -infantry and 8,000 heavy horse, annihilated the last -resources of Darius and reduced Persia to a Greek -province. The Persian army consisted of about 600,000 -infantry and cavalry, of whom 300,000 were killed.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Hannibal began his march from Spain (218 B.C.) to -invade the Roman commonwealth, with 90,000 heavy -infantry and 12,000 heavy cavalry. He arrived at -Aosta in October (218 B.C.) with only 20,000 infantry -and 6,000 cavalry to encounter a State that could put -into the field 700,000 of the bravest and most skillful -soldiers then alive.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Cannae, Hannibal destroyed the finest army Rome -ever put in the field. Out of 90,000 of the flower of the -commonwealth only about 3,000 escaped. The Carthagenian -army consisted of 40,000 heavy infantry and -10,000 heavy cavalry.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Alesia, (51 B.C.) Caesar completed the subjugation -of Gaul, by destroying in detail two hostile armies aggregating<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_129" id="Page_129">[129]</a></span> -470,000 men. The Roman army consisted -of 43,000 heavy infantry, 10,000 heavy cavalry and -10,000 light cavalry.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Pharsaleus, (48 B.C.) Caesar with 22,000 Roman -veterans routed 45,000 soldiers under Pompey and acquired -the chief place in the Roman state.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Angora, (1402) Tamerlane, with 1,400,000 Asiatics, -destroyed the Turkish army of 900,000 men, commanded -by the Ottoman Sultan Bajazet, in the most stupendous -battle of authentic record.</p> - -<p>After giving his final instructions to his officers, Tamerlane, -it is recorded, betook himself to his tent and played -at Chess until the crisis of the battle arrived, whereupon -he proceeded to the decisive point and in person directed -those evolutions which resulted in the destruction of the -Ottoman army.</p> - -<p>The assumption that the great Asiatic warrior was -playing at Chess during the earlier part of the battle of -Angora, undoubtedly is erroneous. Most probably he -followed the progress of the conflict by posting chess-pieces -upon the Chessboard and moving these according -to reports sent him momentarily by his lieutenants.</p> - -<p>Obviously, in the days when the field telegraphy and -telephone were unknown, such method was entirely -feasible and satisfactory to the Master of Strategetics and -far superior to any attempt to overlook such a confused -and complicated concourse.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Bannockburne (June 24, 1314), Robert Bruce, -King of Scotland, with 30,000 Scots annihilated the -largest army that England ever put upon a battlefield.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_130" id="Page_130">[130]</a></span></p> - -<p>This army was led by Edward II and consisted of over -100,000 of the flower of England’s nobility, gentry and -yeomanry. The victory established the independence -of Scotland and cost England 30,000 troops, which -could not be replaced in that generation.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Gustavus Adolphus invaded Germany with an army -of 27,000 men, over one-half of whom were Scots and -English. At that time the Catholic armies in the -field aggregated several hundred thousand trained and -hardened soldiers, led by brave and able generals.</p> - -<p>At Leipsic, after 20,000 Saxon allies had fled from the -battlefield, Gustavus Adolphus with 22,000 Swedes, -Scots and English routed 44,000 of the best troops of -the day, commanded by Gen. Tilly. This victory -delivered the Protestant princes of Continental Europe -from Catholic domination.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Zentha (Sept. 11, 1697), Prince Eugene with 60,000 -Austrians routed 150,000 Turks, commanded by the -Sultan Kara-Mustapha, with the loss of 38,000 killed, -4,000 prisoners and 160 cannon. This victory established -the military reputation of this celebrated French -General.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Turin (Sept. 7, 1706) Prince Eugene with 30,000 -Austrians routed 80,000 French under the Duke of -Orleans. Gen. Daun, whose brilliant evolutions decided -the battle, afterward, as Field-Marshal of the -Austrian armies, was routed by Frederic the Great at -Leuthern.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Peterwaradin (Aug. 5, 1716) Prince Eugene with -60,000 Austrians destroyed 150,000 Turks. This victory<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_131" id="Page_131">[131]</a></span> -delivered Europe for all time from the menace of Mahometan -dominion.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Belgrade (Aug. 26, 1717) Prince Eugene with 55,000 -Austrians destroyed a Turkish army of 200,000 men.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Rosbach (Nov. 5, 1757) Frederic the Great with -22,000 Prussians, in open field, destroyed a French army -of 70,000 regulars commanded by the Prince de Soubisse.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Leuthern (Dec. 5, 1757) Frederic the Great with -33,000 Prussians destroyed in open field, an Austrian -army of 93,000 regulars, commanded by Field-Marshal -Daun. The Austrians lost 54,000 men and 200 cannon.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Zorndorf (Aug. 25, 1758) Frederic the Great with -45,000 Prussians destroyed a Russian army of 60,000 -men commanded by Field-Marshal Fermor. The Russians -left 18,000 men dead on the field.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Leignitz (Aug. 15, 1760) Frederic the Great with -30,000 men out-manoeuvred, defeated with the loss of -10,000 men and escaped from the combined Austrian -and Russian armies aggregating 130,000 men.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Torgau (Nov. 5, 1760) Frederic the Great with -45,000 Prussians destroyed an Austrian army of 90,000 -men, commanded by Field-Marshal Daun.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Washington, with 7,000 Americans, while pursued by -20,000 British and Hessians under Lord Cornwallis,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_132" id="Page_132">[132]</a></span> -captured a Hessian advance column at Trenton -(Dec. 25, 1776) and destroyed a British detachment -at Princeton, (Jan. 3, 1777).</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Bonaparte, with 30,000 infantry, 3,000 cavalry and 40 -cannon, invaded Italy, (March 26, 1796) which was -defended by 100,000 Piedmontese and Austrian regulars -under Generals Colli and Beaulieu. In fifteen days he -had captured the former, driven the latter to his own -country and compelled Piedmont to sign a treaty of -peace and alliance with France.</p> - -<p>At Castiglione, Arcole, Bassano and Rivoli, with an -army not exceeding 40,000 men Bonaparte destroyed -four Austrian armies, each aggregating about 100,000 -men.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Wagram, Napoleon, with less than 100,000 men, -overthrew the main Austrian army of 150,000 men, -foiled the attempts at succor of the secondary Austrian -army of 40,000 men, and compelled Austria to accept -peace with France.</p> - -<p>In the campaign of 1814, Napoleon, with never more -than 70,000 men, twice repulsed from the walls of Paris -and drove backward nearly to the Rhine River an allied -army of nearly 300,000 Austrians, Prussians and Russians.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>In the year 480 B.C., Xerxes, King of Persia, invaded -Greece with an army, which by Herodotus, Plutarch and -Isocrates, is estimated at 2,641,610 men at arms and -exclusive of servants, butlers, women and camp followers.</p> - -<p>Arriving at the Pass of Thermopolae, the march of the -invaders was arrested by Leonidas, King of Sparta, -with an army made up of 300 Spartans, 400 Thebans,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_133" id="Page_133">[133]</a></span> -700 Thespians, 1,000 Phocians and 3,000 from various -Grecian States, posted behind a barricade built across -the entrance.</p> - -<p>This celebrated defile is about a mile in length. It -runs between Mount Oeta and an impassible morass, -which forms the edge of the Gulf of Malia and at each -end is so narrow that a wagon can barely pass.</p> - -<p>Xerxes at once sent a herald who demanded of the -Grecians the surrender of their arms, to which Leonidas -replied:</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>“<i>Come and take them.</i>”</p> - -</div> - -<p>On the fifth day the Persian army attacked, but was -unable to force an entrance into the pass. On the sixth -day the Persian Immortals likewise were repulsed, and on -the seventh day these troops again failed.</p> - -<p>That night Ephialtes, a Malian, informed Xerxes of a -foot path around the mountains to the westward, and a -Persian detachment was sent by a night march en -surprise against the Grecian rear. On the approach of -this hostile body, the Phocians, who had been detailed -by Leonidas to guard this path, abandoned their post -without fighting and fled to the summit of the mountains, -leaving the way open to the enemy, who, wasting no -time in pursuit, at once marched against the rear of the -Grecian position.</p> - -<p>At the command of Leonidas, all his allies, with the -exception of the 700 Thespians, who refused to leave -him, abandoned Thermopolae in haste and returned -safely to their own countries.</p> - -<p>Xerxes waited until day was well advanced and his -detachment had taken post upon the Grecian rear. -Then both Persian columns attacked simultaneously. -The first part of this final conflict was fought outside -and to the north of the barricade. Leonidas being<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_134" id="Page_134">[134]</a></span> -slain and their numbers reduced over half, the remaining -Greeks retired behind the barricade and took post upon -a slight elevation, where one after another they were -killed by arrows and javelins. The four days of fighting -cost the Persians over 20,000 of their best troops.</p> - -<p>Upon the summit of the hill where the Spartans perished -a marble lion was erected, bearing the inscription:</p> - -<div class="poetry-container"> -<div class="poetry"> -<div class="stanza"> -<div class="verse">“Go tell the Lacedymonians, O, Stranger,</div> -<div class="verse">That we died here in obedience to the law.”</div> -</div> -</div> -</div> - -<p>A second inscription engraved upon a stone column -erected upon the scene of conflict read:</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>“Upon this spot four thousand Pelleponesians contended -against three hundred myriads.”</p> - -</div> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>The largest army commanded by Epaminondas was -about 70,000 men. Alexander the Great, after Arbela, -had 135,000 trained troops. Hannibal never led more -than 60,000 men in action, nor Caesar more than 80,000. -Gustavus Adolphus, just before Lutzen, marshalled -75,000 of the best soldiers in the world under the banners -of Protestantism. Turenne never fought with more -than 40,000 troops; Prince Eugene often had 150,000 -in hand, and Frederic the Great several times commanded -200,000 men. At Yorktown, Washington had 16,000 -Continentals, 6,000 French regulars and 18,000 Provincial -volunteers: Napoleon’s largest army, that of the -Austerlitz campaign, consisted of 180,000 men, while -von Moltke personally directed at Sadowa, 250,000 men; -at Gravelotte, 211,000 men and at Sedan, 200,000 men.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>Perfection in Numbers is attained whenever the kindred -army has the most troops in the theatre of decisive action.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_135" id="Page_135">[135]</a></span></p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapterhead"> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_136" id="Page_136">[136]</a></span></p> - -<p class="chapterhead" id="TIME">TIME</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_137" id="Page_137">[137]</a></span></p> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“You lose the time for action in frivolous deliberations. -Your generals instead of appearing at the head of your -armies, parade in processions and add splendor to public -ceremonies. Your armies are composed of mercenaries, -the dregs of foreign nations, vile robbers, a terror only to -yourselves and your allies. Indecision and confusion prevail -in your counsels; your projects have neither plan nor -foresight. You are the slaves of circumstance and opportunities -continually escape you. You hurry aimlessly -hither and thither and arrive only in time to witness the -success of your enemy.”—Demosthenes.</i></p> - -</div> - -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_138" id="Page_138">[138]</a></span></p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_139" id="Page_139">[139]</a></span></p> - -<h2>TIME</h2> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“That greatest of all advantages—TIME!”—Frederic the Great.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Ask me for anything except—TIME.”—Napoleon.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Time is the cradle of hope, the grave of ambition, the -solitary counsel of the wise and the stern corrector of fools. -Wisdom walks before it, opportunities with it and repentance -behind it. He that hath made it his friend hath -nothing to fear from his enemies, but he that hath made it -his enemy hath little to hope even from his friends.”—Anon.</i></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p class="hanging"><i>The absolute advantage of Time consists in being able to -move while the adversary must remain stationary.</i></p> - -<p class="hanging"><i>The conditioned advantage in Time i.e., the Initiative, -consists in artificially restricting the adverse ability to move.</i></p> - -<p>Advantage in Time is divided into two classes:</p> - -<ul> -<li>I. The Initiative.</li> -<li>II. Absolute.</li> -</ul> - -<p>The Initiative treats of restrictions to the movements -of an army, due to the necessity of supporting, covering -or sustaining Points or corps d’armee, menaced with -capture by adverse corps offensive.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_140" id="Page_140">[140]</a></span></p> - -<p>The absolute advantage in Time is the ability to move, -while the adverse army must remain immovable.</p> - -<p>Whenever the right to move is unrestricted, any desired -Piece may be moved to any desired Point.</p> - -<p>But whenever the right to move is restricted it follows -that the Piece desired cannot be moved; or, that if -moved it cannot be moved to the desired Point; or, that a -piece not desired, must be moved and usually to a Point -not desired.</p> - -<p>Such restrictions of the right to move, quickly produce -fatal defects in the kindred Formation; and from -the fact that such fatal defects in Formation can be produced -by restricting the right to move, arises the inestimable -value of the advantage in Time.</p> - -<p>Perfection in Time is attained whenever the kindred -army is able to move while the hostile army must remain -stationary.</p> - -<p>The object of the active or absolute advantage in -Time always is to remain with the Initiative, or Passive -Advantage in Time; which consists in operating by the -movement made, such menaces, as compel the enemy:</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. To move corps d’armee which he otherwise would -not move and</li> -<li>2. Prevents him from moving corps d’armee which -he otherwise would move.</li> -</ul> - -<h3>PRINCIPLE</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Given superior brute strength and no matter how blunderingly -and clumsily it be directed, it always will end by -accomplishing its purpose, unless it is opposed by Skill.</i></p> - -<p>Skill is best manifested by the proper use of Time. -Such ability is acquired only through study and experience, -guided by reflection, and it can be retained only -by systematic and unremitting practice.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_141" id="Page_141">[141]</a></span></p> - -<p>Most people imagine that Skill is to be attained merely -from study; many believe it but the natural and necessary -offshoot of long experience; and there are some of the -opinion that dilettante dabbling in book lore is an all-sufficient -substitute for that sustained and laborious -mental and physical effort, which alone can make perfect -in the competitive arts.</p> - -<p>Only by employing his leisure in reflection upon the -events of the Past can one get to understand those -things which make for success in Warfare and in Chessplay, -and develop that all-essential ability to detect -equivalents in any situation.</p> - -<p>For in action there is no time for such reflection, much -less for development.</p> - -<p>Then, moments of value inestimable for the achieving -of results are not to be wasted in the weighing and comparison -of things, whose relative importance should be -discerned in the twinkling of an eye, by reason of prior -familiarity with similar conditions.</p> - -<p>The relative advantage in time possessed by one army -over an opposing army always can be determined by the -following, viz.:</p> - -<h3>RULE</h3> - -<ul> -<li>1. <i>That army which is in motion while the opposing -army must remain stationary has the absolute advantage in -Time.</i></li> -<li>2. <i>That army which although at rest can dictate the -movement of an opposing army in motion has the conditioned -advantage in Time, i.e., the Initiative.</i></li> -</ul> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“One may lose more by letting slip a decisive opportunity -than afterwards can be gained by ten battles.”—Gustavus Adolphus.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“It is the exact moment that must be seized; one minute -too soon or too late and the movement is utterly futile.”—Napoleon.</i></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_142" id="Page_142">[142]</a></span></p> - -<h3 id="TIME_EXAMPLES">MILITARY EXAMPLES</h3> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“The movements of an army should be characterized by -decision and rapidity.”—Hannibal.</i></p> - -</div> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“In order to escape from a dilemma it first of all is necessary -to gain Time.”—Napoleon.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p>Thebes having revolted, Alexander the Great marched -400 miles in fourteen days; attacked and captured the -city and razed it to the ground (335 B.C.) sparing only -the house and family of Pindar, the poet; massacred all -males capable of bearing arms and sold 30,000 women and -children into slavery.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>To gain time to occupy the Strategic center and to -cut the communications with Rome of the army of the -Consul Flaminius, Hannibal marched his army for three -days and nights through the marshes of the Po.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Caesar marched from Rome to Sierra-Modena in -Spain, a distance of 1350 miles in twenty-three days.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Frederic the Great in order to gain time usually -marched at midnight.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Bonaparte finished his first Italian campaign by winning -the battles of St. Michaels, Rivoli and Mantua, -marching 200 miles and taking 20,000 prisoners, all in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_143" id="Page_143">[143]</a></span> -less than four days. In 1805, the French infantry in the -manoeuvres which captured 60,000 Austrians, marched -from 25 to 30 miles a day. In 1806 the French infantry -pursued the Prussians at the same speed. In 1814, -Napoleon’s army marched at the rate of 30 miles per day, -besides fighting a battle every 24 hours. Retrograding -for the succor of Paris, Napoleon marched 75 miles in -thirty-six hours. On the return from Elba, 1815, the -Imperial Guard marched 50 miles the first day, 200 miles -in six days and reached Paris, a distance of 600 miles, in -twenty days.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“The fate of a battle always is decided by the lack of the -few minutes required to bring separated bodies of troops into -co-operation.”—Napoleon.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_144" id="Page_144">[144]</a></span></p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapterhead"> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_145" id="Page_145">[145]</a></span></p> - -<p class="chapterhead" id="POSITION">POSITION</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_146" id="Page_146">[146]</a></span></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_147" id="Page_147">[147]</a></span></p> - -<h2>POSITION</h2> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“War is a business of position.”—Napoleon.</i></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>By the term Position is signified those relative advantages -and disadvantages in location, which appertain -to the aggregate posts occupied by the kindred army, as -compared with the aggregate posts occupied by the adverse -army.</p> - -<p>Advantages and disadvantages in Position are of three -classes, viz.:</p> - -<ul> -<li>(a) Those which appertain to the Column of Attack</li> -<li>(b) Those which appertain to the Column of Support.</li> -<li>(c) Those which appertain to the Column of Manoeuvre.</li> -</ul> - -<h3>STRATEGETIC SITUATIONS</h3> - -<p>A Strategic Situation, and whether in warfare or in -Chess-play, is produced by the presence, in any Strategetic -Plane, <i>i.e.</i>, theatre of conflict, of two or more opposing -Strategetic Entireties, <i>i.e.</i>, contending armies.</p> - -<p>These latter are of four classifications and are denominated -as follows:</p> - -<ul> -<li>(a) The Kindred Determinate Force.</li> -<li>(b) The Adverse Determinate Force.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_148" id="Page_148">[148]</a></span></li> -<li>(c) The Kindred Hypothetical Force.</li> -<li>(d) The Adverse Hypothetical Force.</li> -</ul> - -<h4>RULE I</h4> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Given the Strategetic Entireties present in a given Strategetic -Situation, designate the opposing Prime Strategetic -Factors and express the relative values of each in the terms of -the Strategic Syllogism.</i></p> - -<h5>THE STRATEGIC SYLLOGISM</h5> - -<p>Having classified the existing Strategetic Situation, it -is necessary next to designate the opposing Columns of -Attack, of Support, and of Manoeuvre.</p> - -<p>Then, by comparing these Prime Strategetic Factors, -to determine the net advantage, disadvantage, or equality -that exist between them and to express this condition in -the terms of the resulting Strategic Syllogism.</p> - -<p>In the construction of a Strategic Syllogism, the -Strategic, <i>i.e.</i>, the positional value of each of the opposing -Prime Strategetic Factors contained in a given Strategetic -Situation, is expressed in terms made up of letters -and symbols, viz.,</p> - -<table summary="Explanation of the notation"> - <tr> - <td>A</td> - <td>Signifies</td> - <td>Column of Attack.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>S</td> - <td><span class="ditto">”</span></td> - <td>Column of Support.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>M</td> - <td><span class="ditto">”</span></td> - <td>Column of Manoeuvre.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>+</td> - <td><span class="ditto">”</span></td> - <td>Advantage in Position.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>-</td> - <td><span class="ditto">”</span></td> - <td>Disadvantage in Position.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>=</td> - <td><span class="ditto">”</span></td> - <td>Equality in Position.</td> - </tr> -</table> - -<p>The positional values of the several Prime Strategetic -Factors are obtained as follows:</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_149" id="Page_149">[149]</a></span></p> - -<h6>COLUMN OF ATTACK</h6> - -<p>That Column of Attack which is posted upon the superior -Strategic front as compared to the front occupied by -the immediately opposing formation (cf, Grand Tactics, -pp. 117 to 275), has the advantage in position.</p> - -<p>This relative advantage and disadvantage in position -of the Column of Attack is expressed by the first term of -the Strategic Syllogism, viz.:</p> - -<p class="center">(I.)</p> - -<table summary="Relative advantage and disadvantage in position of the Column of Attack"> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">+A</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdr">-A</td> - </tr> -</table> - -<p class="noindent">or</p> - -<p class="center">(II.)</p> - -<table summary="Relative advantage and disadvantage in position of the Column of Attack"> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">-A</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdr">+A</td> - </tr> -</table> - -<p>In the first instance (I), the White Column of Attack -has the advantage and the Black formation has the -disadvantage; in the second case (II), this condition is -reversed.</p> - -<h6>COLUMN OF SUPPORT</h6> - -<p>A Column of Support has the superiority in position, -as compared with the adverse Column of Support, -whenever it contains more than the latter of the following -advantages, viz.:</p> - -<ul> -<li>I. One, or more, Passed Pawns.</li> -<li>II. Two united Pawns, overlapping an adverse Pawn.</li> -<li>III. Two isolated Pawns adjacent to a single adverse -Pawn.</li> -<li>IV. Three, or more, united Pawns at their fifth -squares, opposed by a like number of adverse -Pawns posted on their Normal Base Line.</li> -<li>V. A majority of kindred Pawns on that side of the -Board farthest from the adverse King.</li> -</ul> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_150" id="Page_150">[150]</a></span></p> - -<p>The relative advantage and disadvantage of one Column -of Support, over the opposing Column of Support, -is expressed by the second term of the Strategic Syllogism, -thus:</p> - -<p class="center">(I.)</p> - -<table summary="Relative advantage and disadvantage in position of the Column of Support"> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">+S</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdr">-S</td> - </tr> -</table> - -<p class="noindent">or</p> - -<p class="center">(II.)</p> - -<table summary="Relative advantage and disadvantage in position of the Column of Support"> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">-S</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdr">+S</td> - </tr> -</table> - -<p>In the first case (I), White has the advantage and -Black has the disadvantage. In the second case (II), -this condition is reversed.</p> - -<h6>COLUMN OF MANOEUVRE</h6> - -<p>Columns of Manoeuvre are not compared with each -other. The advantage of one over another is determined -by comparing their respective powers of resistance to the -attack of the corresponding adverse Columns of Support.</p> - -<p>That Column of Manoeuvre which longest can debar -the adverse promotable Factors from occupying a point -of junction on the kindred Strategetic Rear, has the advantage.</p> - -<p>The relative advantage and disadvantage of the column -of Manoeuvre is expressed by the third term of the -Strategic Syllogism, viz.:</p><p class="center">(I.)</p> - -<table summary="Relative advantage and disadvantage in position of the Column of Manoeuvre"> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">+M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdr">-M</td> - </tr> -</table> - -<p class="noindent">or</p> - -<p class="center">(II.)</p> - -<table summary="Relative advantage and disadvantage in position of the Column of Manoeuvre"> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">-M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdr">+M</td> - </tr> -</table> - -<p>In the first case (I), White, has the advantage and -Black the disadvantage. In the second case (II), this -condition is reversed.</p> - -<p>In recording the values of the opposing Prime Strategetic<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_151" id="Page_151">[151]</a></span> -Factors, the terms relating to White are written -above and those relating to Black, below the line.</p> - -<p>The terms expressing the relative values of the Columns -of Attack always are placed at the left; those for the -Columns of Support in the center, and those for the -Columns of Manoeuvre at the right.</p> - -<p>The Strategic Syllogisms are twenty-seven in number -and are formulated, viz.:</p> - -<h5>TABLE OF STRATEGIC SYLLOGISMS</h5> - -<table summary="Strategic syllogisms"> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 1.</td> - <td class="tdc">+A+S+M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">-A-S-M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 2.</td> - <td class="tdc">+A+S=M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">-A-S=M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 3.</td> - <td class="tdc">+A+S-M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">-A-S+M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 4.</td> - <td class="tdc">+A=S+M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">-A=S-M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 5.</td> - <td class="tdc">+A=S=M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">-A=S=M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 6.</td> - <td class="tdc">+A=S-M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">-A=S+M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 7.</td> - <td class="tdc">+A-S+M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">-A+S-M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 8.</td> - <td class="tdc">+A-S=M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">-A+S=M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 9.</td> - <td class="tdc">+A-S-M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">-A+S+M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 10.</td> - <td class="tdc">=A+S+M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">=A-S-M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 11.</td> - <td class="tdc">=A+S=M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">=A-S=M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 12.</td> - <td class="tdc">=A+S-M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">=A-S+M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 13.</td> - <td class="tdc">=A=S+M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">=A=S-M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 14.</td> - <td class="tdc">=A=S=M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">=A=S=M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_152" id="Page_152">[152]</a></span>No. 15.</td> - <td class="tdc">=A=S-M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">=A=S+M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 16.</td> - <td class="tdc">=A-S+M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">=A+S-M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 17.</td> - <td class="tdc">=A-S=M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">=A+S=M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 18.</td> - <td class="tdc">=A-S-M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">=A+S+M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 19.</td> - <td class="tdc">-A+S+M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">+A-S-M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 20.</td> - <td class="tdc">-A+S=M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">+A-S=M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 21.</td> - <td class="tdc">-A+S-M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">+A-S+M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 22.</td> - <td class="tdc">-A=S+M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">+A=S-M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 23.</td> - <td class="tdc">-A=S=M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">+A=S=M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 24.</td> - <td class="tdc">-A=S-M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">+A=S+M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 25.</td> - <td class="tdc">-A-S+M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">+A+S-M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 26.</td> - <td class="tdc">-A-S=M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">+A+S=M</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">No. 27.</td> - <td class="tdc">-A-S-M</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">+A+S+M</td> - </tr> -</table> - -<h5><i>STRATEGIC ELEMENTALS.</i></h5> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Each of the terms contained in the Strategic Syllogism -should have its counterpart in a tangible and competent -mass of troops.</i></p> - -<p>This principle of Strategetics, when applied to warfare, -is absolute, and admits of no exception. The catastrophies -sustained by the French armies in the campaigns -of 1812, 1813, 1814 and 1815 are each and every one -directly due to the persistent violation by Napoleon of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_153" id="Page_153">[153]</a></span> -this basic truth, in devolving the duties of a column of -support and a column of manoeuvre upon a single Strategic -Elemental.</p> - -<p>In solemn contrast to that fatal and indefensible rashness -which cost Napoleon five great armies and ultimately -his crown, is the dictum by one whose transcendent -success in warfare, is the antithesis of the utter -ruination which terminated the career of the famous -Corsican.</p> - -<p>Says Frederic the Great:</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>“<i>I adhere to those universal laws which all the elements -obey; these, for me are sufficient.</i>”</p> - -</div> - -<p>Singularly enough, it seemingly has escaped the notice -of the great in warfare, owing to the subtle mathematical -construction of the Chess-board, its peculiar relations -to the moves of the Chess-pieces, and of the latter -to each other, that:</p> - -<h3>PRINCIPLE</h3> - -<p class="hanging">I. <i>The functions of all three terms contained in a -Strategic Syllogism may be combined in a single chess -Pawn, and, that:</i></p> - -<p class="hanging">II. <i>All three functions are contemplated in and should -be expressed by every movement of every Chess-piece; and -every move upon the Chess-board is weak and unscientific, to -the extent that it disregards either of these obligations.</i></p> - -<p>Those advantages in position, which are denoted by -the plus signs of the Strategic Syllogism, have their -material manifestation upon the surface of the earth by -Corps d’armee, and by Pieces which are equivalents of -these latter, upon the Chess-board.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_154" id="Page_154">[154]</a></span></p> - -<p>The <i>sign +A in the Strategic Syllogism</i> denotes the -superior Strategic Front. That point whose occupation -by a kindred piece demonstrates such superiority in -position is termed the <i>Key of Position</i>. The kindred -Corps occupying such point constitutes a <i>Corps en Line</i>, -and is termed the <i>First Strategic Elemental</i>.</p> - -<p>The <i>sign +S in the Strategic Syllogism</i> denotes the -<i>larger number</i> of pawn altitudes open to the kindred -promotable factors. Those points occupied by such -kindred promotable factors are termed <i>Logistic Origins</i>. -The kindred Corps which occupy such points constitute -<i>Corps en Route</i> and collectively are termed the <i>Second -Strategic Elemental</i>. The objective of Corps en Route -always is the Kindred Logistic Horizon.</p> - -<p>The <i>sign +M in the Strategic Syllogism</i> denotes that -the <i>shortest</i> open pawn altitude is occupied by a kindred -promotable factor. Such kindred promotable factor is -termed the <i>Corps en Touch</i>, and the point occupied by -such Corps is termed the <i>Point of Proximity</i>. The -Objective of such Corps always is a designated Point -of Junction in the Kindred Logistic Horizon, and such -Corps constitutes the <i>Third Strategic Elemental</i>.</p> - -<p>In Warfare it is imperative that each of these Strategic -Elementals be represented by one or more Corps d’armee. -But it is a second peculiarity of the Chessic mechanism -that a single Chessic Corps d’armee may represent in -itself, one, two or three Strategic Elementals and thus -constitute even the entire <i>Strategic Ensemble</i>.</p> - -<p>Hence, in Chess play, the Strategic Ensemble may be -either single, double, or triple, viz.:</p> - -<p>A Single Strategic Ensemble consists either of:</p> - -<ul> -<li>(a) 1. Major Vertex.</li> -<li class="isub1">2. Grand Vertex.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_155" id="Page_155">[155]</a></span></li> -<li>(b) Logistic Origin.</li> -<li>(c) Point of Proximity.</li> -</ul> - -<p>A <i>Double Strategic Ensemble</i> consists of either:</p> - -<ul> -<li>(a) 1. Major Vertex, plus a Kindred Logistic Origin.</li> -<li class="isub1">2. Grand Vertex, plus a Kindred Logistic Origin.</li> -<li>(b) 1. Major Vertex, plus a Kindred Point of Proximity.</li> -<li class="isub1">2. Grand Vertex, plus a Kindred Point of Proximity.</li> -<li>(c) Logistic Origin, plus a Kindred Point of Proximity.</li> -</ul> - -<p>A <i>Triple Strategic Ensemble</i> consists of:</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. Major Vertex, plus a Kindred Logistic Origin, plus -a Kindred Point of Proximity.</li> -<li>2. Grand Vertex, plus a Kindred Point of Proximity, -plus a Kindred Logistic Origin.</li> -</ul> - -<h3>PRINCIPLE</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>The relative positional advantage expressed by the plus -signs of the Strategic Syllogism decreases as the number of -plus signs in the Strategic Syllogism exceeds the number of -corresponding Strategic Elementals.</i></p> - -<p>Failure to observe the amalgamation of the duties of -the three Grand Columns in each and every move upon -the Chess-board, and to note that the tangible and material -expression of these powers and advantages may be -expressed either by three, by two, or even by a single -Chessic Corps d’armee, has caused doubt of the exact<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_156" id="Page_156">[156]</a></span> -analogy between Chess and War; and hence a like doubt -of the utility of Chess-play.</p> - -<p>Recognizing the truth of the foregoing, the Asiatic -conqueror, Tamerlane, sought to rectify this discrepancy -between the mechanism of Chess and that of War, by -increasing the size of the Chess-board to one hundred -and forty-four squares, and the number of pieces to -forty-eight.</p> - -<p>By this innovation the geometric harmony existing -between the Dynamic and the Static surfaces of the -Chess-board was destroyed; and this without substituting -therefor another like condition of mathematic perfection. -Ultimately, this remedy was abandoned, a fate which -sooner or later, has overtaken all attempts to improve -that superlative intellectual exercise of which says -Voltaire:</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>“Of all games, Chess does most honor to the human -mind.”</p> - -</div> - -<p>The reason why the scheme devised by Tamerlane did -not satisfy even himself, and why all attempted alterations -in the machinery of Chess prove unacceptable in -practice, is due to the present perfect adaptation of the -Board and the Pieces for exemplifying the processes of -Strategetic Art.</p> - -<p>Any change in the construction of the Chess-board and -the Chess-pieces, to be effective, must largely increase -the number of Chessmen, correspondingly increase the -number of squares, and equally so, increase the number of -moves permitted to each player at his turn to play.</p> - -<p>That is to say: Such innovation to be correct must -permit each player at his turn to play to move one of the -Corps d’armee contained in the Column of Attack, a -second in the Column of Support, and a third in the -Column of Manoeuvre. Necessarily, the number of -pieces must be increased in order to provide Corps<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_157" id="Page_157">[157]</a></span> -d’armee for the make-up of each Grand Column, and obviously, -the Board must be sufficiently enlarged to accommodate -not merely this increased mass, but also to -permit full scope for the increased number of possible -movements.</p> - -<p class="hanging"><i>The student thus readily will perceive, that it is only one -step from such an elaboration of Chess, to an army and -the theatre of actual campaigning.</i></p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Perfection in Position is attained whenever the kindred -army is acting or is posted as a unit, while the hostile -army is not so posted nor able so to act.</p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_158" id="Page_158">[158]</a></span></p> - -<h3 id="POSITION_EXAMPLES">MILITARY EXAMPLES</h3> - -<h4>COLUMN OF ATTACK</h4> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Frontal attacks are to be avoided, and the preference -always is to be given to the assault of a single wing, with -your center and remaining wing held back; because if your -attack is successful you equally destroy the enemy without -the risk of being routed if you fail.”—Frederic the Great.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p>At Leuctra and Mantinea, Epaminondas won by the -oblique or Strategic order of battle. Alexander the -Great won by the same order at Issus and the Haspades. -Cyrus won at Thymbra and Hannibal won at Trebia, -Thrasymene, Cannae and Herdonea, by the three sides -of an octagon or enveloping formation. Caesar won by -the oblique order at Pharsaleus.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Gustavus Adolphus won at Leipsic by acting from the -Tactical Center and Turenne and Prince Eugene gained -their victories by the same means.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Frederic the Great won at Hohenfriedberg, Sohr, -Rosbach, Leuthern, Zorndorf and Leignitz by the oblique -order and at Torgau by acting from the tactical center.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Washington won at Trenton and Princeton acting by -three contiguous sides of an octagon.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_159" id="Page_159">[159]</a></span></p> - -<p>Bonaparte won at Montenotte, Castiglione, Arcola, -Rivoli, Ulm, Austerlitz, Jena, Friedland, Wagram and -Ligny, by acting from the tactical center. Never did -he attack by the oblique order of battle.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Von Moltke’s victories all were won by acting in strict -accord with the system laid down for the use of the -Prussian army by Frederic the Great.</p> - -<h4>COLUMN OF SUPPORT</h4> - -<p>The most magnificent illustration both of the proper -and of the improper use of the Column of Support is -found in that Grand Operation executed by the Roman -consuls, Claudius Nero and Marcus Livius, whereby -the Carthagenian Army under Hasdrubal was destroyed -at the river Metaurus 207 B.C.</p> - -<p>Hannibal, with the main Carthagenian army, posted -in the south of Italy near Canusium, was observed by -Nero and his troops; while in the west, Hasdrubal, -observed by Livius was slowly advancing southward to -form a junction with his brother, a most unscientific -procedure.</p> - -<p>Livius permitted Hasdrubal to penetrate into Italy to a -point a few miles south of the Metaurus River; whereupon -Nero, taking 7,000 of his best troops, by a rapid march -of 200 miles united with Livius; and the two consuls at -once falling upon Hasdrubal utterly annihilated the -Carthagenian army. Nero returned at all speed and -the first news of his march and of the death blow to the -Carthagenian projects against Rome was furnished by -the sight of his brother’s head, which Nero cast into -Hannibal’s camp from a military machine.</p> - -<p>The true method for uniting the Columns of Support<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_160" id="Page_160">[160]</a></span> -to a Column of Attack is thus shown by Gustavus -Adolphus:</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>“We encamped about Nuremberg the middle of June, -the army after so many detachments was not above -11,000 infantry and 8,000 horse and dragoons. The -King posted his army in the suburbs and drew intrenchments -around the circumference so that he begirt the -whole city with his army. His works were large, the -ditch deep, planked by innumerable bastions, ravelins, -horn-works, forts, redoubts, batteries and palisades, the -incessant labor of 8000 men for fourteen days.</p> - -<p>“On the 30th of June the Imperialists, joined to the -Bavarian army arrived and sat down 60,000 strong, -between the city and the friendly states; in order to -intercept the King’s provisions and to starve him out.</p> - -<p>“The King had three great detachments and several -smaller ones, acting abroad, reducing to his power the -castles and towns of the adjacent countries and these he -did not hasten to join him until their work was done.</p> - -<p>“The two chief armies had now lain for five or six -weeks in sight of each other and the King thinking all -was ready, ordered his generals to join him. Gustavus -Horn was on the Moselle, Chancellor Oxenstern about -Mentz and Cologne and Dukes William and Bernard -and Gen. Bannia in Bavaria.</p> - -<p>“Our friends were not backward in obeying the King’s -command, and having drawn together their forces from -various parts and <i>ALL</i> joined the chancellor Oxenstern, -they set out in full march for Nuremburg, where they -arrived Aug. 21, being 30,000 old soldiers commanded -by officers of the greatest conduct and experience in the -world.”</p> - -</div> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Only once, at the battle of Torgau, (Nov. 5, 1760) -did Frederick the Great rely upon the co-operation of his -Columns of Support for victory.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_161" id="Page_161">[161]</a></span></p> - -<p>As the result, his Column of Attack of 25,000 men -fought the entire battle and was so ruined by the fire and -sabres of 90,000 enemies and 400 pieces of artillery that, -as the sun went down the King charged at the head -of two battalions, his sole remaining troops. At this -moment Gen. Zeithen, with the Column of Support, of -22,000 men occupied Siptka Hill, the tactical key of the -battlefield, and fired a salvo of artillery to inform the -King of their presence. The astonished Austrians turned -and fled; the King’s charge broke their line of battle and -Frederic grasped a victory, “for which” says Napoleon, -“he was indebted to Fortune and the only one in which -he displayed no talent.”</p> - -<p>This comment of course is not true. Frederic displayed -magnificent talent that day, by holding in check -a force of thrice his numbers and so shattering it by his -incessant attacks that it crumbled to pieces before the -mere presence and at sight of his fresh and vigorous -Column of Support. Had Napoleon displayed such -talent in the personal conduct of battles during 1813, 1814 -and 1815 it is possible that he would have terminated his -career at some other place than at St. Helena.</p> - -<p>The experience, however, was enough to fully satisfy -Frederic, and never again did he attempt a Logistic -battle.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>The capture of Lord Cornwallis at Yorktown is perhaps -the nearest approach to the achievement of Nero -and Livius in the annals of the military art. Decoyed -by the retrograde movements of Gen. Greene, the British -army was deluded into taking up a position at Yorktown, -having the unfordable James River in rear, and within -striking distance of the main American army under -Washington about New York City.</p> - -<p>Lafayette was ordered to reinforce Greene; Count<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_162" id="Page_162">[162]</a></span> -d’Esting was induced to bring the French fleet from the -West Indies to Chesapeake Bay to prevent the rescue of -Cornwallis by British coming by the ocean, and Count -Rochambeau was requested to join Washington with the -French army then in Rhode Island.</p> - -<p>All this took time, but everything was executed like -clockwork. The French fleet arrived in the Chesapeake; -the next day came a British fleet to rescue the Earl’s -army. In the naval fight which ensued, the British were -driven to sea and so damaged as to compel their return -to New York. By a swift march, Washington, with his -Continentals and the French, joined Greene and Lafayette, -and two of his redoubts being taken by storm, -Lord Cornwallis surrendered. This victory established -the independence of the American Colonies.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>The Logistic Battle, <i>i.e.</i>, the combination of the Columns -of Attack and of Support was first favorite with -Napoleon and to his partiality for this particular form -of the tactical offensive was due both the spectacular -successes and the annihilating catastrophes which mark -his astonishing career.</p> - -<p>The retrieving of his lost battle of Marengo, by the -fortuitous arrival of Dessaix column, seems to have impressed -Napoleon to the extent that he ever after -preferred to win by such process, rather than by any -other.</p> - -<p>The first attempt to put his new hypothesis into practice -was at Jena. Single handed his column of attack -destroyed the Prussian main body, while Davoust with -the column of manoeuvre held in check over three times -his numbers.</p> - -<p>The French Column of Support under Bernadotte did -not arrive in season to fire a shot.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_163" id="Page_163">[163]</a></span></p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>At Eylau, the French Column of Support under Davoust -was four hours in advancing six miles against the -opposition of the Russian general Doctoroff. The second -French Column of Support under Ney did not reach the -field until the battle was over.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>In the retreat from Russia, the French Column of -Support under the Duke of Belluno was driven from its -position at Smolensko, thus permitting the Russians -under Kutosof to occupy the Strategic center, which -disaster cost Napoleon 30,000 men in clearing his communications.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>In 1813, the Column of Support under Ney at Bautzen -was misdirected and the battle rendered indecisive by its -lack of co-operation with the French Column of Attack.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>In 1814, Napoleon conformed to the Art by acting in -three columns, but yielding to his besetting military sin, -he joined his Column of Support to his Column of Attack -and through the open space thus created in the French -Strategetic Front, Blucher advanced triumphantly to -Paris.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>In the Waterloo campaign, Napoleon properly began -with three Grand Columns. At the battle of Ligny, his -Column of Support arrived upon Blucher’s left flank and -then without firing a shot, wheeled about and marched -away.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_164" id="Page_164">[164]</a></span></p> - -<p>At Waterloo, by uniting his Columns of Attack and of -Support prematurely, Napoleon permitted Blucher to -penetrate the French Strategetic Front and to win in -the same manner and as decisively as he did at Paris.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Von Moltke won the battle of Sadowa by the arrival of -the Prussian Column of Support, commanded by Prince -Frederic William. But in the interim, the German main -army was driven in several miles by the Austrians, and -Prince Bismark’s first white hairs date from that day.</p> - -<h4>COLUMN OF MANOEUVRE</h4> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“A small body of brave and expert men, skillfully handled -and favored by the ground, easily may render difficult the -advance of a large army.”—Frederic the Great.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p>At the river Metaurus, the Roman Consul Livius gave -a fine example of the duties of a Column of Manoeuvre -which are slowly and securely to retreat before an advancing -enemy and never to be induced into a pitched -battle until the arrival of the kindred main body.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Frederic the Great made great use of Columns of -Manoeuvre. In the Seven Years War he constantly -maintained such a column against the armies of each -State with whom Prussia was at war; while himself and -his brother Henry operated as Columns of Attack.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>In the Revolutionary War, Washington maintained a -Column of Manoeuvre against the British in Rhode<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_165" id="Page_165">[165]</a></span> -Island, another against the British in the south and a -third against the hostile Indian tribes of the southwest.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>Napoleon constantly used Columns of Manoeuvre in -all his campaigns; notably at Montenotte, Castiglione, -Arcole, Rivoli, Ulm, Austerlitz, Jena, in 1812, 1813, 1814 -and at Ligny and Waterloo in 1815.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_166" id="Page_166">[166]</a></span></p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapterhead"> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_167" id="Page_167">[167]</a></span></p> - -<p class="chapterhead" id="PRIME_STRATEGETIC_MEANS">PRIME STRATEGETIC MEANS</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_168" id="Page_168">[168]</a></span></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_169" id="Page_169">[169]</a></span></p> - -<h2>PRIME STRATEGETIC MEANS</h2> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“It is necessary exactly to weigh the means we possess in -opposition to the enemy in order to determine beforehand -which must ultimately predominated.”—Frederic the Great.</i></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Those elemental quantities whose comparative values are -determined by Grand Reconnaissance and which are -termed: Organization, Topography, Mobility, Numbers, -Time, and Position, collectively constitute Prime Strategetic -Means whose proper employment is the basis of -every true Prime Strategetic Process.</i></p> - -<h3>POLICY OF CAMPAIGN</h3> - -<p>That relative advantage in Numbers expressed by the -larger aggregate of Chess-pieces is materially manifested -upon the Chess-board by additional geometric and sub-geometric -symbols.</p> - -<p>Excess or deficiency in Numbers determines the policy -of Campaign. The policy of the inferior force is:</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_170" id="Page_170">[170]</a></span></p> - -<ul> -<li>1. To preserve intact its Corps d’armee, and</li> -<li>2. To engage in battle only when victory can be -assured by other advantages in Strategetic means, which -nullify the adverse advantage in Numbers; and even then -only when such victory is decisive of the Campaign.</li> -</ul> - -<p>Hence, the policy of Campaign of that army superior -in Numbers, is:</p> - -<p>Incessantly to proffer battles which:</p> - -<ul> -<li>(a) Accepted, constantly reduces the inferior army -and increases its disproportion in numbers, or,</li> -<li>(b) Evaded, compels the inferior army to abandon -important posts, for whose defence it cannot afford the resulting -loss of troops; thus permitting to the numerically -superior army a continually increasing advantage in -Position.</li> -</ul> - -<h3>PRINCIPLE</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>All else being equal the advantage of Numbers is decisive -of victory in battle and Campaign.</i></p> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Things being unequal, the advantage in Numbers may -be nullified by adverse advantages in Organization, Topography, -Mobility, Time and Position.</i></p> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Victory resulting from advantage in Numbers is -achieved by simultaneously attacking two or more Tactical -Keys from a Kindred Strategic Key and two or more -Kindred Points of Command.</i></p> - -<h4>TO LOCATE THE AREA OF -CONCENTRATION</h4> - -<p>That <i>relative advantage in Mobility</i> expressed by the -situation of the Strategic Front upon the Strategetic -Center is materially manifested upon the Chess-board by -Kindred Chess-pieces posted upon that great central<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_171" id="Page_171">[171]</a></span> -diagonal which extends towards the Objective Plane. -Such advantage determines those points which should be -occupied in the proper development of the front so posted; -and consequently designates the direction and location -of that battlefield upon which the kindred army may concentrate -in overwhelming force, despite all possible -resistance by the enemy.</p> - -<h4>MOST FAVORABLE BATTLEFIELD</h4> - -<p>That <i>relative advantage in Organization</i> expressed by -superior potential totality, is materially manifested upon -the Chess-board by the geometric and sub-geometric -symbols of those Chess-pieces possessed of the superior -potential complement. Such symbols taken in combination, -describe that field of battle most favorable for -the execution of those Major Tactical evolutions which -appertain to the Chess-pieces of superior organization.</p> - -<h4>POSTS OF MAXIMUM SECURITY</h4> - -<p>That <i>relative defensive advantage in Topography</i> expressed -by inaccessibility to hostile attack is materially -manifested upon the Chess-board by Corps of Position, -posted upon points of different color to that occupied -by the adverse Bishop; and this advantage designates -those posts situated on a projected field of battle which -may be occupied with the maximum of security.</p> - -<p>That <i>relative offensive advantage in Topography</i> expressed -by accessibility to kindred attack is materially -manifested upon the Chess-board by Corps of Position -posted upon points of the same color as that occupied -by the kindred Bishop; and this advantage designates -those posts situated on a projected field of battle which -may be attacked with the maximum facility.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_172" id="Page_172">[172]</a></span></p> - -<h4>CHARACTER OF THE MOST FAVORABLE -BATTLE</h4> - -<p>That <i>relative advantage in Position with the Column of -Attack</i>, expressed:</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. By superior location, direction and development -of the Kindred Strategic Front of Operations; and</li> -<li>2. By the occupation of Points of Departure, of -Manoeuvre, of Command and of the Strategic Key of a -True Strategic Horizon, indicates that a Strategic Grand -Battle in the first instance; and in the second case that a -Tactical Grand Battle is most favorable in the existing -situation.</li> -</ul> - -<p>That <i>relative advantage in Position with the Column of -Support</i>, expressed by superior facilities for occupying -with the Kindred Promotable Factors their corresponding -Points of Junction in the Kindred Logistic Horizon, -is materially manifested upon the Chess-board by the -larger number of Pawn Altitudes which either are open, -or may be opened, despite all possible resistance -by the enemy; and such advantage designates those -adverse Points of Impenetrability and Points of Resistance -to the march of the Kindred Promotable Factors, -which it is necessary to nullify.</p> - -<p>That <i>relative advantage in Position with the Column of -Manoeuvre</i>, expressed by the security of the Kindred and -the exposure of the adverse Strategetic Rear to attack -by the Kindred Column of Support, is materially manifested -upon the Chess-board by the occupation by a -Kindred Promotable Factor of the Point of Proximity; -and such advantage indicates that the advance with all -possible celerity of such Promotable Factor and Point -of Proximity toward the corresponding Point of Junction -is a dominating influence in the existing situation.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_173" id="Page_173">[173]</a></span></p> - -<h4>PROJECTED GRAND BATTLE</h4> - -<p>From the advantage in Position appertaining to the -three Grand Columns is deduced the character of the -Grand Battle properly in sequence.</p> - -<p><i>Advantage in Position with the Column of Attack</i> indicates -the opportunity, all else being equal, to engage in a -victorious Strategic Grand Battle against the hostile -Formation in Mass, or in a Tactical Grand Battle against -the hostile Formation by Wings.</p> - -<p><i>Advantage in Position with the Column of Support</i> -indicates the opportunity to engage effectively in a series -of minor battles, as though having the advantage in -Numbers.</p> - -<p><i>Advantage in Position with the Column of Manoeuvre</i> -indicates the opportunity to engage in a victorious -Logistic Grand Battle against the adverse Formation -by Grand Columns.</p> - -<h4>LEAST FAVORABLE ADVERSE CONDITION</h4> - -<p>That <i>relative advantage in Time</i> expressed by restrictions -of the adversary’s choice of movements at his turn -to play, is materially manifested upon the Chess-board by -Feints operated by Kindred Chess-pieces against adverse -vital points; and such advantage of the Initiative dictates -the next move of the opposing army.</p> - -<p>The <i>advantage of the Initiative</i> determines which of the -adverse corps d’armee may and may not move.</p> - -<p>The material expression of this advantage always is a -Feint by a Kindred Corps against a vital point either<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_174" id="Page_174">[174]</a></span> -occupied or unoccupied, which necessitates that upon his -next move, the enemy either evacuate, support, cover or -sustain the post so menaced.</p> - -<p>Such feint, therefore, restricts the move of the enemy -to those of his corps as are able to obviate the threatened -loss and proportionately reduces the immediate activity -of his army.</p> - -<h4>RELATIVE ADVANTAGES IN LOCATION</h4> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“It is only the force brought into action that avails in -battles and campaigns—the rest does not count.”—Napoleon.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p class="hanging"><i>The distance which separates opposing Corps d’armee -always modifies the values of the Prime Strategetic Means.</i></p> - -<p>Hence in the making of Grand Reconnaissance, it is -next in sequence to determine whether the Chess-pieces -are:</p> - -<ul> -<li>I. In Contact.</li> -<li>II. In Presence.</li> -<li>III. At Distance.</li> -</ul> - -<p>Corps d’armee are <i>in Contact</i> with each other whenever -their logistic radii intersect; or, their radii offensive and -the corresponding adverse radii defensive are opposed -to each other.</p> - -<p>Corps d’armee are <i>in Presence</i> whenever the posts -which they occupy are contained within the same Strategic -front, the same Strategetic Horizon, or are in communication -with their corresponding posts of mobilization, -development, or manoeuvre.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_175" id="Page_175">[175]</a></span></p> - -<p>Corps d’armee are <i>at Distance</i> when the posts which -they occupy are not in communication with Kindred -Corps d’armee posted upon the strategic front adopted, -or with posts of mobilization or development contained -within the corresponding Primary Base of Operations, -or, within the True Strategetic Horizon.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_176" id="Page_176">[176]</a></span></p> - -<h4>REQUISITES FOR SUCCESSFUL -CAMPAIGNING</h4> - -<p>Every Campaign, whether upon the surface of the -Earth or upon the Chess-board is decided and usually is -terminated by a Grand Battle.</p> - -<p>Those movements of opposing Grand Columns, whereby -such decisive conflict is brought about under circumstances -which ensure victory, by reason of superior -advantages in Strategetic Means, are termed Grand Manoeuvres; -and a proper series of Grand Manoeuvres, combined -with their corresponding feints, strategems, ambuscades -and minor battles, the whole terminated by a -resulting Grand Battle, is termed a Grand Operation.</p> - -<p>Those processes of Grand Manoeuvre, which produce -an opportunity to victoriously engage in battle, are the -most subtle and difficult known to the Strategetic Art.</p> - -<p><i>Successful application of these processes in practice depends -wholly upon proper use of the MEANS at hand -and the doing of the utmost that can be done in the TIME -available.</i></p> - -<p>Nothing can be more repugnant to high art in Strategetics -than those crudities termed in the specious mouthings -of pretentious mediocrity “waiting moves,” “delayed -strokes,” “defensive-offensives,” “masterly inactivities,” -and the like.</p> - -<p>“Time past is gone and cannot be regained; time future -is not and may never be; time present is” and with it -Opportunity, which an instant later may be gone.</p> - -<p>The gain of but “a foot of ground and a minute of -time” would have saved the French army at Rosbach -and have cost Frederic the Great one of his most lustrous -victories and perhaps his army and his crown.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_177" id="Page_177">[177]</a></span></p> - -<h3>PRINCIPLE</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>In Strategetics there is but a single method whereby Opportunity -may be availed of, and that is by so augmenting kindred -advantages and so depreciating adverse advantages as to -acquire for the kindred army that particular advantage of -Strategetic means which in the given situation is the proper -basis of the Strategetic movement next in sequence.</i></p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<h4><i>At Distance.</i></h4> - -<p class="hanging"><i>The chief requisite for success when acting against an -adverse army at Distance, is the advantage in MOBILITY.</i></p> - -<p>The primary process is that of a Grand Manoeuvre -against an adverse army acting in the formation by -Grand Columns, and the object of such Grand Manoeuvre -always is, by superior celerity of movement, to occupy:</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. The Strategic Center by the Kindred Column of -Attack, thus intersecting the Route of Communication -between the adverse main body and its Base of Operation; -or to occupy:</li> -<li>2. The Logistic Center with the Kindred Columns of -Support and of Manoeuvre, thus intersecting the Route -of Communication between the adverse main body and its -Chief Supporting Column and clearing the way for the -advance of the Kindred Column of Support against the -flank and rear of the adverse Main Body.</li> -</ul> - -<p>Obviously, the united Kindred Columns of Attack -and of Support always will constitute an overwhelming -superiority in Numbers as compared with the adverse -main body.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_178" id="Page_178">[178]</a></span></p> - -<h4><i>In Presence.</i></h4> - -<p class="hanging"><i>The chief requisite for success when acting against an -adverse Grand Column in Presence, is the advantage in -POSITION.</i></p> - -<p>The primary process is that of a Grand Manoeuvre -against an adverse army acting in the Formation by -Wings, and the object of such Grand Manoeuvre always -is, by availing to the uttermost of its situation upon the -Tactical Center, <i>i.e.</i>, upon the area midway between the -adverse Wings thus isolated from each other; to act in -overwhelming Numbers, first against one and then -against the other hostile bodies.</p> - -<h4><i>In Contact.</i></h4> - -<p class="hanging"><i>The chief requisite for success when acting offensively -against an adverse Grand Column, or Wing, or Corps -d’armee, in Contact, is the advantage in NUMBERS.</i></p> - -<p>The primary process is that of a Grand Battle in -which the kindred army has an overwhelming superiority -in Numbers in contact, and at least the equality in all -other Prime Strategetic Means.</p> - -<p>In this circumstance, the object of such Grand Battle -always is:</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. To attack the hostile Formation in Mass frontally -at the center, and upon both wings obliquely; all three -attacks being made simultaneously and the evolutions so -executed that the hostile army never is able to penetrate -between either kindred wing and the kindred center, nor -to outflank that kindred wing which may be in the air.</li> -<li>2. In case the kindred army has the equality or -inferiority in all other Prime Strategetic Means, then the -object of a Grand Battle on the Offensive is to attack the -hostile Formation in Mass obliquely with the whole<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_179" id="Page_179">[179]</a></span> -kindred army, and preferably upon that wing which covers -the route of communication of the adverse army with -its Base of Operations, but always upon that wing which -contains the Tactical Key of the actual Battlefield.</li> -</ul> - -<p>Obviously, the concentration of the entire kindred -army against a single adverse wing always will constitute -an overwhelming superiority in Numbers.</p> - -<p>In making such attack obliquely against a single adverse -wing, the center and remaining wing of the kindred -army must not engage until the kindred Van and Corps -of Position of the attacking wing first have formed the -<i>center</i> of three sides of an octagon; of which the Kindred -Corps of Evolution will form the <i>farthest</i> side and the -Kindred Center and left wing Corps d’armee will form the -<i>nearest</i> and latest constructed side.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p class="hanging"><i>The chief requisite for success when acting defensively -against a Grand Column, or Wing, or Corps d’armee is the -advantage in TOPOGRAPHY.</i></p> - -<p>The primary process is that of a Grand Battle in which -the kindred army, decidedly inferior in Numbers in the -aggregate, has the advantage in Topography and equality -in all other Prime Strategetic Means.</p> - -<p>In this case the object is to support both flanks of the -inferior army upon impassable natural barriers, strengthening -both wings at the expense of the center, both in -quantity and in quality of troops.</p> - -<p>If the Tactical Defensive be selected, the center should -retire before the oncoming of the hostile army in order -to enclose it between the Kindred Wings, which will -then overwhelm it by superior Numbers, while the natural -barriers on the flanks being impassable will prevent the -remaining hostile corps from participating in the battle -otherwise than as spectators.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_180" id="Page_180">[180]</a></span></p> - -<p>Should the Tactical Offensive be selected, that kindred -wing best adapted for attack should engage supported -by all kindred Corps of Evolution, while advancing the -Kindred Center in reserve and holding the remaining -wing refused and in observation.</p> - -<p>All else being equal, relative advantage in either -branch of Prime Strategetic Means is sufficient to ensure -victory in battle, and the proper use of such advantage -for securing victory is outlined thus:</p> - -<h3>PRINCIPLE</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Utilize advantage in Prime Strategetic Means to obtain -the superiority in Numbers at the Point of Contact in an -Offensive Battle; and to nullify the adverse superiority in -Numbers at the point of contact in a Defensive Battle.</i></p> - -<p>Between War and Chess there is a seeming incongruity, -which is the basis of that doubt of the utility of Chess-play, -so commonly held by laymen, and which fallacy -few, even among proficients, are competent to combat.</p> - -<p>This doubt most frequently is voiced by the query:</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>If Chess and War are analagous, why was not Napoleon -a Master Chess-player and Morphy a great military -Commander?</p> - -</div> - -<p>This query readily is answered in the words of Frederic -the Great, viz.:</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p>“To be possessed of talent is not sufficient. Opportunity -to display such talent and to its full extent is -necessary. All depends on the time in which we live.”</p> - -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_181" id="Page_181">[181]</a></span></p> - -<p>The Strategetic talent possessed in common by Morphy -and Napoleon, in both was brought to perfection by -long and expert training.</p> - -<p>But circumstances placed the twelve year old Napoleon -in the midst of soldiers and in an era of war, while circumstances -placed the twelve year old Morphy in the -midst of Chess-players and in an era of Peace.</p> - -<p>Napoleon was educated a General; Morphy was educated -a lawyer.</p> - -<p>To develop his self-evident and superlative Strategetic -talent, Napoleon’s education was of the best; to develop -his self-evident and superlative Strategetic talent, Morphy’s -education was of the worst.</p> - -<p>Napoleon succeeded as a General; Morphy failed as a -lawyer.</p> - -<p>The innate capability of Napoleon for Strategetics was -developed in the direction of Warfare; the innate capability -of Morphy for Strategetics was developed in the -direction of Chess-play.</p> - -<p>In War, Napoleon is superlative; in Chess, Morphy is -superlative.</p> - -<p>Educated in the law, Napoleon might have proved like -Morphy a non-entity; educated in Chess, Napoleon -might have proved like Morphy a phenomenon.</p> - -<p>Educated in War, Morphy might have rivalled Napoleon.</p> - -<p>For the Chess-play of Morphy displays that perfect -comprehension of Strategetics, to which none but the -great Captains in warfare have attained.</p> - -<p>Perfection in Strategetics consists in exactly interpreting -in battle and campaign, the System of Warfare -invented by Epaminondas.</p> - -<p>Those able to do this in War have achieved greatness, -and the great at Chess-play are those who best have -imitated that exactness with which Morphy employed -this system on the Chess-board.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_182" id="Page_182">[182]</a></span></p> - -<p>To those who imagine that Strategetic talent, as exemplified -in Warfare, is different from Strategetic talent as -exemplified in Chess-play, the following may afford -matter for reflection.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<div class="quote"> - -<p><i>“Frederic the Great was one of the finest Chess-players -that Germany ever produced.”—Wilhelm Steinitz.</i></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapterhead"> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_183" id="Page_183">[183]</a></span></p> - -<p class="chapterhead" id="PRIME_STRATEGETIC_PROPOSITION_1">PRIME STRATEGETIC PROPOSITION<br /> -<span class="smaller">SECTION ONE</span></p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_184" id="Page_184">[184]</a></span></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_185" id="Page_185">[185]</a></span></p> - -<h2>PRIME STRATEGETIC PROPOSITION<br /> -<span class="smaller">SECTION ONE</span></h2> - -<h3>(<span class="smcap">First Phase.</span>)</h3> - -<p>In the consideration of every Strategetic Situation -possible in Warfare, or in Chess-play, the initial process -always is a Grand Reconnaissance.</p> - -<p>Grand Reconnaissance is that exact scrutiny of existing -conditions, whereby is determined the relative advantages -and disadvantages possessed by the opposing armies in:</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. Time.</li> -<li>2. Numbers.</li> -<li>3. Position.</li> -<li>4. Organization.</li> -<li>5. Mobility.</li> -<li>6. Topography.</li> -</ul> - -<p>The <i>First Phase</i> in the demonstration of every Prime -Strategetic Proposition consists:</p> - -<ul> -<li>1. <i>In determining by comparison of the relative advantages -and disadvantages in Time, which of the opposing -armies has the ability to MOVE, while the other must remain -stationary.</i></li> -<li>2. <i>In deducing the MOTIF of such movement.</i></li> -<li>3. <i>In designating the DIRECTION of such movement.</i></li> -</ul> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_186" id="Page_186">[186]</a></span></p> - -<p>The making of Grand Reconnaissance is a special -privilege which exclusively appertains to the advantage -in <i>Time</i>. It always should be made by the Commander-in-chief -of that army which is able to put itself in motion, -while the opposing army must remain stationary, and -it never should be confounded with the advance of the -Cavalry Corps, nor confused with the work of scouts and -spies; all of which are matters entirely separate and -distinct from Grand Reconnaissance.</p> - -<p>In the Grand Reconnaissance of any given Strategetic -Situation the element of Numbers <i>primarily</i> is to be -considered, for the reason that the basic fact of the Science -of Strategetics is:</p> - -<div class="blockquote"> - -<p><i>“THE GREATER FORCE ALWAYS OVERCOMES -THE LESSER.”—Napoleon.</i></p> - -</div> - -<p>Hence, unless more immediately vital considerations -prevent, superiority in Numbers, of itself, is <i>decisive</i> of -victory; and thus it readily is to be deduced that all -else being equal, the advantage in Time plus the advantage -in Numbers constitutes the easiest and simplest -winning combination known to Strategetic Art.</p> - -<p>But it so happens that the advantage in Time may be -combined not only with the greater force, but also with -an equal, or even with the lesser force, and from this it -is self-evident that Strategetic Situations are divided -into three classes, viz.:</p> - -<ul> -<li>I. Numerical superiority, plus right to move.</li> -<li>II. Numerical equality, plus right to move.</li> -<li>III. Numerical inferiority, plus right to move.</li> -</ul> - -<p>There are <i>two primary methods</i> for availing of superiority -in Numbers to destroy the opposing lesser force, viz.:</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_187" id="Page_187">[187]</a></span></p> - -<ul> -<li>1. <i>By the Process of Attrition, i.e., by maintaining -an incessant tactical offensive and thus wearing down the -opposing army by exchanging pieces at every opportunity.</i></li> -<li>2. <i>By Acting in Detachments, i.e., by means of the -extra corps, simultaneously to attack more points of vital -importance than the hostile army is able simultaneously to -defend.</i></li> -</ul> - -<p>From the foregoing it is obvious that conversely there -are two principal considerations, which all else being -equal, must dominate the procedure of the Numerically -inferior force, viz.:</p> - -<ul> -<li>I. To avoid further diminution of its aggregate.</li> -<li>II. To avoid creating indefensible vital points.</li> -</ul> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>The <i>second consideration</i> in the making of a Grand -Reconnaissance by the commander-in-chief of an army -having the advantage in Time, is the element of <i>Position</i>; -for the reason that by unscientific posting of Corps -d’armee, relative advantages in Time, or in Numbers or -in both, may be rendered nugatory, on account of inability -of the kindred Columns of Attack, of Support and -of Manoeuvre to perform their functions.</p> - -<p>In case the Corps are scientifically posted and are in -positions to avail of advantage in Time and Numbers, -those adverse vital points whose occupation may be -effected by superior force, always will be the objectives of -the movements of the latter.</p> - -<p>Hence, the following:</p> - -<h3>PRINCIPLE</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>As the advantage in Time gives the right to MOVE and -the advantage in Numbers indicates the MOTIF of movement; -so does the advantage in Position, as expressed by the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_188" id="Page_188">[188]</a></span> -Strategic Syllogism, specify the DIRECTION of that -movement which normally appertains to the army having -the advantage in Time.</i></p> - -<p>The proper <i>direction</i> of that movement which normally -appertains to the advantage in Time always is indicated -by the plus signs in the Strategic Syllogism, viz.:</p> - -<table summary="Explanation of the notation"> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">+A.</td> - <td colspan="2">Signifies that the Normal direction of movement - for the army having the advantage in Time is along - the Strategetic Center towards the Objective Plane.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">+S.</td> - <td colspan="2">Signifies that the Normal direction of movement - for the army having the advantage in Time is - along one or more pawn altitudes towards the Kindred - Logistic Horizon.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">+M.</td> - <td colspan="2">Signifies that the Normal direction of movement - for the army having the advantage in Time is - along the shortest open pawn altitude towards the - Kindred Point of Junction.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td rowspan="3" class="tdr bt">+A+S.</td> - <td colspan="2">Signifies that the Normal direction of movement - for the army having the advantage in Time is - double, <i>i.e.</i>,</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">+A.</td> - <td>towards the Objective Plane.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">+S.</td> - <td>along one or more open Pawn altitudes toward - the Kindred Logistic Horizon.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td rowspan="3" class="tdr bt">+A+M.</td> - <td colspan="2">Signifies that the Normal direction of - movement for the army having the advantage in Time, - is double, <i>i.e.</i>,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_189" id="Page_189">[189]</a></span></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">+A.</td> - <td>towards the Objective Plane.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">+M.</td> - <td>Along the shortest open pawn altitude toward - the Kindred Point of Junction.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td rowspan="3" class="tdr bt">+S+M.</td> - <td colspan="2">Signifies that the Normal direction of - movement for the army having the advantage in Time - is double, <i>i.e.</i>,</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">+S.</td> - <td>Along one or more open Pawn altitudes toward - the Kindred Logistic Horizon.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">+M.</td> - <td>Along the shortest open Pawn Altitude toward - the Kindred Point of Junction.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td rowspan="4" class="tdr bt">+A+S+M.</td> - <td colspan="2">Signifies that the Normal direction of - movement is triple, <i>i.e.</i>,</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">+A.</td> - <td>Toward the Objective Plane.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">+S.</td> - <td>Along one or more open Pawn altitudes, toward - the Kindred Logistic Horizon.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">+M.</td> - <td>Along the shortest open Pawn altitude, toward - the Kindred Point of Junction.</td> - </tr> -</table> - -<p>The First Phase in the demonstration of every Strategetic -Proposition is determined by the following:</p> - -<h3>THEOREM</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Given the Normal ability to move, to determine the -Normal motif and direction of movement.</i></p> - -<p>1. Designate that army having the advantage in -Time and express such advantage by the symbol +T, -express the corresponding disadvantage in Time which -appertains to the opposing army, by the symbol -T, and -such symbols will constitute the First Term of the First -Phase of the demonstration of any Prime Strategetic -Proposition.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_190" id="Page_190">[190]</a></span></p> - -<p>2. Express that superiority, equality, or inferiority -in Numbers, which appertains to each of the opposing -armies by the symbols +N, =N,-N, respectively; -and such symbols will constitute the Second Term of -the First Phase of the demonstration of any Prime -Strategetic Proposition.</p> - -<p>3. Express the objectives designated by the plus -terms of the Strategic Syllogism, viz.:</p> - -<table summary="The objectives"> - <tr> - <td>(a)</td> - <td>Objective of</td> - <td>+A</td> - <td>=</td> - <td>Objective Plane, <i>i.e.</i>, O. P.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>(b)</td> - <td><span class="ditto">”</span></td> - <td>+S</td> - <td>=</td> - <td>Logistic Horizon, <i>i.e.</i>, L. H.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>(c)</td> - <td><span class="ditto">”</span></td> - <td>+M</td> - <td>=</td> - <td>Point of Junction, <i>i.e.</i>, P. J.</td> - </tr> -</table> - -<p class="noindent">and the symbols denoting such objectives will constitute -the Third Term in the First Phase of the demonstration -of any Prime Strategetic Proposition.</p> - -<p>4. Combine those three terms which appertain to the -advantage in Time, then combine those three terms -which appertain to the disadvantage in Time, and the -resulting equation when expanded will depict:</p> - -<ul> -<li>(a) The normal ability to move.</li> -<li>(b) The normal motif of movement.</li> -<li>(c) The normal directions of movement which appertain -to each of the opposing armies.</li> -</ul> - -<h4>EXAMPLE</h4> - -<table summary="An example"> - <tr> - <td>White.</td> - <td>(+T+N)</td> - <td>+</td> - <td>(+A+S+M)</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>Black.</td> - <td>(-T-N)</td> - <td>+</td> - <td>(-A-S-M)</td> - </tr> -</table> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_191" id="Page_191">[191]</a></span></p> - -<h4>EXPANDED</h4> - -<table summary="An expansion of the example"> - <tr> - <td>First Term.</td> - <td>+T</td> - <td>=</td> - <td>Normal ability to move.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>Second Term.</td> - <td>+N</td> - <td>=</td> - <td>Normal motif of movement,<br />(a) Detachments, (b) Exchanges.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td rowspan="3">Third Term</td> - <td>+O. P.</td> - <td>=</td> - <td>Normal objective of +A.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>+L. H.</td> - <td>=</td> - <td><span class="ditto">”</span> <span class="ditto">”</span> <span class="ditto">”</span> +S.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>+P. J.</td> - <td>=</td> - <td><span class="ditto">”</span> <span class="ditto">”</span> <span class="ditto">”</span> +M.</td> - </tr> -</table> - -<p>Hence, in the foregoing example the normal direction -of movement for White may be either toward the Objective -Plane with the Column of Attack, or toward the Logistic -Horizon, or the Point of Junction with the Column of -Support, or toward both objectives, with both columns -simultaneously.</p> - -<p>Meanwhile, the Black army having the disadvantage -in Time is unable to move, and consequently is stationary.</p> - -<p>Furthermore, White having the superiority in Numbers -may move with an equal force against either objective -designated by the Third Term of the equation, and with -his excess force against one or more adverse vital points, -simultaneously, against which latter movement, Black -obviously has no adequate defence.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_192" id="Page_192">[192]</a></span></p> - -<h3>TACTICO-LOGISTIC INEQUALITY</h3> - -<p>The Tactico-Logistic Inequality is the algebraic expression -of the relative advantages and disadvantages -in Time and in Numbers appertaining to opposing -Strategetic Entireties.</p> - -<p>Such advantages and disadvantages are denoted by -the terms, viz.:</p> - -<table summary="Explanation of the notation"> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">+T.</td> - <td>Signifies the absolute advantage in Time, <i>i.e.</i>, - the ability of an army, a grand column, a wing or a corps - d’armee to move, while the opposing force must remain - stationary.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">-T.</td> - <td>Signifies the absolute disadvantage in Time, <i>i.e.</i>, - the obligation of an army, a grand column, a wing, or a - corps d’armee to remain stationary, while the opposing - force is in motion.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">+N.</td> - <td>Signifies the absolute advantage in Numbers, - <i>i.e.</i>, the larger number of corps d’armee.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">-N.</td> - <td>Signifies the absolute disadvantage in Numbers, - <i>i.e.</i>, the smaller number of corps d’armee.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="tdr">=N.</td> - <td>Signifies the equality in Numbers, <i>i.e.</i>, the same - number of corps d’armee.</td> - </tr> -</table> - -<p>There are six forms of the Tactico-Logistic Inequality, -viz.:</p> - -<table summary="The six forms"> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">1.</td> - <td class="tdc">+T+N</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">-T-N</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">2.</td> - <td class="tdc">+T=N</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">-T=N</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">3.</td> - <td class="tdc">+T-N</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">-T+N</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">4.</td> - <td class="tdc">-T+N</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">+T-N</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">5.</td> - <td class="tdc">-T=N</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">+T=N</td> - </tr> - <tr class="why-can-you-not-pad-rows"> - <td rowspan="2">6.</td> - <td class="tdc">-T-N</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td class="bt tdc">+T+N</td> - </tr> -</table> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_193" id="Page_193">[193]</a></span></p> - -<h4>INITIAL STRATEGETIC EQUATION</h4> - -<p>The Initial Strategetic Equation is made up of those -terms which compose the Strategic Syllogism and the -Tactico-Logistic Inequality, viz.:</p> - -<table summary="The Initial Strategetic Equation"> - <tr> - <td class="bt">(+A+S+M) + (+T+N) - (-A-S-M) + (-T-N) =<br /> - the Normal Motif and Direction of Effort.</td> - </tr> -</table> - -<h3>RULE</h3> - -<p>1. <i>Set down in parenthesis those terms of the Strategic -Syllogism which appertain to White.</i></p> - -<p><i>Set down in parenthesis those terms of the Tactico-Logistic -Inequality which appertain to White.</i></p> - -<p><i>Connect the two kindred terms thus constructed, by the -sign of addition, to show that each is to augment the other, -and superscore all by the same vincula to show that all are -to be taken together to form one side of the resulting equation.</i></p> - -<p>2. <i>Repeat this process for the Black terms to construct -the second side of the Initial Strategetic Equation, and -separate the White from the Black terms by a minus -sign.</i></p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_194" id="Page_194">[194]</a></span></p> - -<h3>STRATEGETIC VALUES</h3> - -<p>The Strategetic Values of the terms contained in the -Strategic Syllogism and in the Tactico-Logistic Inequality -are shown by the appended tables, viz.:</p> - -<h4>TABLE OF STRATEGIC VALUES.</h4> - -<table summary="Strategic values"> - <tr> - <td></td> - <td><i>Term.</i></td> - <td><i>Post.</i></td> - <td><i>Direction.</i></td> - <td><i>Motif.</i></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>1.</td> - <td>+A</td> - <td>Grand Vertex</td> - <td>Tactical Key of Objective Plane</td> - <td>To give checkmate</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>2.</td> - <td>+M</td> - <td>Point Proximity en command</td> - <td>Point of Junction</td> - <td>To queen a Pawn</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>3.</td> - <td>+A</td> - <td>Major Vertex</td> - <td>1. Grand Vertex<br />2. Point Aligned<br />3. Point en Potence</td> - <td>To gain winning Position with Column of Attack</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>4.</td> - <td>+M</td> - <td>Point Proximity en Menace</td> - <td>Point en Command</td> - <td>To gain winning Position with Column of Support</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>5.</td> - <td>+M</td> - <td>Point Proximity en Presence</td> - <td>Point en Menace</td> - <td>To gain winning Position with Column of Support</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>6.</td> - <td>+A</td> - <td>Minor Vertex</td> - <td>1. Major Vertex<br />2. Point Aligned</td> - <td>To gain Superior Position with Column of Attack</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>7.</td> - <td>+S</td> - <td>Point Proximity en Observation</td> - <td>Point en Presence</td> - <td>To gain Superior Position with Column of Support</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>8.</td> - <td>+S</td> - <td>Point Proximity en Route</td> - <td>Point en Observation</td> - <td>To gain superior Position with Column of Support</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>9.</td> - <td>+S</td> - <td>Point Proximity Remote</td> - <td>Point en Route</td> - <td>To gain advantage with Column of Support</td> - </tr> -</table> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_195" id="Page_195">[195]</a></span></p> - -<h4>TABLE OF LOGISTIC VALUES</h4> - -<table summary="Logistic values"> - <tr> - <td></td> - <td><i>Term.</i></td> - <td></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>1.</td> - <td>+T</td> - <td>Unrestricted privilege to move any Piece.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>2.</td> - <td>+T</td> - <td>Restricted to moving a Sustaining Piece en counter attack.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>3.</td> - <td>+T</td> - <td>Restricted to moving an aggressive Covering Piece.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>4.</td> - <td>+T</td> - <td>Restricted to moving a Passive Covering Piece.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>5.</td> - <td>+T</td> - <td>Restricted to moving a Supporting Piece.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>6.</td> - <td>+T</td> - <td>Restricted to moving the King out of check.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>7.</td> - <td>+T</td> - <td>Restricted to moving the King from an untenable Objective Plane.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>8.</td> - <td>+T</td> - <td>Restricted to moving a Piece to reduce the value of the Kindred King’s Logistic Radii.</td> - </tr> -</table> - -<h4>TABLE OF TACTICAL VALUES</h4> - -<table summary="Tactical values"> - <tr> - <td></td> - <td><i>Term.</i></td> - <td></td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>1.</td> - <td>+N</td> - <td>Larger numbers of Grand Corps d’armee of Evolution.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>2.</td> - <td>+N</td> - <td>Larger numbers of Major Corps d’armee of Evolution.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>3.</td> - <td>+N</td> - <td>Larger numbers of Minor Corps d’armee of Evolution.</td> - </tr> - <tr> - <td>4.</td> - <td>+N</td> - <td>Larger numbers of Corps d’armee of Position.</td> - </tr> -</table> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_196" id="Page_196">[196]</a></span></p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapterhead"> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_197" id="Page_197">[197]</a></span></p> - -<p class="chapterhead" id="PRIME_STRATEGETIC_PROPOSITION_2">PRIME STRATEGETIC PROPOSITION<br /> -<span class="smaller">SECTION TWO</span></p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_198" id="Page_198">[198]</a></span></p> - -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_199" id="Page_199">[199]</a></span></p> - -<h2>PRIME STRATEGETIC PROPOSITION<br /> -<span class="smaller">SECTION TWO</span></h2> - -<h3>THEOREM.</h3> - -<p class="hanging"><i>Given any Strategetic Situation to determine the True -Tactical Sequence.</i></p> - -<h3>DEMONSTRATION.</h3> - -<h4>(<i>First Phase.</i>)</h4> - -<p>Let the term +A in its degree represent the relative -advantage in Position of the Column of Attack; +S in its -degree the relative advantage in Position of the Column -of Support, and +M in its degree the relative advantage -in Position of the Column of Manoeuvre; let equality -in Position of the several Columns be represented by the -terms =A, =S, =M, and let inferiority in Positions of -the several Columns be represented by the terms -A, --S, -M, and let those terms appertaining to the White -Columns be written above a line and those terms appertaining -to the Black Columns be written below the line, -and let that collection of terms containing the plus and -equal signs of greater Strategetic value be the Major -Premise and that collection of terms containing the -signs of lesser strategetic value be the Minor Premise -of the <i>Strategic Syllogism</i> thus constructed.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_200" id="Page_200">[200]</a></span></p> - -<p>Let the ability to move while the opposing force must -remain stationary be represented by the term +T, and -let the converse be represented by the term -T, and let -superiority in Numbers be represented by the term -+N; the equality in Numbers by the term =N, and inferiority -in Numbers by the term -N, and let the combining -of any form of the terms T and N constitute a -<i>Tactico-Logistic Inequality</i>.</p> - -<p>Let any combination of that Strategic Syllogism which -appertains to a given Strategetic Situation with the -corresponding Tactico-Logistic Inequality, form the -<i>Initial Strategetic Equation</i>.</p> - -<p>Let the plus terms and the equality terms, which are -contained in the Initial Strategetic Equation, be expanded -into their highest forms according to the table of -Strategetic Values, and annex to each of such terms that -numeral which expresses the relative rank of such term -in those calculations which appertain to the pending -Prime Strategetic Proposition.</p> - -<p>Compare the values so obtained and let the highest -<i>Strategetically</i> be regarded as the menace most immediately -decisive, then:</p> - -<p>If the term +T appertain to the Piece operating such -menace, let such Piece be regarded as the Corps d’armee -en Menace, and the Objective of such menace as the -Prime Decisive Point; the occupation of such Point by -such Piece as the Normal Motif of Offensive Effort, and -the Logistic Radius connecting the Point of Departure -occupied by such Piece and the Prime Decisive Point as -the Normal Direction of Offensive Effort.</p> - -<p>If the term +T does NOT apply to that menace which -combined with the term +T would be most immediately -decisive, then:</p> - -<p>By further comparison of the terms of the Initial -Strategetic Equation, select that Decisive Menace strategetically -next in sequence to which the term +T does<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_201" id="Page_201">[201]</a></span> -appertain; and let the Piece operating such Decisive -Menace be regarded as the Corps d’armee en Menace; -the Objective of such menace as the Prime Decisive -Point; the occupation of such Point by such Piece as -the Normal Motif of Offensive Effort, and the Logistic -Radius connecting the Point of Departure occupied -by such Piece and the Prime Decisive Points as the -Normal direction of Offensive Effort.</p> - -<p>Provided:</p> - -<p>Whenever the term +T appertains to a Menace not -so immediately decisive as another menace operated by -an adverse army, column, wing or corps d’armee, but -to which the term +T does <i>not</i> appertain, then: the -Normal motif of Effort is <i>defensive</i>, and the Normal -direction of Defensive Effort is along the Logistic Radius -between the Point of Departure of that Kindred Piece, -which by the advantage of the term +A, is able to nullify -the adverse most immediately Decisive Menace and -that Point of Command which is the Objective of such -Effort en Defence and from whence such adverse most -immediately Decisive Menace may be nullified.</p> - -<hr class="tb" /> - -<p>The second or Intermediate Phase of the Prime -Strategetic Proposition appertains to Grand Manoeuvres; -and the third, or Final Phase, appertains to Grand Operations.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_202" id="Page_202">[202]</a></span></p> - -<p><i>However vast one’s capabilities may be, there is no mind -so comprehensive but that it has much to learn from other -minds which have preceded it, and no talent is so potential -but that its development is proportional to its exercise.</i></p> - -<p><i>For no matter how broad and exact one’s knowledge, the -application of such knowledge alone constitutes Art, and -the value of such knowledge always is commensurate to the -degree of skill attained in the use of it.</i></p> - -<p><i>Hence, there is a training of the physical senses which -gives quickness and strength to the eye, the ear and the -hand; a training of the nervous organism which gives -courage to the heart, clearness to the brain, and steadiness -to the body; a training of the intellect which fructifies in -originality, ingenuity, profundity and exactness of calculation.</i></p> - -<p><i>Such training is to be acquired only from systematic -study of the best productions by Masters of the Art, and by -incessant practice with the best proficients.</i></p> - - - - - - - - -<pre> - - - - - -End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Chess Generalship, Vol. I. Grand -Reconnaissance, by Franklin K. Young - -*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CHESS GENERALSHIP, VOL. I. *** - -***** This file should be named 55278-h.htm or 55278-h.zip ***** -This and all associated files of various formats will be found in: - http://www.gutenberg.org/5/5/2/7/55278/ - -Produced by Donald Cummings, Adrian Mastronardi and the -Online Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net -(This file was produced from images generously made -available by The Internet Archive/American Libraries.) - -Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will -be renamed. - -Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright -law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works, -so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United -States without permission and without paying copyright -royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part -of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm -concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark, -and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive -specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this -eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook -for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports, -performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given -away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks -not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the -trademark license, especially commercial redistribution. - -START: FULL LICENSE - -THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE -PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK - -To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free -distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work -(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project -Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full -Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at -www.gutenberg.org/license. - -Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic works - -1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to -and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property -(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all -the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or -destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your -possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a -Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound -by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the -person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph -1.E.8. - -1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be -used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who -agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few -things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works -even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See -paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this -agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below. - -1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the -Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection -of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual -works in the collection are in the public domain in the United -States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the -United States and you are located in the United States, we do not -claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing, -displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as -all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope -that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting -free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm -works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the -Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily -comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the -same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when -you share it without charge with others. - -1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern -what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are -in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, -check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this -agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, -distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any -other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no -representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any -country outside the United States. - -1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: - -1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other -immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear -prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work -on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the -phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, -performed, viewed, copied or distributed: - - This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and - most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no - restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it - under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this - eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the - United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you - are located before using this ebook. - -1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is -derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not -contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the -copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in -the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are -redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project -Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply -either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or -obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm -trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. - -1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted -with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution -must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any -additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms -will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works -posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the -beginning of this work. - -1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm -License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this -work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm. - -1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this -electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without -prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with -active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project -Gutenberg-tm License. - -1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, -compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including -any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access -to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format -other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official -version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site -(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense -to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means -of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain -Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the -full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. - -1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, -performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works -unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. - -1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing -access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works -provided that - -* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from - the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method - you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed - to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has - agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project - Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid - within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are - legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty - payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project - Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in - Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg - Literary Archive Foundation." - -* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies - you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he - does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm - License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all - copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue - all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm - works. - -* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of - any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the - electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of - receipt of the work. - -* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free - distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works. - -1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than -are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing -from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The -Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm -trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below. - -1.F. - -1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable -effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread -works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project -Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may -contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate -or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other -intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or -other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or -cannot be read by your equipment. - -1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right -of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project -Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project -Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all -liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal -fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT -LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE -PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE -TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE -LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR -INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH -DAMAGE. - -1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a -defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can -receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a -written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you -received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium -with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you -with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in -lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person -or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second -opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If -the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing -without further opportunities to fix the problem. - -1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth -in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO -OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT -LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. - -1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied -warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of -damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement -violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the -agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or -limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or -unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the -remaining provisions. - -1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the -trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone -providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in -accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the -production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, -including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of -the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this -or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or -additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any -Defect you cause. - -Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm - -Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of -electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of -computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It -exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations -from people in all walks of life. - -Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the -assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's -goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will -remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project -Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure -and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future -generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see -Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at -www.gutenberg.org - - - -Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation - -The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit -501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the -state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal -Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification -number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by -U.S. federal laws and your state's laws. - -The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the -mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its -volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous -locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt -Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to -date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and -official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact - -For additional contact information: - - Dr. Gregory B. Newby - Chief Executive and Director - gbnewby@pglaf.org - -Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg -Literary Archive Foundation - -Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide -spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of -increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be -freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest -array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations -($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt -status with the IRS. - -The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating -charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United -States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a -considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up -with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations -where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND -DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular -state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate - -While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we -have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition -against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who -approach us with offers to donate. - -International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make -any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from -outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. - -Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation -methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other -ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To -donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate - -Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. - -Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project -Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be -freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and -distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of -volunteer support. - -Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed -editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in -the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not -necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper -edition. - -Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search -facility: www.gutenberg.org - -This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, -including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to -subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. - - - -</pre> - -</body> -</html> diff --git a/old/55278-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/55278-h/images/cover.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 994609f..0000000 --- a/old/55278-h/images/cover.jpg +++ /dev/null |
